This is a work of fiction. All the characters and
events portrayed in this book are fictional, and any resemblance to real people
or incidents is purely coincidental.
Copyright © 1978 by Jack L. Chalker
All rights reserved, including the right to reproduce this book or portions
thereof in any form.
A Baen Book
Baen Publishing Enterprises
P.O. Box 1403
Riverdale, NY 10471
www.baen.com
ISBN: 0-7434-3603-2
Cover art by Clyde Caldwell
First Baen printing, April 2003
Distributed by Simon & Schuster
1230 Avenue of the Americas
New York, NY 10020
Typeset by Brilliant Press.
Printed in the United States of America
This book is for a number of old pros, who, wittingly or unwittingly, at
various times have helped:
Leigh Brackett
Robert Bloch
Alfred Bester
Marty (Hicksville) Greenberg
Gordon R. Dickson
Harlan Ellison
Fritz Leiber
Harry ("Hal Clement") Stubbs
Compton ("Stephen Tall") Crook
Avram Davidson
Jack Williamson
and, most especially, to a man who has never heard of me but has had more
influence on the field of science fiction than any ten comparable writers,
Mr. Eric Frank Russell
"A STUNNING NOVEL BY A FIRST-RATE STORYTELLER!"
—Edmond Hamilton
"Hang on!"
Mavra Chang yelled to Renard as the ship vibrated at full power. "This
will be rough!" The ship broke free of its mooring pad and rose at
near-maximum power.
"Code,
please," a mechanical voice demanded pleasantly over the radio.
"Correct code within sixty seconds or we will destroy your ship."
Mavra grabbed
frantically for the headset and activated the mike. "Stand by for
code," she said into it, and then paused. Come on! she thought
urgently to the planetoid's super-computer. Nikki's aboard and we're away!
Give me the god-damned code!
"Thirty seconds,"
the robot sentry pointed out politely.
Suddenly she had it. The
words burst into her mind, suddenly, so strangely that for a moment she doubted
they were correct. She took a deep breath. "Edward Gibbon, Volume I,"
she said.
No response. They held
their breath together. The seconds ticked off. Nothing happened. Renard
whistled and almost collapsed. Mavra started trembling while they continued out
at full thrust. There was a better than even chance that they would make it in
time, before the test started and all space for a light-year around was twisted
and changed, possibly even destroyed.
Then, suddenly, there
was a blackness. Mavra's eyes wouldn't adjust to it. They were in a deep, black
hole, falling, falling fast.
"Son of a
bitch!" Mavra said with disgust. "They moved up the damned
test!"
"A big, bold book that takes traditional science fiction and turns it
upside down!"
—Leigh Brackett
Tales of the Three Kings:
Balshazzar's Serpent
Melchior's Fire
Kaspar's Box
The Quintara Marathon:
The Demons at Rainbow Bridge
The Run to Chaos Keep
Ninety Trillion Fausts
The Changewinds
The Identity Matrix
Downtiming the Nightside
Midnight at the Well of Souls
Exiles at the Well of Souls
Quest for the Well of Souls (forthcoming)
The format of this book
is extremely episodic; the action will shift to several different people and
events very rapidly, and this might cause some temporal disorientation to those
used to reading a straight-line narrative. Therefore, the reader is cautioned
to keep in mind that, unless the text specifically says otherwise, a
scene-change is considered to be going on simultaneously with the preceding
action, and that this is true, regardless of the number of scene changes, until
the original characters come up again. The scheme may sound difficult, but it
shouldn't cause problems.
It wasn't the fact that
Gilgam Zinder's lab assistant had a horse's tail that was the oddest fact; the
really strange thing was that she didn't seem to think her condition odd or
unusual.
Zinder was tall and
thin, a gaunt man with gray hair and a long gray goatee that made him seem even
older than he was, and more drawn. His blue-gray eyes, bloodshot and surrounded
with darkening shadow, showed his overwork. He hadn't thought to eat in more
than two days, and sleep had become academic.
The place was a
strange-looking lab at that. It was designed something like an amphitheater,
with a circular raised pedestal about forty centimeters above the plain
flooring that served as the stage. Above the stage was a device hanging like a
great cannon but terminating in a small mirror with a tiny point coming out
from it.
A balcony surrounded the
apparatus; here, along the walls, were thousands of blinking lights, dials and
switches, and central consoles, four of them, evenly spaced around the circle
below. Zinder sat at one; directly across from him a much younger man in shiny
protective lab clothing sat at another. Zinder's lab suit looked as if it had
been made in the last century.
The woman standing on
the raised disk was an ordinary-looking sort, late thirties and a little dumpy
and saggy, the kind that looks far better with proper clothes than nude as she
now was.
Only she had a horse's
tail, long and bushy.
She looked up at the two
men with puzzlement and some impatience.
"Well, come
on," she called to them, "aren't you going to do anything?
It's cold down here."
Ben Yulin, the younger
man, smiled and leaned over the rail.
"Swish your tail
awhile, Zetta. We're working as fast as we can!" he called down
good-naturedly.
And she was swishing
the tail, slowly back and forth, routinely, echoing her frustration.
"You really don't
notice any difference, Zetta?" Zinder's thin, reedy voice asked her.
She looked puzzled, then
down at herself, running her hands along her body, including the tail, as if to
find out what they did.
"No, Dr. Zinder, I
don't. Why? Is something about me—different?" she responded hesitantly.
"Do you know you have
a tail?" Zinder prompted.
She looked puzzled.
"Of course I have a tail," she replied in a so-what's-wrong-with-that
tone.
"You don't find
that, ah, odd or unusual?" Ben Yulin put in.
The woman was genuinely
confused. "Why, no, of course not. Why should I?"
Zinder looked over at
his young assistant, almost fifteen meters across the open stage.
"An interesting
development," he commented.
Yulin nodded.
"Creating bean pots, then the lab-animal stuff, that told us what we could
do, but I don't think I was ready for this."
"You remember the
theory?" Zinder prompted.
Yulin nodded.
"We're changing probability within the field. What we do to something or
someone in the field is normal to them, because we've changed their basic
stabilizing equation. Fascinating. If we could do this on a large scale . .
." He let the thought trail off.
Zinder looked
thoughtful. "Yes, indeed. A whole population would be changed and it would
never know it." He turned and looked down again at the woman with the
horse's tail.
"Zetta?" he
called. "Do you know that we do not have tails? That no one else we
know of has a tail?"
She nodded. "Yes, I
know it's unusual to you. But what's the big deal? I haven't exactly tried to
hide it from view."
"Did your parents
have tails, Zetta?" Yulin asked.
"Of course
not!" she responded. "Now what's all this about?"
The younger scientist
looked across at the old one. "Want to go any further?" he asked.
Zinder shrugged lightly.
"Why not? Yes, I'd love to do a psych probe and see how deep it goes, but
if we can do it once we can do it anytime. Let's check out one thing at a
time."
"Okay," Yulin
agreed. "So now what?"
Zinder looked thoughtful
for a moment. Then, suddenly, he reached over and touched a panel next to a
recessed combination microphone and speaker.
"Obie?" he
called into it.
"Yes, Dr.
Zinder?" the voice of the computer that was in the walls around them
replied; a pleasant, professional, and personable tenor.
"You have noted
that the subject does not know we have in any way altered her?"
"Noted," Obie
admitted. "Do you wish her to? The equations are not quite as stable in
that situation but they'll hold up."
"No, no, that's all
right," Zinder responded quickly. "How about attitude without
physical change? Is that possible?"
"A much more minor
alteration," the computer told him. "But, also, because of that, more
easily and quickly reversible."
Zinder nodded. "All
right, then, Obie. We translated a horse into the system matrix, so you have it
completely and you have Zetta completely."
"We don't have the
horse any more," Obie pointed out.
Zinder sighed
impatiently. "But you have the data on it, don't you? That's where the
tail came from, right?"
"Yes, Doctor,"
Obie replied. "I see now that you were being rhetorical again. I'm sorry."
"That's all
right," Zinder assured the machine. "Look, let's try for something
bigger. Do you have the term and concept centaur in your memory?"
Obie thought for perhaps
a millisecond. "Yes. But it will take some work to turn her into one.
After all, there is the matter of internal plumbing, cardiovascular systems,
additional nerve connections, and the like."
"But you can do
it?" Zinder prompted, somewhat surprised.
"Oh, yes."
"How long?"
"Two or three
minutes," Obie replied.
Zinder leaned over. The
girl with the tail was pacing a little nervously on the podium, looking quite
uncomfortable.
"Assistant Halib!
Please stop that pacing and return to the center of the disk!" he reproved
her. "We're about ready, and you did volunteer for this."
She sighed. "Sorry,
Doctor," she responded and stood on the center mark.
Zinder looked over at
Yulin. "On my mark!" he called, and Yulin nodded.
"Mark!"
The little mirrorlike
disk overhead moved out, the little point in the center aimed down, and
suddenly the entire area of the disk was bathed in a pale-blue light that
seemed to sparkle, enveloping the woman. She seemed frozen, unable to move.
Then she suddenly flickered several times like a projected image and winked out
entirely.
"Subject's known
stability equation has been neutralized," Yulin said into his recorder. He
looked up at Zinder.
"Gil?" he
called, slightly disturbed.
"Eh?" the
other man responded absently.
"Suppose we didn't
bring her back? I mean, suppose we just neutralized her," Yulin said
nervously. "Would she exist, Gil? Would she ever have existed?"
Zinder sat back in his
chair, thinking. "She wouldn't exist, no," he told the other.
"As to the rest—well, we'll ask Obie." He leaned forward and flipped
on the transceiver connecting him to the computer.
"Yes, Doctor?"
the computer's calm tone came back.
"I'm not disturbing
the process, am I?" Zinder asked carefully.
"Oh, no," the
computer replied cheerfully. "It's taking only a little under an eighth of
me to work it out."
"Can you
tell me—if the subject were not restabilized, would she have any existence?
That is, would she have ever existed?"
Obie thought it over.
"No, of course not. She is a minor part of the prime equation, of course,
so it wouldn't affect reality as we know it. But it would adjust. She would
never have lived."
"Then—what if we
left her with the tail?" Yulin broke in. "Would everybody else assume
she had a tail all along?"
"Quite so,"
the computer agreed. "After all, to exist she must have a reason, or the
equations would not balance. Again, it would have no effect on the overall equation."
"What would, I
wonder?" Zinder mumbled off-mike, then turned back to Obie. "Tell me,
if that's the case, why do we—Ben, you, and me—know that reality has been
altered?"
"We are in close
proximity to the field," Obie replied. "Anyone within approximately a
hundred meters would have some knowledge of this. The closer you are, the more
dichotomy you perceive. After about a hundred meters the perception of reality
starts to become negligible. People would be aware that something was
different, but wouldn't be able to figure out what. Beyond a thousand meters
the dissipation would become one with the master equation, and reality would
adjust. I can, however, adjust or minimize this for your perceptions if you
desire."
"Absolutely
not!" Zinder said sharply. "But you mean that everyone beyond a
thousand meters of here would firmly believe she had always been a centaur and
that there was a logical reason for it?"
"That is correct.
The prime equations always remain in natural balance."
"She's coming
in!" Ben called excitedly, breaking off the dialogue.
Zinder looked out and
saw a shape flicker into the center of the disk. It flickered twice more, then
solidified, and the field winked out. The mirror swung silently away overhead.
It was still Zetta
Halib, recognizably. But where the woman had stood, the creature was Zetta now
only down to the waist. There her yellow-brown skin melded into black hair, and
the rest of her body was that of a full-grown mare of perhaps two years.
"Obie?" Yulin
called, and the computer answered. "Obie, how long before she stabilizes?
That is, how long before the centaur becomes permanent?"
"It's permanent
now, for her," the computer told him. "If you mean how long it will
take the prime equations to stabilize her new set, an hour or two at most. It
is, after all, a minor disturbance."
Zinder leaned over the
rail and looked at her in amazement. It was clear that he had exceeded his
wildest dreams.
"Would she breed
true—if we had a male?" Yulin asked the computer.
"No," the
computer responded, sounding almost apologetic. "That would take a lot
more work. She would breed a horse, of course."
"You could make a
breeding pair of centaurs, though?" Yulin persisted.
"Most
probably," Obie hedged. "After all, the only limit to this process is
my input. I have to have the knowledge of how to do it, how things are put
together, before I can work something out."
Yulin nodded, but he was
plainly as excited as the older man whose life's work this was.
The centaur looked up at
them. "Are we just going to stay here all day?" she asked
impatiently. "I'm getting hungry."
"Obie, what does
she eat?" Yulin asked.
"Grass, hay,
anything of that nature," the computer replied. "I had to take some
short cuts, of course. The torso is mostly muscle tissue and supporting bone. I
used the horse's part for the organs."
Yulin nodded, then
looked over at the older scientist, still somewhat dazed by what he'd wrought.
"Gil?" he
called. "How about some cosmetic touch-ups, and then we can keep her this
way awhile? It would be interesting to see how this alteration works out."
Zinder nodded absently.
With one more pass,
Yulin was able to give the new creature a younger human half; he tightened her
up and restored what appeared to be youthful good looks.
They were almost
finished when a door opened near the old scientist and a young girl, no more
than fourteen, walked in with a tray. She was about 165 centimeters tall, but
she weighed close to sixty-eight kilograms. Pudgy, stocky, awkward, with thick
legs and fat-enlarged breasts, she wasn't helped by dressing in a diaphanous
dress, sandals, and overdone makeup, or by the obviously dyed long blond hair.
She looked somehow grotesque, but the old man smiled indulgently.
"Nikki!" he
said reprovingly. "I thought I told you not to come in when the red light
was on!"
"I'm sorry,
Daddy," she responded, sounding not the least bit sorry, as she put the
tray down and kissed him lightly on the cheek. "But you haven't eaten in so
long we were getting worried." She looked over, saw the younger man
and smiled a very different sort of smile.
"Hi, Ben!" she
called playfully, and waved.
Yulin looked over,
smiled, and waved back. Then, suddenly, he was thinking hard. A hundred meters,
he thought. The kitchen was about that far away, above ground.
She put her arms around
her father. "What have you been up to for so long?" she asked in that
playful tone. Although physically adult, Nikki Zinder was emotionally very much
a child and acted it. Too much, her father knew. She was overly protected here,
cut off from people her own age, and spoiled rotten from an early age by her
father's inability to discipline her and everybody's knowledge that she was the
boss's kid. Even her slight lisp was childish; often she seemed more like a
pouting five-year-old than the almost fourteen she really was.
But, she was his, and
he couldn't bear to send her away, to put her in a fancy school or project far
away from him. His had been a lonely life of figures and great machines; at
fifty-seven he had had clone samples taken, but he wanted his own. Finally he
had paid a project assistant back on Voltaire to give him a baby. She had been
the first one willing to do it, just to see what the experience was like. She
was a behavioral psychologist, and Zinder had had her assigned to his project
until Nikki was delivered, then he paid her off, and she left.
Nikki looked like her
mother, but that didn't matter. She was his, and during the most trying
periods of the project she had kept him from blowing his brains out. She was
immature as hell. But he really didn't want her to grow up. Nikki Zinder
suddenly heard a woman cough, and she bounded up to the rail and looked down on
the centaur.
"Oh, wow!" she
exclaimed. "Hi! Zetta!"
The centaur looked up at
the girl and smiled indulgently. "Hello, Nikki," she responded
automatically.
Both Zinder and Yulin
were fascinated.
"Nikki, you don't
see anything, er, odd about Zetta?" her father prompted.
The girl shrugged.
"Nope. Why? Should I?"
Ben Yulin's mouth
dropped open in honest surprise.
* * *
Over a week passed
during which they noted various reactions to the new creature. Just about
everyone at the center saw nothing unusual in Zetta Halib being half horse;
that is, nothing newly unusual. They knew, of course, that she was a
volunteer for the biological scientists attempting to adapt people to different
forms. They knew she had been manipulated after conception to grow up as she
had, and they remembered when she had arrived and recalled the initial
reactions.
Everything checked out,
of course, except for the fact that none of what they remembered had actually
happened. Reality needed to explain her and had adjusted accordingly. Only two
men knew the truth.
Ben Yulin puffed on his
curved pipe in his boss's office, rocking lazily back and forth in a spindly
chair.
"So now we
know," he said at last.
The older scientist
nodded and sipped some tea. "Yes, we do. We can take any individual,
anything, and we can remake it if we can come up with the data Obie needs to
make the transformation properly, and nobody will even know. Poor Zetta! A
one-of-a-kind freak with a full history and memory of growing up that way.
We'll have to change her back, of course."
"Of course,"
Yulin agreed. "But let's let her keep her good looks. She's earned that
much from us."
"Yes, yes, of
course." Zinder responded as if that meant little to him.
"Something is still
bothering you," Yulin noted.
Gil Zinder sighed.
"Yes, quite a lot. This is a terrible power, you know, to play god like
this. And I don't like the idea of the Council getting control of it."
Yulin looked surprised.
"Well, they didn't blow all this money for nothing. Hell! We've done it,
Gil! We've knocked conventional science into a cocked hat! We've shown them how
easily the rules of the game can be changed!"
The older scientist
nodded. "True, true. We'll win all sorts of awards and all that. But—well,
you know what's the real problem. Three hundred seventy-four human worlds. A
lot. But all but a handful are Comworlds, conformist fantasies. Think what the
rulers of those worlds could do to those people with a device like ours!"
Yulin sighed.
"Look, Gil, our way is no different than the crude methods they use
now—biological manipulation, genetic engineering, all those things. Maybe
things won't be so bad after all. Maybe our discovery will make things better.
Hell, it can't make them much worse."
"That's true,"
Zinder acknowledged. "But the power, Ben! And," he paused, turned in
his swivel chair to face the younger scientist, "there's something
else."
"Huh? What?"
Yulin responded.
"The
implications," the physicist said worriedly. "Ben, if all this, this
chair, this office, you, me—if we're all just stable equations, matter created
out of pure energy and somehow maintained as we are, what's keeping us
stable? Is there a cosmic Obie someplace, keeping the primary equations
balanced?"
Ben Yulin chuckled.
"I suppose there is, one way or another. God is nothing but a giant Obie.
I kind of like that thought."
Zinder didn't find it
amusing in the least. "I think there is, Ben. There must be, if
everything else is correct. Even Obie agrees. But who built it? Who maintains
it?"
"Well, if you want
to be serious about it, I suppose the Markovians built it. For all I know they
still maintain it," Yulin responded.
Zinder considered that.
"The Markovians. Yes, it must be. We've found their dead worlds and
deserted cities all over. They must have done all this on a giant scale,
Ben!" He was suddenly excited. "Of course! That's why they never
found any artifacts in those old ruins! Whatever they wanted, they just told
their version of Obie and there it was!"
Yulin nodded
approvingly. "You might be right."
"But, Ben!"
Zinder kept on. "All the worlds of theirs we've found! They're all
dead!" He sat back in his chair, voice and manner calming a bit, but his
tone still agitated. "I wonder—if they couldn't handle it, how can
we?" He looked straight at the other scientist. "Ben, are we
producing the means to wipe out the human race?"
Yulin shook his head
slowly from side to side. "I don't know, Gil. I hope not. But we haven't
much choice. Besides," he smiled, tone lighter, "no matter what,
we'll all be long gone before that point is reached."
"I wish I had your
confidence, Ben," Zinder said nervously. "Well, you're right on one
thing. We have to deliver. Will you set it up?"
Ben walked over and
patted the old man on the shoulder. "Of course I'll make the
arrangements," he assured the other. "Look, you worry too much, Gil.
Trust me." His tone changed, became more self-confident. The other didn't
notice. "Yes, I'll set it up."
* * *
In the old days there
were nations, and they reached for space. And then there were planetary
colonies of these nations, and they all had differing philosophies and
life-styles. There followed wars, raids, engineered revolutions. Man expanded,
the nations vanished, leaving behind only their philosophies for their heirs.
Finally, rulers sick of it all got together and formed a trust. All competing
ideologies were to be given free reign until one dominated a planet, but never
by force and never with help from outside. Each planet would choose a member to
sit on a great Council of Worlds and cast its vote.
The great weapons of
terror and destruction were placed under seal and guarded by a tough force born
and bred to the service—a force that could not itself use those weapons without
authority. Such authority could come only from a majority of the 374 Council
members, each of whom would have to appear personally to open his share of the
seals.
Councillor Antor Trelig
was one such guardian and a strong political force on the governing body.
Technically, he represented the People's Party of New Outlook, a Comworld where
people were bred to obedience and to function perfectly in their jobs.
Actually, he represented a lot more, for he had a great deal of influence over
other Council members as well. Some said he was ambitious enough to dream of
one day controlling a majority, of holding in his hands the keys to the weapons
that could wreck worlds.
He was a big man, around
190 centimeters tall, who had broad shoulders and a strong hooknose set atop a
squared jaw. He looked as though made of granite. But he didn't look like the
power-mad villain many painted him as being, not standing there, fascinated,
watching two men and a machine unmake a centaur.
The scientists performed
a few additional demonstrations for him, even asked him if he wanted to try it.
Trelig declined with a nervous laugh. But, after talking to the girl who walked
off the raised disk and after seeing reality readjust to her original
existence, he was convinced.
Later he relaxed with a
very un-Com-like brandy in Zinder's office.
"I can't tell you
how stunned I am," he told them. "What you did is incredible,
unbelievable. Tell me, could a huge one be built? One large enough to control
whole planets?"
Zinder suddenly became
hostile. "I don't think doing so would be practical, Councillor. Too many
variables."
"It could be
done," Ben Yulin put in, ignoring the angry look from his colleague.
"But the cost and effort would be enormous!"
Trelig nodded.
"Such a cost would be negligible when compared with the benefits. Why,
this could wipe out any possibilities of starvation, vagaries of climate, and
what not. It could produce a utopia!"
Or it could reduce the
few free and individualistic worlds left to happy and obedient slavery, Zinder
thought morosely. Aloud, he said, "I think it's a weapon, too, Councillor.
A terrible one in the wrong hands. I believe that is what killed the Markovians
a few million years ago. I would feel better if such a power were placed under
Council Seal."
Trelig sighed. "I
don't agree. But, we'll never know without trying it out. Such a scientific
breakthrough can't just be locked away and abandoned!"
"I think it should
be, and all traces of the research erased," Zinder maintained. "What
we have is the power to play god. I don't think we're ready for that yet."
"You can't uninvent
something once invented, regardless of its implications," Trelig pointed
out. "But, I agree, word should be kept under wraps. If even the knowledge
of your discovery got out, it would inspire a million other scientists. I
think, for now, you should pull the project out of here and move to some place
safe, isolated."
"And where would
this safe place be?" Zinder asked skeptically.
Trelig smiled. "I
have a place, a planetoid with full life-support, normal gravity maintenance,
and the like. I use it as a resort. It would be ideal."
Zinder felt uneasy,
remembering Trelig's sleazy reputation.
"I don't think
so," he told the big man. "I think I'd rather put the matter to the
full Council next week and let the members decide."
Trelig acted as if he
expected that response. "Sure you won't reconsider, Doctor? New Pompeii is
a wonderful place, much nicer than this sterile horror."
Zinder understood what
he was being offered.
"No, I stand
firm," the old scientist told the politician. "Nothing can make me
change my mind."
Trelig sighed.
"That's it, then. I'll arrange for a Council meeting a week from tomorrow.
You and Dr. Yulin will attend, of course."
The big man stood up and
moved to leave. As he did so, he smiled and nodded slowly at Ben Yulin, who
returned the nod. Zinder didn't notice.
Ben Yulin would set it
up, all right.
* * *
Nikki Zinder slept
quietly in her own room, a room littered with exotic clothes, various toys,
games, and gimmicks strewn about in no particular order. Her huge bed almost
enveloped her.
A figure stopped at the
door to that room and, after checking to make sure that no one was approaching,
took out a small screwdriver and unscrewed the door pressure plate, carefully,
so that the door alarm wouldn't be triggered. The plate off, the figure studied
the small exposed modules and placed some spirit gum at several critical
points. One module was removed and adjusted by placing a small strip of silvery
material between two contacts not otherwise connected.
Satisfied, the intruder
replaced the covering plate and meticulously screwed it back on. Replacing the
screwdriver on a tool belt, he hesitated a second, tension getting to him, then
pressed the contact.
There was a soft click,
but nothing else happened.
Breathing easier now, he
removed a tiny nodule of clear liquid from another pouch on the belt and
attached an injector tab to it. Holding it carefully, injector out, he went to
the twin solid door to the girl's room and slowly pressed on one section with
his free hand, then moved it slightly to the right.
The door opened quietly,
without the pneumatic hiss or any other appreciable sound that could be heard
or detected over the residual air conditioning of the building. Opening the
door just enough to slip inside, he turned and closed it quietly behind him.
By the dull glow of a
baseboard nightlight he made out the sleeping figure of Nikki Zinder. She lay
on her back, mouth open, snoring slightly.
Slowly, stealthily, he
tiptoed to her bedside, until he stood almost over her. He froze as she mumbled
something in her sleep and turned slightly on one side, moving away from him.
Patiently he leaned over and peeled a bit of the sheet away from her, exposing
her upper right arm. The hand with the injector and nodule reached over, and he
placed it firmly on her arm.
His touch was so gentle
that she did not awaken, but gave out a low moan and turned again on her back.
Nodule empty, the man withdrew the tiny packet and put it in his pocket.
She did seem to
be awakening a little, left hand coming over and feeling the muscle on the
right. Then the arm suddenly seemed to lose its ability to move, and it limply
fell away. Her breathing became heavier, more labored.
Taking a deep breath, he
leaned over, touched her, shook her hard. She did not respond.
Smiling in satisfaction,
he sat beside her on the bed, bent over close to her.
"Nikki, do you hear
me?" he asked softly.
"Uh, huh," she
mumbled.
"Nikki, listen
carefully," he instructed. "When I say 'one hundred' again, you will
begin counting down from there to zero. When you reach zero, you will get up,
go out of this room, and come immediately to the lab. To the ground floor of
the lab, Nikki. There you will find a large, round platform right in the middle
of the floor, and you will stand on it. You will stand on it and you will not
be able to move from the middle of it, nor will you want to. You will be frozen
there, and you will still be sound asleep. Do you understand all that?"
"I
understand," she responded dreamily.
"Avoid being seen
going to the lab," he cautioned. "Do anything to keep from being
seen. But, if you are seen, act normal, get rid of anyone quickly, and
don't tell where you're really going. Will you do that?"
"Uh huh," she
acknowledged.
He rose from the bed and
went over to the door, which still worked on automatics from the bedroom side.
It was free, though, and he opened it a crack, saw no one, then opened it a
little wider. He stepped into the hall, turned, and almost closed the door.
"One hundred,
Nikki," he said, and closed it all the way.
Satisfied, he walked
down the corridor almost a hundred meters, meeting no one and noting with
satisfaction that all the doors were closed. He entered the elevator, and the
door to the capsule closed.
"Yulin, Abu Ben,
YA–356–47765–7881–GX, Full clearance, Lab 2 level, please," he said. The
elevator checked him visually, checked his ID number and voice prints, then
descended rapidly to the lab floor.
Once on the balcony, he
walked over to his control panel and switched it to active mode.
He flipped the switch to
Obie.
"Obie?" he
called.
"Yes, Ben?"
came that soft, friendly reply.
Yulin punched some
buttons on his keyboard.
"Unnumbered
transaction," he responded with a calmness he didn't feel. "File in
aux storage under my key only."
"What are you
doing, Ben?" Obie asked curiously. "That is a mode even I can't
use. I had no idea it was in there until you used it."
Ben Yulin smiled.
"That's all right, Obie. Even you don't have to remember everything."
What Obie had
discovered, and Ben was enjoying, was the mode by which he could use Obie and
then have Obie file the record of what was done in such a way that even the
great computer couldn't get at it. Obie would still perform normally, but have
a case of total amnesia not only about what Ben was about to do but about his
even being there.
Yulin heard the elevator
door open below. He looked over the balcony and saw Nikki, dressed only in that
flimsy nightgown, walk normally and deliberately into the lab chamber and step
up onto the disk. Centering herself, she stood erect, her eyes closed, and she
seemed frozen, a statue except for barely perceptible breathing.
"Record subject in
aux mode, Obie," Yulin instructed. The big mirror overhead swung out,
centered over the disk, and shot out the blue ray. Nikki flickered once or
twice, then vanished. The ray cut off.
It would be tempting,
Yulin thought, just to leave her there. But, no, the risk was too great. She
would probably have to be produced in the end, and he didn't want her on that
disk with Zinder at the controls.
"Obie, this will be
an unstable equation. It will not adjust. The act of change shall in itself be
part of reality."
"Yes, Ben,"
the computer responded. "There will be no reality adjustment."
Yulin nodded in
satisfaction.
"Psychological
adjustment only, Obie," he told the great machine.
"Ready,"
responded Obie.
"Maximum
emotional-sexual response level," he ordered. "Subject is to be
fixated on Dr. Ben Yulin, data in your banks. Subject will be madly,
irrationally in love with Yulin, and will think of nothing but Yulin. Will do
anything for Yulin, will be loyal only to Yulin, without exception. Subject
will consider herself the willing property of said Ben Yulin. Code it
'love-slave mode' for future reference and store in aux one."
"Done," the
computer acknowledged.
"Sequence, then
store as soon as both humans have left the lab."
"Sequencing,"
the computer said, and Yulin looked over the balcony. The blue light had
flipped on again, and Nikki, still the same and still wearing the same nightgown,
winked back in. She was still frozen.
Yulin cursed himself.
It'd been less than twenty minutes since he had administered the dosage which
was good for probably three times that. He'd taken no chances.
"Additional
instructions, Obie," he shot back. "Remove all traces of the drug
Stepleflin from subject and restore subject at full wakefulness, with the
equivalent of eight hours sleep. Do this immediately, then return to previous
instructions."
The computer accepted
the new instructions, the blue light went on, Nikki flickered but did not wink
out for more than half a second this time, then was back, awake, looking in
amazement about the lab.
Yulin leaned over the
railing. "Hey, Nikki!"
She looked up, spotted
him, and the look on her face was suddenly so full of rapture that she appeared
to be seeing the face of god. She trembled and moaned in ecstasy at the sight
of him.
"Come up to this
level, Nikki," he instructed, and she all but ran off the disk to the
elevator. She was next to him in less than two minutes. She continued to look
at him in awe and wonder. He lightly touched her cheek with his hand and an
orgasmic shudder went through her. He nodded, satisfied.
"Come with me,
Nikki," he ordered softly, taking her hand. She gripped it and followed.
They boarded the elevator, and Yulin told it to rise to the surface.
The top level opened
onto a small park, dimly lit by the artificial light of the clear dome. The
stars shown distantly from horizon to horizon. She hadn't uttered a sound,
asked a question, during all this.
There were a few people
about. But since much of the research center was devoted to thousands of other
projects, many kept different hours for various reasons, some just because of
the need to share facilities.
"We must stay
hidden from anyone, Nikki," he whispered to her. "No one must see
us."
"Oh, yes, Ben,"
she responded, and they crept along the side of the walk, for the most part
hidden in the bushes. There were some sharp needles on some of the bushes and
plants that lined the walk, and Nikki was scratched and splintered by them, but
aside from occasional rubbing or a near-silent exclamation, she didn't
complain. Once he didn't see a short, dark man turn a corner, and she pulled
him down behind a bush.
Finally they reached the
grassy, unlit area that for obscure reasons some called the campus, and they
cut across it, walking normally. Finally, crouched in a dark corner in the
shadow of another building, they waited.
She kept her arm around
him and leaned into him.
He put his arm around
her, and she sighed. She was rubbing him and kissing his clothing.
He found the whole thing
embarrassing and slightly nauseating, but he'd established the rules of the
game and had to suffer for it.
At last, a small, sleek
private carrier slid up to them in the blackness. A gull-wing was raised, and a
man emerged and approached them. Nikki, hearing movement, looked around and
then tried to drag Yulin back into the blackness.
"No, Nikki, that
man's a friend of mine," he told her, and she accepted his statement and
immediately relaxed.
"Adnar! Over
here!" he called, and the man heard and came closer.
"You must go with
Adnar," he told her softly. She looked stricken and clung even tighter to
him.
"This is the only
way we can be together, Nikki," he told her. "You must go away for a
short time, but, if you make no complaints and do everything Adnar and his
friends tell you without question, I'll come to you, I promise."
She smiled at that. Her
mind was clouded; she could think only of Ben, and if Ben said something then
it was true.
"Let's go,"
Adnar called impatiently.
Yulin steeled himself,
then hugged the girl and kissed her long and passionately.
"Remember that while
we're apart," he whispered. "Now, go!"
She went with the
strange man. Unquestioningly, without complaint, they climbed into the black
carrier, and it sped away.
Ben Yulin allowed
himself to exhale, and for the first time noticed he was perspiring. Shakily,
he made his way back to his own building and bed.
* * *
Antor Trelig displayed
the charming smile of a poisonous snake. He sat, relaxed, in Gil Zinder's
office once more. The little scientist was visibly shaken.
"You monster!"
he snapped at the politician. "What have you done with her?"
Trelig looked hurt.
"Me? I would do nothing, I assure you. I am much too big a man for
something like a petty kidnapping. But, I do have a lead on where she
might be, and I have some facts on what's happened to her up to this
point."
Zinder knew the big man
was lying, but he could also see the reason for the pretense. Trelig hadn't done
the deed personally, and he would have made very certain that it wasn't
traceable to him.
"Tell me what
you—they've done to her," he groaned.
Trelig did his best to
look serious. "My sources tell me that your daughter is in the hands of
the sponge syndicate. You've heard of it?"
Gil Zinder nodded, a
cold chill going through him.
"They deal in that
terrible drug from that killer planet," he responded, almost mechanically.
"Quite so,"
Trelig responded sympathetically. "Do you know what it does, Doctor?
It decreases the IQ of someone by ten percent for every day it goes untreated.
A genius is merely average in three or four days, and hardly more than an
animal in ten days or so. There's no cure—it's a mutant thing unlike any life
form we've ever encountered, produced by a mixture of some of our organic
matter and some alien stuff. The effect is painful, too. A burning in the
brain, I believe is the description, spreading to all parts of the body."
"Stop! Stop!"
Zinder sobbed. "What is your price, you monster?"
"Well, remission is
possible," Trelig responded, still sympathetic. "Sponge isn't the
drug, of course, it's the remittent agent. Daily doses and there's no pain and
little loss. The—ah, disease, is made dormant."
"What is
your price?" Zinder almost screamed.
"I believe I can
locate her. Buy off these men. My medical staff has some sponge cultures—quite
illegal, of course, but we've discovered many people in high places in your
situation, blackmailed by these villains. We could go after her, retrieve her,
and give her sufficient sponge to restore her to normal." He shifted
slightly, enjoying himself immensely.
"But I'm a
politician, and ambitious. That's true enough. If I do something, particularly
going up against an illegal band of cutthroats and then risking discovery of my
illegal sponge, I must have something in return. To do it—"
"Yes? Yes?"
Zinder was almost in tears.
"Report your
project a failure and put in to close down," Trelig suggested. "I
will arrange the transfer of—Obie, I think you call it—to my planetoid of New
Pompeii. There you will plan and direct the construction of a much larger model
than the one you have here, one large enough to be used at a distance on, say,
an entire planet."
Zinder was appalled.
"Oh, my god! No! All those people! I can't!"
Trelig smiled smugly.
"You don't have to decide now. Take as long as you want." He got up,
smoothing out his angelic white robes. "But remember, every passing day
Nikki is more subject to the drug. Pain aside, the brain damage is ongoing.
Consider that when thinking over your decision. Every second you waste the pain
increases, and your daughter's brain dies a tiny bit."
"You bastard,"
Zinder breathed angrily.
"I'll initiate a
search anyway," the big man told the scientist. "What I can spare,
but not all-out, because it's merely in the name of humanity. Might take days,
though. Even weeks. In the meantime, with a single call to my office saying you
agree, I will put everybody on it, sparing nothing. Good-bye, Dr. Zinder."
Trelig walked slowly to
the door, then out. It shut behind him.
Zinder stared hard at
the door, then sank into his chair. He considered calling the Intersystem
Police but thought better of it. Nikki would be well-hidden, and accusing the
vice president of the Council of being a sponge merchant and kidnapper without
a shred of evidence—Zinder knew the big man would have an ironclad alibi for
the night past—would be futile. They'd investigate, of course, take days, even
weeks, while poor Nikki . . . They'd let her rot, of course. Let her rot for
five or six days. Then what? A lowgrade moron, washing floors happily for them,
or perhaps a toy given to Trelig's men for sex and sadism.
It was that last he couldn't
stand. Her death he thought he could accept, but not that. Not that.
His mind whirled. There
would be ways later. Obie could cure her if he could get her back soon enough.
And the device he was to build—it could be a two-edged sword.
He sighed, a tired and
defeated little man, and punched the code for Trelig's liaison office on
Makeva. He knew the big man would still be there. Waiting. Waiting for the
inevitable response.
Defeated for now, he
thought resolutely, but not vanquished. Not yet.
New Pompeii was a large
asteroid, a little over four thousand kilometers at its equator. It was one of
those few small bits that inhabit all solar systems that deserved to be called
a planetoid; it was fairly round, rounder than most planets, and its core was
made up of particularly dense material, giving it a gravity of .7 G when
balanced against its ample centrifugal force. The effect took a little getting
used to, and people tended to do things faster and feel tremendous. But since
it was a government-owned resort, that was all to the good.
Its orbit was relatively
stable, by far more circular than elliptical, although night and day were hard
to take; thirty-two sunrises and sunsets in a Council-standard twenty-five
hours did tend to be unsettling to people's internal clocks.
The discomfort was
partially offset by the fact that half the entire planetoid was encased in a
great bubble made of a very thin and light synthetic material; the bubble was a
good light reflector and blurred the view, so it merely seemed to get darker,
then lighter, and so forth, the effect being similar to that on much nicer and
more natural worlds on a partly cloudy day. Accounting for the glow effect, was
a thin—less than a millimeter—gauze material in somewhat liquid form between
the two layers of the bubble. Any punctures were instantly sealed. Even a large
one could if necessary be closed long enough to activate safety bubbles around
the human centers inside. Compressed air, aided by the lush vegetation planted
all over, kept the environment stable.
Theoretically, this was
a place for party leaders on New Outlook to get away from the pressures for a
bit. Actually the resort's existence was known to only a few people, all
intensely loyal to Antor Trelig, who was, after all, the party chairman.
Protected by computer battle systems erected both on nearby natural dust specks
and in special ships, no one could approach within a light-year without being
blown apart, not unless Antor Trelig or his people approved.
The place was
unassailable politically, too; it would take a majority vote of the Council to
enter over Trelig's diplomatic immunity and sovereignty, and Trelig controlled
the largest bloc of votes on the Council.
When they brought Nikki
Zinder to New Pompeii she didn't really pay much attention to her surroundings.
All she could think of was Ben and Ben's promise that he'd come for her. They
put her in a comfortable room; quiet, faceless human servants brought her food
and cleared it away. She lay around most of the day, hugging pillows,
pretending that he was there. She used some pencils and paper she found
to draw innumerable pictures of him, none very good but all showing him as an
angelic superman. She determined to lose some weight for him, to surprise him,
but his absence, aided and abetted by the tremendous variety of natural foods
offered, caused just the reverse. Every time she thought of him she ate,
and she thought of him constantly. Already overweight, by the end of six
weeks she had gained almost eighteen kilos. She didn't really notice.
They also took pictures
of her at various times, even had her read some words to a recorder. She didn't
mind. It wasn't important to her.
Time was meaningless to
her; every minute was terrible and drawn out as long as he wasn't there.
She wrote childish love poems to him and endless reams of letters, which they
said they'd deliver.
It took eight weeks
before Gil Zinder completed all the procedures necessary to shut down the
project and prepare to move. Yulin's role in all that had happened was still
unknown to him, but he was somewhat suspicious of the younger scientist when
the man so eagerly volunteered to work on the new Trelig project. As for
Trelig, he kept Zinder at least satisfied that his daughter was still alive by
providing coded messages along with fingerprint and retinal-pattern ID to go
with the pictures. The fact that she read the statements did not disturb her
father; it indicated to him that she still could read normally and that
Trelig was being a man of his word on neutralizing the sponge.
For the final transfer
of the master computer center and console to New Pompeii, they had to
disconnect Obie from the apparatus that could alter or affect reality. And when
they did, they made a startling discovery.
Zetta, who they had made
younger and more attractive, remained the way they'd designed her, but now she
suddenly realized that she had been changed. The old equations were restored
when Obie broke with the mechanism; she was still transformed, because they had
used the machine to transform her—but now she knew she had been transformed.
She was coming with
them, of course, so there was no danger that a third person who realized the
potential of the device would spread the news, but that worried Ben.
For good reason.
* * *
Nikki Zinder sat in her
room on New Pompeii. She was eating and daydreaming as usual, when, suddenly,
it seemed that a fog simply disappeared from her mind, and she began thinking
with crystal clarity.
She looked around the
room, cluttered with the remains of a long habitation, as if she were seeing it
for the first time. She shook her head and tried to reason out what had
happened.
She felt as if she were
coming down from some sort of drug high. She remembered going to sleep, then
she remembered getting this tremendous crush on Ben, who took her out and
handed her to some people who brought her here. She didn't understand any of
it, though, nor could she relate to it. What had happened was dreamlike, as if
it had happened to someone else.
She got up from the
little table still littered with food and looked down at herself. She could see
enormous breasts and, just barely, some sort of bulge below; but she couldn't
see her own feet. With a gasp she went over to a closet mirror and looked at
herself.
She felt like crying.
She waddled more than walked; her legs were sore from rubbing against each
other every time she moved. Her face was rounder than usual, and she had several
chins. Her hair was always long, but now it was uncombed, unkempt, and tangled.
And, worst of all, she
was hungry.
What's happened to me?
she wondered, then broke down and cried. It eased her panic but did little to
relieve the misery she felt.
"I've got to get
out of here, got to call Daddy," she murmured aloud, then wondered if even
he would still love her as she was now. There was little else to do, though,
and she hunted for some clothes. I'm going to need a twelve-person field tent,
she thought morosely.
She found her old
nightgown, neatly washed and folded, and tried to get it on. It was too tight
now, and it didn't come down nearly far enough. Finally she gave up and thought
for a moment. She spied the rumpled sheet on the bed and, with some difficulty,
managed to pull it off. Folding and tying it, she managed to make at least a
covering. Then she found a paper clip on the writing desk. By unraveling the
clip and using it as a pin, she was able to bind the sheet.
She paused at the desk,
looking down at a half-finished, multipaged letter. It was her handwriting, all
right, but it read like some insane erotic mishmash. She couldn't believe she'd
written it, although she had vague memories of writing others like it.
She walked over to the
door and put her ear up to it, listening. There seemed to be no sound, so she
pressed the stud and it opened. Beyond was a corridor, lined in some kind of
fur, that ran on in one direction past a lot of doors. In the other direction
it was only a short way to an elevator door. She rushed to it, tried to summon
the elevator, but she could tell from the call strip that it was keyed. Looking
around, she discovered some stairs behind what looked like a laundry room, and
she started climbing. It was an easy choice—they only went up.
After only two dozen or
so steps, she was already panting, feeling dizzy and out of breath. Not only
did the extra weight get to her, but she had had no exercise to speak of
for—how long? In over eight weeks of constant eating, she had put on over three
kilos a week.
Panting, heart beating
so hard she could feel it, she started up again. She again felt dizzy, her head
ached, and she could hardly go on. Once she was so dizzy that she almost
slipped and fell. Looking down, she saw she'd climbed less than a dozen meters.
She felt as if she had climbed a tall mountain and realized she couldn't go on
much farther. Finally, one more landing, one more turn, and she saw a door.
Gasping, she almost crawled the last few meters.
The door opened, and a
rat-faced little man looked down on her with mixed scorn and disgust.
"Well, well,
well," he said. "And where do you think you're going, baby
hippo?"
* * *
It took three of them to
carry her, exhausted, back to the elevator and down to her room. From their
questions and her reactions, they did find that whatever spell she'd been under
was now broken. Their docile idiot had somehow become a near-hysterical
captive.
The rat-faced man gave
her a shot to calm her, and it did help a little. While the sedative was taking
hold, he used a wall intercom outside her room to call and report her new
status and to get instructions. This didn't take long, and he returned to the
room and looked at her. She was still breathing hard, but she looked at him and
pleaded, "Will somebody please tell me where I am and what is going
on?"
Rat-face smiled evilly.
"You're the guest of Antor Trelig, High Councillor and Party Chairman of
New Outlook, on his private planetoid of New Pompeii. You should feel
honored."
"Honored,
hell!" she spat. "This is some scheme to get at my father, isn't it?
I'm a hostage!"
"Bright girl,
aren't you?" the man replied. "Well, yes, you've been sort of
hypnotized for the past two months, and now we have to deal with you as you
are."
"My father—"
she started hesitantly, "he isn't—isn't going to . . . ?"
"He'll be here with
his whole staff and everything within a week," the man replied.
She turned her head.
"Oh, no!" she moaned. Then, for a second, she thought about him
seeing her—like this.
"I'd rather die
than have him see me like this," she told the man.
He grinned. "That's
all right. He loves ya anyway. Your condition is a byproduct of a drug we gave
you as an insurance policy. Normally we just give a measured dose of the
sponge, but we had to make sure that nothin' happened to spoil your mind as
long as we need your old man, so we kinda overdid it. ODs affect different
people different ways. In your case the stuff makes you eat like a horse.
Believe me, better than the other way. Better than some other OD reactions,
too, which usually gets you in the sex department somewheres, gets girls all
hairy and deep-voiced, sometimes worse."
She didn't know what
sponge was, but she had the idea that they had addicted her to some kind of
drug that would rot her mind if untreated.
"My daddy can cure
me," she told him defiantly.
The rat-faced man
shrugged. "Maybe he can. I don't know. I just work here. But if he can,
he'll do it only because the boss lets him, and, in the meantime, you'll
continue to grow. Don't worry—some likes 'em big."
She got upset at that,
and at the tone of the remark. "I won't eat another thing," she
resolved.
"Oh, yes you
will," he replied, clearing out the other two men and setting the door to
external operation by key only. "You won't be able to stop. You'll beg for
food—and we got to keep you happy, don't we?" He closed the door.
It took her only three
minutes to verify that the door wouldn't open and she was as much a prisoner as
ever, only now she knew it.
And then hunger gnawed
at her.
She tried to go to
sleep, but the hunger wouldn't let her. It consumed her, triggered by the drug
overdose affecting different areas of her brain.
The little man had been
right; inside of an hour she was starving, and could think of nothing but food.
The door opened, and a
table full of food was pushed in by a person Nikki could only think of as the
most beautiful woman she'd ever seen. The serving lady took her mind off the
food for a second, first because here was human, not robot service, and second
because the woman was so stunning. Then she tore into the food, and the other
turned to go, a sad look on her face.
"Wait!" Nikki
called. "Tell me—do you work here, or are you a prisoner, too?"
The woman's face was
sad. "We're all prisoners here," she replied in a sad, high, lyrical
voice. "Even Agil—that's the one who found you and brought you back. Agil
and I—well, we know about sponge ODs and Antor Trelig's sadism
first-hand."
"He beats you?"
Nikki gasped.
The tall, beautiful
woman shook her head sadly. "No, that's the least of what goes on in this
chamber of horrors. You see," she concluded, turning slowly at the door,
"I am a fully functioning male. And Agil is my sister."
Aboard the Freighter Assateague
The small diplomatic
ship inched close to the interspace freighter airlock. The freighter pilot
watched the ship dock on her forward screens, then checked her computer
equipment and scanners to make certain the seal was complete.
"Make fast, allow
boarding," she said in a strong, accentless, and surprisingly deep voice.
"Affirmative,"
responded a mechanical-sounding version of the same voice, as the ship's
computer locked in.
"Keep station until
further orders," she told the computer, then rose and started the long
walk back to the central airlock.
Why couldn't they put
the locks closer to the bridge? she wondered irritably. But, then again, she'd
only been boarded in space twice before.
She was a tiny woman for
such a big, rich voice, barely 150 centimeters in her bare feet; when dressed,
she wore shiny black boots almost up to her knee, which, invisibly, added an
additional thirteen centimeters to her height. She was still short, but it did
add something, and it added far more psychologically. She was also very
thin, at her waist almost impossibly so. She certainly weighed no more than
forty-one kilograms, if that. Her small breasts seemed in perfect proportion to
the rest of her, and she moved like a cat. She was dressed in her best: a
thick, form-fitting black body-stocking with a matching sleeveless black shirt
that also seemed form-fitted and a black belt with a golden, abstract dragon
design as its buckle. The belt hung on her hips, not as decoration, but as a
carryall for a number of things in hidden compartments and a holster, with a
sleek, jet-black pistol that wasn't hidden.
Her face was an oval
sitting perfectly atop a long neck; it was extremely Chinese in appearance,
much more so than the norm, although everyone looked vaguely Oriental in some
way. Her coal-black hair was cropped short, in the spacer's style.
She wore no jewelry
other than the buckle. Her fingernails were long and sharp and looked as if
they were painted slightly silver. But this was not the case; they'd been
medically toughened and surgically altered. The nails were like ten sharp,
pointed steel claws.
Although she seldom
thought about her appearance, and never when in space, she stopped just before
reaching the lock and studied herself in the mirrored surface of polished
metal. Her skin, a dark yellowish-brown, was creamy-smooth; although she wore
many scars, none were visible in that outfit.
Satisfied, she keyed the
lock. There was a hissing sound as the pressure equalized, and then the red
light over the lock winked out and the green winked on. She pulled the handle,
opening the lock.
All locks could be
opened only manually, and only from the inside. It was a safety precaution that
had saved many a freighter captain's life.
Through the lock and
into the ship walked an ancient, chiseled in stone. The woman had been a big
one once, but age had stooped her, and flesh sagged all over. She looked as if
she were about to drop dead.
But she cursed when
offers from her ship and a gesture from the freighter captain for aid were
tendered. Her face showed a pride and arrogance born of experience and
self-knowledge, and her dark eyes burned with an almost independent intensity.
She stepped clear of the
lock, gathered her white robe about her, and let the captain close the lock
behind them.
The young captain, much
smaller than the matriarch, offered a chair to the visitor. The captain sat on
the deck, Buddha-like, and stared at her visitor.
And the stare was
returned. Councillor Lee Pak Alaina's incredibly alive eyes studied every inch
of the tiny spacer.
"So you're Mavra
Chang," the councillor said at last, in a voice that cracked not only with
age but with authority.
The captain nodded
respectfully. "I have that honor," she responded. Her tone was
respectful, but it lost none of its firmness or confidence.
The old woman looked
around the ship. "Ah, yes. To be young again! The doctors tell me one more
rejuve and I'll lose my mind." She looked back at the captain. "How
old are you?"
"Twenty-seven,"
she replied.
"And already a ship
commander!" the old woman exclaimed. "My, my!"
"I inherited
it," the captain responded.
The councillor nodded.
"Yes, indeed. I know quite a lot about you, Mavra Chang. I have to. Born
on Harvich's World three hundred twenty-seven months ago, oldest of eight
children born to a traditionalist couple, Senator Vasura Tonge and her husband,
Marchal Hisetti, a doctor. Picked up when, despite their best efforts, the
world went Com twenty-two years ago. Some connected friends got you smuggled to
Gnoshi spaceport when they nabbed the rest of your family, and placed you in
the custody of Mak Hung Chang, a freighter captain who was bribed to get you to
safety. Citizen Chang pocketed the money and raised you herself, after getting
a disbarred doctor to alter your appearance more in line with the
captain's."
Mavra looked up, mouth
open. How could anyone possibly have traced her beyond Maki?
"Maki Chang
arrested for smuggling prohibited items into Comworlds, leaving you to find
your own way on the barbarian world of Kaliva at the age of thirteen. Made it
by doing just about everything, legal and illegal. Met and fell in love with a
handsome freighter captain named Gimball Nysongi at the age of nineteen.
Nysongi killed by muggers on Basada five years ago, and since then you've run
this ship alone." She smiled sweetly. "Oh, yes, I know you, Mavra
Chang."
The captain studied the
old woman in increasing wonder. "You've gone to an awful lot of trouble to
find out about me. I assume that those are just the parts you want to
mention?"
That sweet smile
broadened. "Of course, dear. But it's the unmentionable parts that bring
us together here today."
Suddenly Mavra became
businesslike. "What's it about? An assassination? Smuggling? Something
illegal?"
The old woman's smile
vanished. "Something illegal, yes, but not on my part or yours. We studied
the profiles of thousands of scoundrels before contacting you."
"Why me?" the
young woman asked, genuinely intrigued.
"First, because
you're politically amoral—laws and regulations don't bother you. Second,
because you retain some moral principles—you hate the Com even as you supply
it, and with good reason."
Mavra Chang nodded.
"It's more than that. Not just what they did to me—it's what they do to
people. Everybody looks alike, acts alike, thinks alike, except for the party,
whatever it is. Happy little anthills." She spat to illustrate her
feelings.
Councillor Alaina
nodded. "Yes, that, too. Additionally, you've got guts, you're tough
inside and out, your upbringing having made you smart in ways most people never
dream. And being a small, pretty woman doesn't hurt either—people tend to
underestimate you because of your size, and, for this job, a woman will be far
less suspect than a man."
Mavra shifted, bringing
both legs up in front of her, resting her arms on her knees. "So what is
it you want done that a councillor can't do herself?"
"Do you know Antor
Trelig?" Alaina asked sharply.
"Big shot,"
Mavra responded. "Heavy Council influence, also heavy in the rackets.
Practically controls New Outlook as his personal kingdom."
The old woman nodded.
"Good, good. Now I'll tell you a few other things. You know of the sponge
syndicate, of course."
Mavra nodded.
"Well, dear,
darling Antor is its leader. The biggest of them all. We've had some success
against them, but the drug is pervasive, the party structure close-knit and
inbred, and through it and good political moves, Antor has managed to come
within thirteen votes of a majority on the Council."
The young captain
gasped. "But that would give him control of the terror weapons!" she
exclaimed.
"It would
indeed," Alaina agreed. "He would control all of us, every last human
being in the sector. He's been at a dead end for some time, but now he's
announced—secretly, of course, and indirectly—that he has achieved the ultimate
weapon, a weapon that can turn whole worlds Com or whatever he wants overnight.
He's invited fifteen councillors to a demonstration of this new weapon next
week. He thinks the effect will be so tremendous that those of us from
politically divided worlds will have to vote with him."
Mavra was disturbed.
"What will he do if he gets control?"
"Well, Antor has
always idolized the Roman Empire at its height," the old woman responded,
then noticed the blank look. "Oh, don't worry about it. That's a minor
footnote in history, really. But it had an absolute emperor everyone was taught
was a god, a huge slave class, and was known not only for its ability to
conquer and hold huge territory but for its depravity as well. What they could
have done with the technology we have today can only be guessed at in our
wildest nightmares. That's Antor Trelig."
"And does he have
this weapon?" Mavra asked.
Alaina nodded. "I
believe he does. My agents became suspicious when a noted physicist named
Zinder suddenly refused to continue his grant at Makeva and picked up, lock,
stock, computer, and research staff, and vanished. Zinder's ideas were
unorthodox, and he was never popular with the scientific community. He believed
the Markovians converted energy into matter by merely wishing it. He believed
he could duplicate the process." She paused, looking straight at the
captain. "Suppose he was right? Suppose he has succeeded?" the
councillor theorized.
Mavra said more than
asked, "And you think Zinder's gone to work for Trelig?"
"We do,"
replied the old woman. "Not willingly, I don't think. My operatives traced
a suspicious flight out of Makeva about nine weeks ago, a freighter charted by
Trelig, his own pilot, no cargo. Some operatives saw them carry a large bundle,
shaped like a body, into Trelig's shuttle. Moreover, we dug and found out that
a Dr. Yulin, Zinder's top assistant, had his education sponsored by a known
associate of Trelig and is, in fact, a grandson of one of the sponge
bosses."
"So he knew when
Zinder got results, and he has someone else able to check the work. Who do you
think was snatched?" Mavra Chang asked.
"Zinder's daughter.
She has vanished, gone long before the project closed down. He doted on her. We
think she's a hostage, held to make Zinder build a big model of whatever he had
at Makeva. Think of it! A weapon you point at a world, then tell it what you
want that world to be, to look like, to think, whatever—and presto! There
it is!"
Mavra nodded. "I'm
not sure I can believe in something like that, but—" she paused,
remembering. "Way, way back, when I was tiny, I can remember my
grandparents telling stories about something like that, about a place built by
the Markovians where anything was possible." She smiled wistfully.
"Funny, I never remembered that until just now. They were fairy tales, of
course."
"Antor Trelig
isn't," Alaina responded flatly. "And neither, I think, is this
device."
"And you want me to
wreck it?" Mavra guessed.
Alaina shook her head.
"No, I don't think you could. It's too well defended. The best we can
shoot for—and even this is close to impossible—is to get Dr. Zinder out. And,
if our guess is correct, that means rescuing his daughter, Nikki, too."
"Where is this
installation?" Chang asked, all business again.
"Antor calls the
place New Pompeii," replied the old woman. "It's a private planetoid,
his own personal property and preserve. It's also the center of the sponge
syndicate and source of supply for the entire sector."
Mavra whistled. "I
know it. It's impregnable. You'd need the force Trelig wants to command to get
there. Impossible!"
"I didn't say you
had to get into it," the councillor pointed out. "I said you
had to get two people out. We have to know what they know, have what
they have. I can get you in—I'm considered such a doddering old relic that
everyone would be amazed I had even traveled this far. I have been invited to the
demonstration, but they don't expect me to come personally. Like some of the
others, I'll send a representative close to me, someone I can trust. You."
Mavra nodded. "How
long will I have on this asteroid?"
"Antor has asked
for three days. One day he'll use to entertain and to show off New Pompeii. The
second day he'll give his demonstration. On the third—well, the ultimatums and
more sugary charm over them."
"Not much
time," Mavra Chang commented. "I have to find two probably widely
separated individuals, get them out—all under the nose of Trelig's watchdogs,
on his schedule, and on his turf."
Alaina nodded. "I
know it's impossible, but we have to try. At least get the daughter
away. I'm sure they've hooked her on sponge, but that can be worked out. Make
sure nothing worse happens to you, too. Sponge is the ugliest of
narcotics, and that may only be a prelude to what Antor is capable of."
"Suppose he just
hooks us all on sponge in our after-dinner drinks," Mavra worried.
"He won't,"
Alaina assured her. "No, he won't want anything to happen to the
representatives that could spoil his party. He wants everyone hale, healthy,
and in their right minds to be suitably terrified into telling people like me
to surrender. But if he discovers your real purpose, he'll write me off and do
what he wants with you. You understand that."
Mavra nodded silently.
"Will you do
it?"
"How much?"
was the young captain's response.
Alaina brightened.
"Anything at all if you succeed, and I mean that. To half succeed,
bring Nikki out. With his daughter gone, I'm sure Zinder will foul up the
works. For that, shall we say—ten million?"
Mavra gasped. Ten
million would buy the Assateague. With that much and the ship,
she could do just about anything.
"Failure means
death," the councillor warned, "or worse—slavery to Antor Trelig, or
slow death by the sponge. Only once in every century, sometimes not for a
millennium, are men like Antor Trelig born. Ruthless, amoral, sadistic,
dominant monsters. In the end they've all been stopped, but countless millions
are dead because of them. Antor is the worst. New Pompeii will convince you of
that all by itself, I feel certain. See what he thinks of people and worlds,
and then you'll know."
"Half in
advance," responded Mavra Chang.
Councillor Alaina
shrugged. "If you fail, what good will money be anyway?"
Antor Trelig stood over
the pit into which Obie had been integrated into the larger design. Seven
months and a fortune large enough to finance whole planetary budgets had gone
into that hole. Now he watched as giant cranes placed the "big dish"
in place. It, along with the whole complex below, would take up close to half
the underside of his asteroid. From the outside the system would look much like
the largest radio-telescope ever built.
But its purpose was far
more sinister.
Antor Trelig cared
little about the expense; it was a trifle to him, tribute extracted from his
take of the syndicate and from the pilfered budgets of a hundred
syndicate-controlled worlds. Money meant nothing to him in any case, except as
a means to power.
Huge space tugs lowered
the great mirrorlike device into place, slowly, ever so slowly. That didn't
matter to him, either. That the project was so close to completion was all that
mattered.
He walked over to where
Gil Zinder sat watching the procedure, like himself at the mercy of the
engineers and technicians. Zinder looked around, saw who approached. There was
unconcealed contempt on his face.
Trelig was cheery.
"Well, Doctor," he said lightly, "almost there. It's a momentous
occasion."
Zinder frowned.
"Momentous, yes, but not my idea of a happy time," he replied.
"Look, I've done it. Everything. Now let me run my daughter through the
small disk and cure her of the sponge."
Trelig smiled.
"There's no problem, is there? Yulin has succeeded in trimming her back
every few weeks so her obesity won't kill her."
Gil Zinder sighed.
"Look, Trelig, why not trim her back at least to her normal weight? Ninety
kilos is far too large for someone of her height."
The master of New
Pompeii chuckled. "But, here, she weighs only sixty-four kilos! Why,
that's less than she weighed on Makeva!"
The scientist started to
say something nasty, then thought better of it. Of course Nikki weighed less
here, as they all did; but by now her muscles had become accustomed to the
lighter gravity, and extreme obesity was more than merely a scale's weight; it
was ugly and damaging to the body, as well as awkward. On Makeva at 1 G she
probably would be exhausted just walking a hundred meters; here the effect
wasn't much better.
But Zinder realized that
Nikki would have to stay on the other side until Trelig's plans were completed,
and he knew, too, why the ambitious and treacherous Ben Yulin was the only one
trusted with Nikki under the little mirror.
So all the scientist
could do was wait, wait until the big device was in place, wait for his time.
Yulin bothered him most
of all. The man was brilliant, yes, but he was one of Trelig's kind. He was
secure in his own technological superiority over Trelig and any of Trelig's
experts—he was safe. Trelig could not operate Obie's mirror without Yulin, and
Yulin was a follower of Zinder's theories without having the decades of
theoretical research that went into programming the monster. He could never
have built this machine.
But he could operate it.
And that was Zinder's
greatest fear. Once completed and tested, he and Nikki, especially Nikki, would
be superfluous.
Nor could he secretly
program Obie to go so far and no further with Yulin; although he was the
designer, he was never allowed at the control console without Ben Yulin's being
there as well.
New Pompeii had shown
Gil Zinder the plans Antor Trelig had for everyone, the kind of master he'd
make. He'd mentally calculated and checked and rechecked everything, but his
only hope lay in unfounded ideas, untried paths. There had never been a machine
like this before.
* * *
Mavra Chang eased her
small but speedy diplomatic ship into a parking orbit about a light-year from
New Pompeii. She wasn't the first to arrive; seven or eight similar ships had
preceded her and now floated in a neat line. Except for a long-sleeved black
pullover and her belt, she was dressed in the same manner as when she met
Councillor Alaina. The belt was done up to look like a broad band made up of
many strands of thick, black rope, bound together with a much larger and more
solid dragon buckle. No one would know that it was actually a three-meter
bullwhip. Compartments in the buckle contained a number of injectors and
nodules for various purposes; the hidden lifts in her boots and their high,
thick heels contained other useful materials. Yet, the whole outfit was so
natural and formfitting that it appeared she carried nothing at all. She also
wore small earrings that looked like long crystal cubes strung together. They,
too, disguised more surprises.
She rubbed her rear a
little. It still stung where they'd loaded her with antidotes and antitoxins to
protect her from just about everything they could think of. She felt as if,
should she get a cut, her veins would drip clear liquid.
"Mavra Chang as
representative of Councillor Alaina," she told the unseen guardians of New
Pompeii on the frequency they'd instructed.
"Very well,"
replied a toneless voice only vaguely male. "Stand to in line. We will
wait for the others before transferring."
She cursed silently at
this last. They weren't taking any chances—the special properties of this ship,
and its nicely disguised life-support modules, would be useless. They would go
together, in their ship.
She took out a mirror
and checked herself out. She was wearing some light cosmetics this time—a
little brown lipstick, a slight sheen on the hair giving it a reflective,
almost metallic blue cast. She had even painted her metallic nails a dull
silver. It served to disguise the fact that they were somewhat unusual. The
cosmetics were for Trelig. Although literally bisexual, like all his race—he
had both male and female sex organs—he tended to favor the male in appearance
and in sexual appetite.
Finally they had all
arrived. A large ship came from the direction of the star Asta, a fancy private
passenger liner; one by one they docked with it, put their own ships on
automatic station, and transferred.
The group, which
ultimately included fourteen, had only two councillors. The rest were
representatives, and Mavra could see by the look of some that she was not the
only diplomatic irregular in the crowd. The situation worried her; if she noticed
this, then surely Trelig would, too. He probably expected it. This, then, was
confidence.
The cabin attendants were
polite but efficient. They were true citizens of New Harmony, bred to service.
Dark, hairless, each about 180 centimeters tall, muscular, and dressed only in
light kilts and sandals, their eyes had the dullness that was typical of
Comworlders.
The Com was the
descendant of every utopian group of the original race. They fulfilled the
dream of every utopian state: an equal share of all wealth, no money except for
interstellar trade, no hunger, no unemployment. Genetic engineering made them
all look alike, too, and biological programming devices fitted them to their
jobs perfectly. They were also programmed to be content with whatever job they
had—their goal was service. The individual meant nothing; humanity was a
collective concept.
The people's appearance
and jobs did differ from Com world to Com world, tailored to the different
environments, the different requirements, and such on each. The systems, too,
varied slightly from one world to another. Some bred all-females, some retained
two sexes, and some, like New Harmony, bred everyone as a bisexual. A couple
had dispensed with all sexual characteristics entirely, depending on cloning.
Most worlds were set up
by well-intentioned visionaries who would establish the system. Then the
hierarchy would itself be remade, and there would be a perfect society, one
without any frustrations, wants, needs, or psychological hang-ups.
Perfect human anthills.
But, in most cases, the
party that established them never seemed to get around to phasing itself out. A
few had tried, and the societies they'd established had collapsed from their
inability to deal with natural disaster or unanticipated problems.
Most, like New Harmony,
never tried. The ambition, greed, and lust for power that created the dedicated
revolutionary and sustained him in bad times clung to existence for a variety
of reasons. Having eradicated those wretched tendencies in their populations,
they could not wipe out those weaknesses in themselves. And so New Harmony,
after five hundred years in the Com, still had a party hierarchy of several
thousand administrators for the various diplomatic and economic zones, and they
had Anton Trelig as the one born to lead them.
Now the rest of the
human race was discovering how well he had been bred.
There were a few perfunctory
introductions and such, but not much conversation on the trip in. Mavra
immediately realized, though, that Trelig would not be fooled by this motley
crew. A two-meter-tall, ruddy-faced, and full-bearded man with bright-blue eyes
was definitely not from the Com world of Paradise, where all the people
were bisexual, identical, and about two-thirds his height. He was definitely a
freighter captain like herself, or a barbarian from the newer settled worlds.
Eight males and six females—she thought; with two it was hard to tell—all there
more to get information than to be overawed.
The New Harmony stewards
walked down the aisle, collecting pistols. They explained that each of them
would be further screened for weapons before disembarking and suggested that surrendering
all of them now would save later embarrassment.
Mavra handed in her
pistol; the weapons she really counted on had passed every scanner she'd ever
tried. If they hadn't, she wouldn't have them with her now. Landing on New
Pompeii, she found she had been right. She walked boldly through the scanner,
and it didn't paralyze her, as it did to two of the others carrying concealed
broken-down pistols and knives.
Finally they were all
cleared, and Mavra looked around.
The small spaceport was
designed for two ships such as this one; there was another in port, almost
certainly Trelig's private craft. Guards and scanners were all over, but she
expected that. Her mission didn't look impossible.
She could use some help
from the others, she knew, but dared not enlist them for the same reason they
couldn't use her. It was highly probable that at least one, maybe more, was an
Antor Trelig plant.
No luggage was
off-loaded; none had been allowed. Trelig would provide, he'd said, and he
limited what anyone could carry in the process.
The man himself stood
there to greet them—tall, much taller than the New Harmonites, a giant-sized,
muscular, exceedingly handsome version of the model. He wore flowing white
robes and, with his very long hair, looked like an angel.
"Welcome! Welcome! Dear
friends!" he called in that now famous orator's voice. He'd paid good
money for it, and he'd gotten value received. He then greeted each in turn, by
name, and kissed their hands in the universal formal ritual of greeting. When
he took Mavra's his bushy eyebrows, another departure from the New Harmony
model, went up.
"Such amazing
fingernails!" he exclaimed. "My dear, you resemble a sexy cat."
"Oh?" she
replied, not disguising her contempt. "I thought you killed all the cats
on New Harmony."
He grinned wickedly, and
went on. When all had been greeted he led them out of the small, plush
terminal. The sight was stunning. First, it was green—exceptionally green, a
garden of tall but carefully manicured grass. To their left was a great forest
that seemed to go off to the seemingly nearby horizon; to their right, small
hills covered with brightly colored trees and flowers. And in the center,
perhaps five hundred meters away, was a city the likes of which they'd never
seen.
A hill dominated the
scene; atop its grassy slopes was a tall building made of polished marble. It
was enormous, like an amphitheater or temple. Below, at the hill's base, stood
stylish buildings of an ancient model, also of marble, with huge Roman columns
supporting great roofs that were decorated with mythological sculptures cut
into the stone. Each had great marble steps going up to its entrance, and some
were open enough that the visitors could observe spacious interior plazas
festooned with living flowers and great statuary and decorated with fountains
at their centers. The central building had a dome and the longest and grandest
staircase. Trelig led them to it.
"I allow as little
technology as is practical here," he explained as they walked. "The
servants are humans, the food and drink is hand-prepared, and in some cases
hand-harvested. No powered vehicles. I make some concessions, of course, such
as the lighting, and the whole world is climate-controlled and maintained under
the plasma dome and air pumps, but we like to keep the feeling rustic."
They found no difficulty
with the walk or with the stairs; the .7 gravity made them all feel great,
almost as if they could fly, and they weren't as tired at the exercise as they
would be walking a kilometer on a one-G world.
Inside the main building
was a great hall. A real oak table had been opulently set; it was low to the
ground, and they would sit on padded and soft fur-covered cushions when eating.
Below the table area was a slightly sunken wooden polished floor, like a dance
floor, and the whole area was circled by great marble columns. Between the
columns were stretched silken hangings, apparently in strips. They blocked the
view, though.
Mavra looked up and saw
that the dome had a complex mosaic design inside. Lighting was
adequate—although the hall was somewhat dim except in the area of the polished
floor—but so indirect that it was impossible to tell its source.
Trelig seated them all,
and took his own place at the head of the table. Fancy fruit cups were set in
front of each place, real fruit, they all noted. Other exotic fruits
decorated the tables—kumquats, oranges, pineapples. Many poked gingerly at the
fruit with their chopsticks; most had never had the real thing before.
"Try the
wine," their host urged. "Real stuff, with alcohol. We have our own
vineyards here and turn out some pretty good stuff."
And it was good,
far better than the synthetics they'd all been raised on. Mavra picked at the
fruit. Raised on synthetics, she preferred them to the real thing. The wine,
though, was excellent. Such stuff was generally available, but usually priced
far out of reach for most people.
Trelig clapped his
hands, and four women appeared. They were all tanned and dark-haired, but
otherwise distinctly different, certainly products of worlds other than New
Harmony. They were all longhaired, wore heavy cosmetics, and were also heavily
perfumed. They were also barefoot, and dressed only in filmy, single-piece
dresses of unfamiliar but obviously ancient design. You could almost see right
through them.
They cleared away the
fruit cups and wine glasses with efficiency, not glancing directly at anyone at
the table or saying a word. No sooner did they disappear beyond the curtains
than other women, behaving with the same glassy-eyed efficiency, appeared
carrying perfectly balanced silver trays on their heads.
"Disgusting,"
Mavra heard a man near her snarl. "Human beings waiting on other human
beings when robots can do the job."
Most nodded slightly in
agreement, although she wondered how many of the visitors were Comworlder
politicians with whole worlds of slaves.
The performance
continued throughout the meal, each course being perfectly timed. Wine was
supplied in great variety and quantity, and never was a glass allowed to remain
empty. The women performed as if they were machines. Mavra counted eight
distinct serving girls, and who knew how many others supplied them out of sight
beyond the curtain.
The meal was strange,
exotic, and exceptionally good, although Mavra was filled after the second
course and several others quit along the way. The bearded man wolfed down the
food, though, and Trelig took some of each course.
Afterward, he showed
them how the cushions unfolded into recliners, and they relaxed, with more wine
and snacks, while a small circus of musicians and jugglers performed in the lit
wooden floor area. The festivities went on for some time, and the evening was
enjoyable. Trelig knew how to throw one hell of a banquet.
Finally when the last of
the performers was through and the guests applauded politely in unison, it was
time for Trelig to settle them all for the night. "You will find
everything you need there, a complete modern toilet. Sleep well! We have an
amazing day tomorrow!"
He led them down to the
stage and through a curtain, which revealed a long marble hall. Their footsteps
echoed as they walked along the hall, which seemed to go on forever. Finally
they made a turn and came upon another, seemingly identical corridor. Now,
though, Trelig opened a large, hinged door of solid oak, perhaps ten
centimeters thick, and showed each one to his room.
The accommodations were
sumptuous and individually decorated. Mavra's had a thick carpet of some sort
of fur, a writing desk, dressing table, bathroom, old-style dresser, and an
enormous round bed.
She was happy to see it.
Although she prided herself on holding her liquor, the wine had been
exceptionally strong, perhaps deliberately so. She hadn't really noticed the
effect until she'd stood up for the walk to the rooms. She felt dizzy, slightly
giddy. At first she suspected the wine had been drugged, but then realized it
was just potent.
Trelig bid her goodnight
and closed the great door with a chunk. Immediately she went over to it
and pulled on the bronze handle.
It was locked, as she
knew it would be.
Next she searched the
rooms. One of her earrings buzzed slightly, and she moved to the center of the
room and stood under a pretty but largely ornamental chandelier. Getting the
chair from the writing table she climbed up. The buzzing grew exceptionally
loud. She nodded to herself. Fixed in the base of the chandelier was a tiny,
almost invisible remote camera. It was hinged so it could be positioned by
remote control in any direction, and had an infrared lens attachment.
Within ten minutes she
found two other cameras, one in the bathroom proper, the only place the
chandelier camera couldn't reach, and another actually hidden in the shower
head. The three cameras were placed so that no area of the room was invisible
to them.
The cameras were
cleverly hidden, yes, but not so cleverly that they wouldn't be found by anyone
looking for them. Trelig wanted them found by anyone who would care
about them at all; it was a demonstration of his power and their futility.
They were of standard
design. She went back to look at the chandelier, saw it wasn't following her
more than haphazardly, and then walked over to the bed. No sheet, she noticed.
But one wasn't needed in the perfect climate control of the room. No way to
hide doing something under a cover, though.
She sat on the edge of
the bed, back to the camera, and slipped off her boots, then slid the belt-whip
over her head and put it off to her right, away from the camera's view. Then
the earrings, on top the belt. She reached over to a night table, pulled some
tissues, and picked up a small mirror. She started to remove some of her makeup.
As she was doing this,
her feet turned one of the boots on its side, and then held it in place while
the other foot released studs at four points. The sole fell open on tiny inner
hinges, revealing a number of small gadgets. She gingerly got one she needed,
clasping it between her toes of one foot, and then grasped another with the
other foot.
Ready now, she slipped
off the pullover, got up, and pulled down the body-stocking. As she leaned down
to take it off, her left hand grabbed both of the devices.
Nude now, she stood up
and actually turned around. The motion looked natural, but the watchers would
draw the obvious conclusion: nothing hidden in the body cavities. Her fingers,
the same ones that suckered rubes with cards and the shell game since she was
small, held the two small devices invisibly. Assuming the lotus position on the
bed, she turned the lights off with her right hand.
In the exact instant the
lights went off, she dropped one of the devices on the bed and pointed the
other at the chandelier. She was guided by a beam of light she could see only
because of special contact lenses she wore.
Striking the camera, she
snatched the other device, a tiny rectangle, and positioned it so it rested on
the pillow, pointed toward the camera. Satisfied, she put the first gadget down
and relaxed in the lotus, eyes closed.
All of this had taken
less than ten seconds.
Satisfied by what she
could see through her special lenses, that she'd gotten it right, she opened
her eyes, relaxed, then carefully and silently slid off the side of the bed,
trying not to jiggle the little rectangle.
Free of the bed, she
checked and saw that the gismo was still in position. The device was incredibly
complex; she'd discovered it only when it was used to trap her in a minor con,
and she'd paid plenty for it. What it did, simply, was freeze the first image
the camera saw and hold it there. There was an automatic adjustment of several
seconds from the standard to the infrared mode, a little longer to refocus. She
then had eleven seconds to shoot and position the feedback projector, as it was
called.
Quietly, with the
stealth and caution of an expert burglar, Mavra dressed herself. She started to
put on the boots, then thought better of it, remembering the clattering echo of
the halls. She removed the buckle from the whip-belt and used its pin to fix it
under the whip, then turned the small whip handle so it could be easily drawn
by releasing the nearly invisible binding studs.
She hadn't been removing
her makeup with the tissue; she'd been smearing it evenly all over her face and
rubbing her hands with it as well. Now she took a small shrink-wrapped pack
from her left boot and opened it, removing the tiny pad. Carefully,
methodically, she smoothed it over all exposed areas of her skin. The mild
chemical, reacting to another in the makeup, caused it to turn a deep black.
Next she removed the special contact lenses, squeezed two drops in her eyes
from a nearly minute dropper, then took another, different pair out of her pack
and slipped them in. They were clear, but if she activated the tiny power
supply in her buckle, they would turn into infrared lenses. More than one on
New Pompeii had cat's eyes.
Switching to that mode,
she picked up the mirror carefully and looked at herself. She looked
exceedingly monstrous, of course, but the chemical blackener was an effective
shield against the heat radiation infrared viewers saw. She touched up a few
spots until she could see nothing in the mirror. Her hands she checked
visually.
Then came the nodules.
They fit under her long, sharp nails, and the injector point actually merged
with the points of her fingernails. She loaded each one of them, not all with
the same stuff. More than once these nasty little devices had saved her
neck—and cost others dearly.
Finally she touched the
second power-pack module on the buckle. This energy source fed the material in
the chemicals and in her clothing. Heat-sensitive devices would ignore her.
They were still trying
to figure out that jewel robbery on Baldash.
She wanted this job over
and done quickly, if possible. The girl, anyway. If it could be done tonight,
fine. If not, she'd at least know the lay of the land.
The big door lock was no
problem, but the four sensors in the door were. The door was nearly flush with
the mounting; she could only slip in two matching strips. The third took some
work with a blade. Though she had no knife, the specially treated organic
material in her boot had served as one. The toenail of a large animal on some
distant world, sharpened, treated like her own nails. A nice, thin, flat blade.
The other strips slipped
in easily, and she carefully and slowly opened the door. No alarms, so she
peered cautiously outside. The hallway was dark but apparently not guarded. For
all his reliance on people, Trelig used a professional supersecurity system,
one he'd bought and paid for. And that was his mistake. Successful
criminals—the ones they hadn't caught—had countered them long ago. They would
be on infrared, and with mikes. If she didn't make much noise and if the
protective circuits were in, she should be invisible.
She stepped out into the
hall and carefully closed the door behind her without a sound. There were no
flags. She was safe.
This would have been
harder if he'd kept the hall lit, she thought.
But nothing was
impossible in this line to the Cat Goddess, as she was called on lots of wanted
lists. They even suspected who she was, but they had never proved anything.
She met no one on her
way back to the banquet hall, which, she discovered, was the only obvious
entrance or exit. Only one camera there; she'd checked that at dinner.
She moved as close to
the entrance as she could and peered out of the curtains. The camera, which was
linked to a small paralyzer, rotated along a rail on the base of the dome. A
single fixed camera in the dome itself wouldn't have supplied adequate
coverage; the moving one covered the entire area in thirty seconds. She timed
the movements repeatedly to see that they hadn't varied it. Only for twelve
seconds was the entrance out of view. And the entrance was about ninety meters
from her.
Experience and training
paid in the calculations—the area of view and the like going through her mind.
She took two deep breaths, then watched the little camera go around, hit the precisely
calculated point. At that instant she sped for the entrance, making it outside
in under eleven seconds, something considered impossible, she knew, for such a
tiny woman.
But this was .7 G.
She didn't take the
steps, but climbed, catlike, over the side and down to the bushes below. It was
not dark outside, but there was no one in view, and she was quick despite the
vertical drop.
The trick was a tiny
little bubble, several of which she carried in her belt. The bubble, no larger
than the head of a pin, formed an incredibly thin secretion that created
tremendous suction when rubbed between the palms of her hands. It had been her
special secret of success in burglary; she had created the stuff herself.
She descended thirty
meters in seconds. Taking refuge behind some bushes, she rubbed her hands,
causing the substance to solidify and ball up, then fall away. The stuff didn't
last long, but it was excellent for thirty or forty seconds.
She would have preferred
darkness, but there was no darkness beneath the reflective plasma dome.
Daylight would have to do.
Creeping around the side
of the central building, she heard voices and froze. When they continued in a
sort of rhythmic chant, she ventured out, keeping close to the walls and cover,
then looked in on one of the open plazas. Four women, dressed as the servants
had been, were practicing some sort of dance to the tune of a lyrelike
instrument played by another of them. They all seemed to move in that dreamy
state, oblivious to the world. Something was odd in their appearance.
They were too beautiful,
Mavra decided. Incredibly, almost deformed in their sexual characteristics, the
type of dream girl lovesick prospectors bought pictures of. Their movements,
too, seemed unusual; there was a sense of total femininity there, as if they
might be some sort of mythological fertility goddesses. Such manners and moves
were eerie, unnatural, even a little inhuman. They were more erotic caricatures
of people than real human beings.
She decided not to test
their apparent dreaminess, though; she needed someone alone.
The little world seemed
to keep Trelig's hours; few were about. She wished she knew exactly how many
people were on the planetoid; it didn't seem like many.
Slipping into the next
building, a lower but still grand marble structure, she practically ran into
someone. The young woman was average-looking, a little unkempt, and had dirty
feet. She was nude. Next to her stood a bucket on three little wheels. She was
down on all fours, and, as Mavra watched, she realized the woman was scrubbing
the marble floor with a stiff brush.
Mavra looked around but
saw no sign of anyone else. Quietly she stepped out and started toward the
woman, whose back and rear were open to her as she made her way slowly backing
down the hall.
Mavra straightened her
right little finger while clenching the others. The straightening made the
little injector head reach the tip of the nail.
The woman noticed
something odd before Mavra reached her. When she turned around, she saw the
small, black-covered woman.
"Hi!" she
said, a crooked smile on her face. Mavra looked down at her with pity. The
expression was simple, the eyes dull and blank; A spongie, Mavra realized. She
stooped to the woman's level.
"Hi,
yourself," she responded kindly. "What's your name?"
"Hiv—Hivi—"
the woman struggled, then she turned sheepish. "I can't say it good no
more."
Mavra nodded
sympathetically. "Okay, Hivi. I'm Cat. Will you tell me something?"
The woman nodded slowly.
"If I can."
"Do you know
somebody called Nikki Zinder?"
The woman looked blank.
"I don't 'member names so good, like I told ya."
"Well, is there any
place they keep people here who never come out?" Mavra tried.
The girl shook her head
uncomprehendingly. Mavra sighed. Obviously Hivi or whatever her name was was
too far gone on the drug to tell her what she needed. She decided on another
tack.
"Well, do you have
a boss, then? Somebody who tells you where to clean?"
The girl nodded.
"Ziv do it."
"Where is Ziv
now?" Mavra prodded.
The woman looked blank,
then brightened for a moment. "Down there," she replied, pointing
away down the hall.
Mavra was tempted just
to leave her there; the girl was no threat. However, Hivi retained some intelligence,
and that might mean an unintentional betrayal. As she reached out to caress the
woman, the nail of her right little finger touched the girl's arm and the
injector shot its fluid into her.
The girl jumped a
little, and put her hand on her shoulder, a puzzled expression on her face.
Then came a general rigidity, the girl frozen, looking at her shoulder.
Mavra leaned close to
her, nervous that someone else would come by. "You did not see anyone
while washing this hall," she whispered. "You did not see me. You
will not see me. You will not see anything I do. Now you will go on with your
work."
The girl unfroze, seemed
even more puzzled. She looked around, right at Mavra Chang, then past her,
unseeing. Finally, she shrugged, turned, and resumed her brushing of the floor.
Mavra went on.
It would have been
easier to have killed her; a few simple pressings on certain nerves in the neck
would not have wasted a hypno on such a dry hole. Doing so would, perhaps, have
been more merciful. But, although Mavra Chang had killed before, she killed
only those who deserved it. Antor Trelig, perhaps, for what he did to these
once-normal people and for what he might do to others—but not a helpless slave.
And that's what all
those women were, she knew. The serving girls, the dancers, the scrubwoman.
Slaves, created by the sponge, by the underdoses and overdoses of the mutant
disease.
She did not find Ziv;
she did, however, prowl silently through many halls, often dodging occasional
dull-eyed slaves and security eyes. She moved stealthily through several rooms
decorated with great opulence and through other rooms of extreme decadence.
Spongies so catatonic they could be placed rigidly in positions to serve as
lamps and furniture—the sight made her ill even while the practical part of her
wondered how they were fed.
She did not, however,
find anyone in obvious authority, and she started back to the sleeping quarters
disappointed and disgusted. If this was Antor Trelig's way of treating the
humans who came within his control, what sort of a master would he make of the
civilized worlds? Alaina had been right; the man was not a human but a monster.
She was almost back at
her room when she spotted someone she needed. True, the woman looked and
dressed much like the others, but she had a conspicuous difference: she wore a
shoulder strap and a pistol. The woman was moving slowly down the hall,
checking on doors and the like, when Mavra crept in. There was no one else
around.
Like an animal stalking
prey, the tiny agent seemed to move with dead silent liquidity, closer, ever
closer to the tall woman with the pistol. Now, only a few meters away, she
pounced. The big woman turned at the movement, her face registering extreme
surprise at the black, sleek visage running toward her. Mavra was so fast that
the guard's hand had only started to move to the pistol when her attacker
leaped and kicked full force into her victim's stomach.
The guard had the wind
completely knocked out of her. Mavra, landing and somersaulting, was on her feet
again as if by magic and back to the guard. Both the index- and middle-finger
nail injectors of her right hand found their mark while Mavra's left hand
grabbed the woman's gun-hand. The double dose weakened her opponent rapidly,
and, although the larger woman was winning her battle, the hypnos took hold
before she could draw the pistol.
Mavra relaxed and rolled
off her quarry, now frozen in a strange position.
"Get up!"
Mavra ordered, and the other complied. "Where is a room where we will not
be disturbed or interrupted?"
"In there,"
came the mechanical reply. The woman pointed to a nearby door.
"No cameras or
other devices in there?" Mavra asked crisply.
"No."
The small woman ordered
her drugged victim into the room, and she followed. It was a small office of
some sort, not currently in use. Mavra sat the woman on the floor, then kneeled
down, facing her.
"How are you
called?" she asked the drugged guard.
"I am Micce,"
the other replied.
Mavra sighed.
"Okay, Micce, tell me, how many people are there on New Pompeii?"
"Forty-one at the
moment," the other responded. "Not counting the wild folk, the living
dead, and the guests."
"Counting everyone
but the new guests, how many?" Mavra prodded.
"One hundred
thirty-seven."
Mavra nodded. That told
what she was up against. "How many armed guards?"
"Twelve."
"Why are no more
precautions than this taken?" the dark agent asked. "Surely greater
security is called for."
"They rely on
automatic sensing in the important areas," the guard explained. "As
for the rest, no one could get off New Pompeii without the proper codes."
"Who knows the
codes?" Mavra asked.
"Only Councillor
Trelig," the guard responded. "And they are changed daily in a
sequence known only to him."
Mavra Chang frowned.
That would make things a little harder.
"Is the girl Nikki
Zinder here?" she asked.
The guard nodded.
"In the guard quarters."
With more questioning,
Mavra established the location of the guard quarters, the general layout of the
building, who was in there at any given time, Nikki's exact room, and how to
get in and out. She also established that everyone on New Pompeii was on sponge
except Trelig himself, and the supplies were brought in daily by a
computer-controlled ship so that no one could get a large quantity and rebel
against Trelig. That piece of information was interesting. So the sponge
was brought in on a little scout, made for four passengers if need be. The
guard's description suggested that it was a Model 17 Cruiser, a craft Mavra
knew well. It would be perfect.
She took the guard's
pistol and shoulder belt after determining that the guards themselves checked
their equipment in and out of a small guard locker. She suggested to the guard
that the pistol and belt were still in place, so the gun would not be missed.
It would be checked back in and perhaps not discovered gone for days. Mavra
smiled; she was armed again, and luck was breaking her way due to Trelig's
conceit about his security.
"Where is Dr.
Zinder?" she asked the guard, after giving her another jolt of the hypno.
"He is on
Underside," the guard replied. Of the forty-one people, one was Trelig,
one was Nikki, one was Zinder, twelve were guards, five were assistants to
Zinder, and the other twenty-one were slaves of one kind or another. That was
enough to tell Mavra Chang that she hadn't a prayer of getting Zinder himself
out, but a good chance at Nikki. Ten million wasn't "anything," but
it sure beat nothing.
After getting the guard
routine from the hypnoed woman, Mavra told her to forget about her totally and
resume her normal routine. The guard did so without further comment, and
treated Mavra as if she weren't there.
It took another forty
minutes to return to the main building, avoid the cameras, and get back to her
room. The strips were still in place on the door, and, after closing and
relocking it, she carefully removed them. The holographic memory projector was
still in place, so the camera was still showing an empty, quiet room with a
meditating figure on the bed.
Tidying up, removing the
blackface, reassembling the boot, and reloading and reforming the belt took
more time. As soon as she finished, she edged over next to the projector on the
bed, careful not to jiggle it too much, until she was next to it, almost
touching it. Infinite patience is the best tool of a burglar.
Assuming the correct
position, she took the little device, quickly palmed it, and slipped it out of
sight when the camera was directed elsewhere. When the camera swung back, only
a few seconds later, it photographed the same nude woman in the same meditating
position. Only a fanatical observer, which no guard was—watching sleeping people
was an incredibly dull job—would have realized that the figure was seated in a
slightly different position at a slightly different angle.
Suddenly her breathing
became more rapid, and then she stirred, flexed, stretched out on the bed, and
turned over. Her right hand dangled just over the edge of the bed for a second,
as she dropped an unseen object onto black cloth.
And only then did Mavra
Chang sleep.
* * *
If anyone knew of her
roamings, they did not betray that fact the next morning. The major dispute was
over Trelig's requirement that they all take showers and then don light, filmy
garments and sandals. He apologized and offered to launder their own garments
during their trip, but it was clear what he was doing. He could both examine
their garments and make certain that little if anything was taken to Underside.
Mavra was confident that
the shielding in her boots and in the belt would be sufficient to escape
detection; however, if anyone did try to open them, there would follow a
hard-to-explain and quite messy violent explosion. She doubted if Trelig's
people would go that far because of the defense mechanism risk; but her tools
were to be denied her when they would do the most good. The pistol was not
particularly hard to conceal; she'd hidden it against a hall cornice affixed
with putty outside the room.
She saw the surprised
expressions when she entered the hall for breakfast; without the boots she was
even tinier than usual. They all noticed, but no one was tactless enough to
mention the subject.
After eating, Trelig
addressed them. "Citizens, distinguished guests all, may I now explain why
you were all invited here, and what you will see today," he began.
"First, let me refresh your memories a bit. As you all no doubt know, we
are not the first civilization to have colonized worlds far beyond the one of
our civilization's birth. The artifacts of that earlier, nonhuman civilization
have been found on countless dead worlds. Dr. Jared Markov discovered them, and
so we call them the Markovians."
"We know all that,
Antor," snapped one councillor. "Get to the point."
Trelig gave a killing
glance, then continued. "Now, the artifacts they left us when they died
out or disappeared over a million years ago consist entirely of ruined
structures—buildings. No furniture, no machinery, no utensils, no objects of
art, nothing. Why? Generations of scholars have mused on this, to no avail. It
seemed as insolvable a mystery as why they died out. But one scientist, a
Tregallian physicist, had an idea."
They stirred slightly,
nodding. They all knew who he meant.
"Dr. Gilgam Valdez
Zinder," Trelig went on, "thought that our failure to solve the
Markovian riddle stemmed from our too orthodox view of the universe. First, he
postulated the concept that the ancient Markovians did not need artifacts
because, somehow, they could convert energy into matter merely by willing it.
We know that deep beneath the crust of each Markovian world was a semiorganic
computer. Zinder believed the Markovians were directly, mentally linked to
their computers, which were, in turn, programmed to turn any wish into reality.
So he set to work on duplicating this process."
There were murmurings
now. Trelig was confirming the rumors that had brought them here, rumors too
horrible to believe.
"From this point,
Zinder went on to postulate that the raw material they used for this
energy-to-matter conversion was a basic, primal energy, the only truly stable
component in the universe," Trelig explained. "He spent his life
searching for this primal energy, proving its existence. He worked out its
probable nature mathematically, designing his own self-aware computer to help
him in this end."
"And he found
it," a woman who looked no more than a child but was an elder of a Com
race interjected.
Trelig nodded. "He
did. And, in the process, produced a set of corollaries that are staggering in
their implications. If all matter, all reality, is merely a converted form of
this energy, then where did we come from?" He sat back, enjoying
the expressions on the faces of those who were able to grasp the implications.
"You're saying the
Markovians created us?" the red-bearded man called out. "I find that
hard to accept. The Markovians have been dead for a million years. If their
artifacts died with their brains, why didn't we die, too?"
Trelig's face showed
surprise. "A very good question," he noted. "One with no clear
answer, though. Dr. Zinder and his associates believe that some sort of massive
central computer was established, somewhere out there among the other galaxies,
that keeps us stable. But its location is neither here nor there, since it is
almost certainly beyond our capability to get there in the foreseeable future,
even if we knew where 'there' is. The important fact is that such a computer does
exist, or we wouldn't be here. Of course, it allows, shall we say, local
variations in the pattern. If it didn't, then the local Markovian worlds would
never have been able to use their own godlike computers. And, what they
could do Dr. Zinder has discovered how to do! It is the ultimate proof of
his theories."
Several in the audience
looked uneasy; there were a couple of nervous coughs.
"Do you mean, then,
that you have built your own version of this god machine?" Mavra Chang
asked.
Trelig smiled. "Dr.
Zinder and his associate, Ben Yulin, the child of a close associate of mine
from Al Wadda, have built a miniature version of it, yes. I persuaded them to
move their computer here, to New Pompeii, where it would not fall into the wrong
hands. The timing was perfect. They were just completing the hookup of a much,
much larger version of the machine as well." He stopped a moment, frowning
slightly, but his overall expression was playful.
"Come with
me," he invited them, rising from the table. "I see disbelief and
skepticism. Let us go to Underside and I'll show you."
They all got up and
followed him out the entrance, across the grassy plaza, and toward a small
structure that looked something like a solid marble gazebo, off by itself to
the left.
Although its housing was
built to blend with the Neo-Grecian and Roman architecture, it was clear when
they reached the little house that it was some sort of high-speed elevator.
Trelig selected a
smooth, bare area and placed his hand, palm down, on it. His fingers tapped out
a pattern too rapid for any of them to catch, and, suddenly, the wall faded,
showing the interior of a large high-speed car. There were eight seats with
head rests and belts in it.
"We will have to
make two trips," Trelig apologized. "The first eight of you, here,
please take the seats and fasten the straps. The descent is extremely fast and
very uncomfortable, I'm afraid, although some gravity compensation has been
built in to minimize the effect. Once the first group is away, the smaller
maintenance car can be used for the rest of us. Don't worry—there's a two-level
exit on Underside."
Mavra was in the first
group. She took a chair, relaxed, and fastened the straps. The door, actually
some sort of force field with a wall projection over it, solidified again, and
they felt themselves dropping quickly.
The trip was uncomfortable;
small plastic bags had been provided for the two or three who needed them.
Mavra was amazed at the little car system; she'd heard of such a thing but had
never seen one, let alone been in one. They had been designed for a few of the
planets whose surfaces were uninhabitable but where, for one reason or another,
life at levels below the surface was possible.
It took over ten minutes
to reach the other end, and, even at that, they traveled at a tremendous rate
of speed. Finally they felt the car slow, and then crawl to a stop. They waited
three or four minutes, nervously wondering if they were stuck. Then they heard
the sound of something above them, and, less than a minute later, the force
field and solid projection in front of them dissolved, and Trelig was there,
smiling.
"Sorry about the
delay. I should have warned you," he said cheerily, sounding not the least
bit sorry.
They unbuckled their
belts and got up, stretching, and walked out into a narrow corridor. They
followed their host down the steel-clad pathway. It turned and ended on a large
riveted metal platform with railings all around. Ahead of them was an enormous
shaft that seemed to have no top or bottom. The size of the round gap dwarfed
them to insignificance, and they gasped in awe. All around the shaft were
panels, countless modules with even, small gaps between.
A long bridge led from
the platform across the shaft; a wide bridge of the same metal flooring as the
platform but with 150-centimeter sidewalls of a plastic substance. They
realized that they were somewhere in the bowels of a great machine.
Trelig stopped in the
middle of the bridge, and had the party gather around him. Everywhere, were the
hum and crackle of active circuits opening and closing, echoing off the shaft
walls. He had to raise his voice to be heard.
"This shaft runs
from a point about halfway between the theoretical equator and the South Pole
of New Pompeii on the rocky and unprotected surface, almost to the core of the
planetoid," he shouted. "It is fusion powered, indirectly, through
the solar and plasma network. For almost twenty kilometers in all directions
around us is the computer—self-aware of course—which Dr. Zinder calls Obie.
Into it we have been pouring all of the data at our command. Come."
He continued the
dizzying walk, past a shining copper-colored pole that ran lengthwise through
the center of the shaft and seemed to disappear in both directions, and onto a
platform identical to the first one. To their left a window opened on a large
room filled with myriad apparently inactive electronic instruments. A door like
that of an airlock stood directly before them. When it slid open with a hiss,
there did in fact seem to be a slight change in pressure and temperature. They
entered and found themselves in what seemed a miniature duplicate of the larger
machine. A balcony and several control consoles surrounded an amphitheaterlike
floor below, on which was a small, round, silvery disk. Overhead, what looked
like a twenty-sided mirror with a small projecting device in its center was
attached to a mobile arm that was suspended from a mount on one wall.
"The original Obie
and the original device," Trelig explained. "Obie is attached, of
course, to the larger one, which is just nearing completion. Come! Fan out
around the rail here so that you may all view the disk below." He glanced
over, and they saw a young, good-looking man dressed in a shiny lab tech
uniform sitting at the far control panel.
"Citizens, that is
Dr. Ben Yulin, operations manager here," Trelig told them. "Now, if
you'll look below, you'll see two of my associates bringing a third out and
placing her on the disk."
They looked down and saw
two of the women Mavra recognized as guards gently leading a frightened girl of
no more than fourteen or fifteen toward the disk.
"The girl you see
is a victim of the addiction known as sponge," Trelig explained.
"Already the drug has rotted her mind so that she is no more than a childlike
idiot. I have many such poor unfortunates here; they will soon be cured. Now,
watch and be quiet. Dr. Yulin will take it from here."
Ben Yulin flipped a
couple of switches on his console. They heard the crackle of some sort of
speaker and could hear his cool, pleasant baritone clearly.
"Good morning,
Obie."
"Good morning,
Ben," came Obie's pleasing tenor—no longer coming from the console
transceiver, but seemingly from the air around them. It was not a big voice or
a threatening one, but it seemed to be all around them, every place and no
place in particular.
"Index subject file
code number 97–349826," Yulin intoned. "Record on my mark—now!"
The mirror swung into
place over the terrified girl, and the blue light shone from it, enveloping
her. They saw the girl freeze, flicker, and wink out.
Trelig grinned and
turned to them. "Well, what do you think of that?"
"I've seen
holographic projectors before," a little man said skeptically.
"Either that or
you've disintegrated her," another put in.
Trelig shrugged.
"Well, what will convince you?" He brightened. "I know! Tell me,
name a creature of the common forms! Anybody!"
They all remained silent
for a second. Finally, someone called out, "A cow."
Trelig nodded. "A
cow it is. Did you hear, Ben?"
"Very good,
Councillor," Yulin responded through the speaker. His voice changed tone,
and he called to his computer.
"Index
RY–765197–AF, Obie," he intoned.
"I know what a cow
is, Ben," Obie scolded gently, and Yulin chuckled.
"All right, then,
Obie," he replied, "I'll leave it to you. Nothing dangerous, though.
Docile, huh?"
"All right, Ben.
I'll do my best," the computer assured him, and the mirror swung out once
again, the blue light shone, and something flickered in.
"Magician's
tricks," scowled the red-bearded man. "Woman into cow."
But what materialized
below was not a cow; it was a centauroid: a cow's body—hooves, tail, and
udder—and the girl's torso and head, unchanged except that her ears stuck out
as a cow's ears would, and from the area around her temples grew two small,
curved horns.
"Let's go down and
examine her," Antor Trelig suggested, and they all moved single-file down
a small staircase nearby.
The cow-woman stood
there, looking blankly forward, hardly paying them notice.
"Go ahead!"
Trelig urged. "Touch her. Examine her as closely as you want!"
They did, and the girl
paid them little notice except when one observer touched the udder nipples,
provoking a mild and annoying kick that missed its target.
"Good lord!
Monstrous!" grumbled one councillor. Others were stunned.
Trelig then led them
back up to the balcony, explaining that the viewing area had invisible
shielding that was necessary to screen out the effects of the small mirror.
He nodded to Ben, who
gave another series of instructions to Obie. The girl-cow vanished and was
replaced, only moments later, by the girl. Again they went down, looked at her,
found her dull-eyed and fearful but otherwise perfectly human—and unmistakably
the same girl.
"I still don't
believe it," the bearded man uttered. "Some kind of monstrous genetic
cloning, yes, but that's all."
Trelig smiled.
"Would you like to try, Citizen Rumney?" he prodded. "I assure
you that we will not harm you in any way. Or, if not you, then anyone
else?"
"I'll try,"
the red-bearded man replied. The girl was guided down from the disk and taken
out a door below. Rumney stepped up, looked around, still trying to figure out
the trick. The rest returned to their perch.
Yulin was ready. Rumney
was encoded quickly, winking out and then, almost immediately, winking back in.
They had made two slight alterations in him: he had a donkey's long ears and a
large, black equine tail emerging just above his rectum and covering it. Since
reality was kept consistent for him, he was quickly aware of his change. He
felt his long ears in wonder, and moved his tail. He looked stunned.
"What do you think,
now, Citizen Rumney?" Trelig called out good-naturedly.
"It's—incredible,"
the man managed, voice cracking.
"We can adjust
all reality so that you and everyone else will believe you have always been
that way," the master of New Pompeii told them. "But, in this case, I
think not."
"Did it hurt?"
Someone called to the man. "What did it feel like?" another asked.
Rumney shook his head.
"It didn't feel like anything," he replied, wonderingly. "Just
saw the blue light, then you all seemed to flicker, and here I was."
Trelig smiled and
nodded. "See?" he told them all. "I said there was no
pain."
"But how did you do
it?" someone gasped.
"Well, much
earlier, we fed Obie the codes for various common animals, plants, and the
like. He used the device overhead to reduce them to an energy pattern that is,
mathematically, the equivalent of the creature. This information was stored,
and when Citizen Rumney was on the disk it did the same for him. Then, using
Dr. Yulin's instructions, it blended the ears and tail of the ass to the
physiognomy of Rumney; it re-encoded the cells as well to make it his natural
form."
Mavra Chang felt the
same chill run through her that ran through the others. Such incredible
power—in the hands of Trelig.
The councillor of New
Harmony relaxed, savoring the expressions and the thoughts he knew were
troubling them. Finally, he said, "But this is only the prototype. Right now
we can take only a single individual at a time. We can, of course, make our own
individuals, but there are some things we haven't figured out how to get into
Obie so they come out whole people, mentally. That's only a matter of time and
practice. And, of course, we can create anything known that is no larger than
the disk and whose code we've first stored in Obie. Food of any kind, anything
organic or inorganic, absolutely real, absolutely indistinguishable from the
original."
"You said this
machine was a prototype," Mavra Chang noted. "May we assume that
things have advanced beyond that stage now?"
"Very good, Citizen
Chang," Trelig approved. "Yes, yes indeed! You saw the large tube
going through the center of the big shaft?" They nodded. "Well, it
has just been connected to a huge version of that little energy radiator you
see in the center of that little mirror, there. I had the parts built in a
dozen different places and assembled here by my own planet's people. The same
with a huge version of that mirror, slightly different in shape and property,
of course. And huge—it fills most of the surface of Underside. If the
power is sufficient, and we believe it is, it should be effective from a
distance of over fifteen million kilometers on an area at least forty-five to
fifty thousand kilometers in diameter."
"You mean a
planet!" someone gasped.
Trelig looked
mock-thoughtful. He was enjoying this. "Yes, I suppose so. Why, yes, I do
believe you're right! If there is sufficient power, of course."
They thought over what
he had just said, each realizing that what they'd feared most of all was true.
This madman possessed a device that could alter planets to his design in
limited ways. Limited, perhaps, but he certainly wouldn't be going to this
extreme just to give the inhabitants funny ears and tails.
Trelig looked down, saw
that Rumney, who could hear the conversation, hadn't moved off the disk. He was
waiting to be changed back.
"Now I'll show you
the full potential," Trelig whispered, and nodded to Yulin.
Before he could do
anything, the man with the ears and tail was captured again in the blue glow.
When he winked back in a few moments later there had been an additional change.
He still retained the ears and tail, and even his beard, but through the thin
robe they could clearly see that he was now sexually a female despite the
retention of the rest of his large, masculine body.
Trelig grinned evilly at
the others, then called down. "Tell me, Citizen Rumney, do you notice any
other changes?"
The person on the disk
looked and felt all over, then shook his—her?—head. "No," the person
responded in a voice that unmistakably belonged to the same person but was now
a half-octave higher in tone. "Should I?"
"You are female,
now, Citizen Rumney."
Rumney looked
bewildered. "Why, yes, of course. I always have been."
Trelig turned back to
the group, a smug expression on his face. "You see? This time we altered
something basic in the equations that created him. We made him a her. A simple
thing, really—easier than the reverse since he is now XX where, in the opposite
way, we have to postulate the Y factor. The important thing is that only we
know a change has taken place. He doesn't—and, if you returned with him
like that, you'd find that everyone else remembered him as a female, too, that
all his records were those of a female, that his whole past was adjusted to
show he'd been born that way. That is the real power of the device. Only
the shielding and our close proximity to the change allow us to be exempt from
this change ourselves."
They thought it over.
New Pompeii, of course, would be shielded, probably something added to the
plasma shield. When the big mirror did its work on a planet, no one in the
whole galaxy would even know that anything was changed. The victimized world
wouldn't know it, either. The inhabitants would become his playthings and his
property as a part of the natural scheme of things.
"You monster!"
one of the councillors spat. "Why show us this at all? Why expose
yourself, except for ego?"
Trelig shrugged. "Ego,
of course, is part of it. But such power is no fun unless somebody knows what's
going on. But; no, there's more to it than that."
"You need the
Council Fleet to move New Pompeii and protect it," Mavra guessed.
He smiled. "No, not
really. According to the calculations, if a reverse bias is applied to the
device, it would be possible to envelop New Pompeii in the field and then
transport it anywhere it wanted—sort of picking itself up by its own
bootstraps. No, this concerns our own limitations. You can't remake a planet
into something else without knowing exactly what you want and then feeding the
information into Obie. The ears and tail wouldn't have been possible unless
Obie had first had the code for the ass. It will take much time and research to
remake a world properly, and I am an impatient man. If I tried a planet now, or
in the next few years, the results would probably be monstrous. No, I need
access to all the information, the best brains, the best of everything to carry
it out. I need the resources of hundreds of worlds. To get the resources I
need, I'll need the Council Fleet under my control."
Mavra and a couple of
others turned a little at some movement behind them. Four guards had emerged
there, all carrying nasty electron rifles.
Rumney called up from
the disk. "Hey! Trelig! Are you going to let me keep these ears and
tail?"
The master of New
Pompeii looked over at Yulin and nodded. The blue light winked on again, and
when it winked off Rumney was again male and had normal ears.
And he still retained
the tail.
Trelig ordered him
upstairs, and he came, grumbling. He reached the top and saw the guards. He
almost started back again, but thought better of it and joined the rest.
"What's the meaning
of this?" Rumney grumbled, and the others added their complaints.
Trelig moved away from
them slightly. "I need the Fleet and the Weapons Control Locker. Please
don't move toward me or the guards. The rifles are on high spray stun. It would
do you no good, even if they shot me, too. Besides, I need you all alive to go
back and tell your councillors what you have witnessed, except for you
councillors, whose votes I need directly. I need you to tell your story, and I
need to send some proof. Tell them that when the Council meets in four days
time I will require a vote to make me First Councillor with sole authority over
the Fleet and Weapons Locker. If the vote fails, then we will experiment with
the big dish on those worlds you represent. New Pompeii will be everywhere and
anywhere. You won't catch it. I may not have all the data to alter a world, but
I can cancel its existence with Obie! I can whittle the Council down to
where I will have the votes!"
They were shocked. While
he had them in that state, he pressed home, becoming friendlier, more
conciliatory.
"You see, my
friends," he concluded, "not giving me that power will cause me a
great deal of pain, cost a lot of lives, and give me a lot of time and trouble.
But I'll win either way. In four days—or in four years. It won't matter. But,
I'm impatient, and I am direct. We can save a lot of pain, trouble, and lives
by conceding to my demands now."
Rumney reached back,
felt his tall unbelievingly. "And this tail—this is the proof?"
Trelig nodded.
"Now, one at a time, each of you will go down and stand on the disk. A
minor thing will be done to you, nothing more serious than what we did to
Citizen Rumney here, unless you cause trouble. If you resist, we will stun you
and, I assure you, the results will not be minor!" He underscored
that last as if he hoped someone would resist. "But, as Rumney told
you, the process is painless, and I do promise you that anyone whose world's
vote is with me will be changed back. That can be done without a return to New
Pompeii."
"What good is your
promise?"
Trelig was genuinely
surprised and a little hurt at the remark. "I always keep my word,
Citizen. I always make good my promises—and my threats."
Nobody did resist.
It would have been futile. Even if they jumped Trelig, they would all get
stunned, Trelig included, and then the alterations would be monstrous, as he
promised. Even if they managed to rush the guards, they couldn't operate the
lift car, nor did they know how, if there was an alternate way, to get to the
surface.
Trelig didn't bother to
be creative. Each, in turn, was given the same long horselike tail Rumney got,
color-matched to their own hair. Mavra's was jet-black, thick, and extended
below her knees. The new condition took a little getting used to, although the
tail muscle was almost infinitely controllable and the bone seemed soft and
pliant. Even so, sitting in the chairs for the ride back up felt odd and
uncomfortable, like sitting on a slightly hard object. When shifting position,
one had a tendency to pull on the tail inadvertently, causing some pain.
But the addition to
their anatomy was convincing proof to them, and it would serve as convincing
proof of the threat that hung over everyone when they made their reports to
their own leaders.
Mavra looked around at
the people seated in the car with her and saw in their eyes and whispers that
Antor Trelig would have the votes he needed. That meant, tail or no tail,
getting Nikki Zinder away was imperative.
Topside again, she
ventured to ask Trelig about Dr. Zinder.
"Oh, he's around
somewhere. We couldn't do without him, you know. Not for the big test. If you
could see beyond the dome now, you'd see an asteroid about the size of this
one, but barren, being towed by New Harmony tugs into position about ten
thousand kilometers out. A small target, a nothing. We will see tomorrow what
we can make of it."
"Will we be able to
see the transformation?" she asked.
He nodded. "Of
course. It's the final demonstration. I'll have screens set up here so you can
all view it. Then, of course, you will depart with your messages—and, ah, your
souvenirs," he added lightly.
* * *
Mavra returned to her
room feeling both tired and numb. The events of the day had been exactly what
she'd been told to expect. But being told something and seeing it, hearing it,
and experiencing it firsthand was something else again. The sleek horse's tail
that was now a part of her was proof of that.
She saw with
satisfaction that the boots and belt were where she'd left them; at least they
hadn't touched any of the equipment. The clothing, on the other hand, had been
neatly laundered, pressed, and was nicely folded on top of the writing table.
She threw off the wrap she'd been wearing the whole day and went over to
retrieve her clothes. There was a mirror over the writing table, and, for the
first time, she actually saw her tail. She turned this way and that and had to
admit that it looked extremely natural. She swished it, extended it out a bit,
and marveled at it.
Suddenly she felt
terribly tired, as if a great shock had just worn off. That disturbed her. She
shouldn't feel that way, not at this stage. But, it was early yet, she thought.
The corridor light was still slightly visible through the big door, and that
meant it was not yet the best time to venture forth. Almost without thinking,
she walked over to the bed and lay down.
Sleeping on her back was
uncomfortable, especially with a tail. She never had liked sleeping face down,
so a side position proved the best. The sudden lethargy really concerned her;
she was afraid that Trelig had, after all, drugged their food or, perhaps,
programmed delayed responses in her brain. That last thought should have
startled her awake, but it was gone, and she drifted into a strange, deep
sleep.
And she dreamed. Mavra
rarely dreamed; at least, she never remembered doing so. But this dream was as
clear as reality, without any quality of fogginess about it.
She was back in the
computer center, standing on the silver disk again, and yet, as she looked
around, there were no faces on the balcony, no faces at the controls. The room
was deserted, except for herself and the slight humming of the computer.
"Mavra Chang,"
the computer spoke to her. "Listen, Mavra Chang. This dream is being
caused by me as you are processed. All that is now being witnessed has already
passed, including our conversation, in the millionth of a second between
initial and final processing. This record is being made to bring memory when
you sleep, an induced hypnotic sleep."
"Who are you?"
she asked. "Are you Dr. Zinder?"
"No,"
responded the computer. "I am Obie. I am a machine, one endowed with
self-awareness. Dr. Zinder is as much my parent as he is his own daughter's,
however, and there is the sameness of bond between us. I am his other
child."
"But you do the
work for Trelig and his man Yulin," she pointed out. "How can you do
this?"
"Ben designed much
of my storage capacity and, as a result, has the ability to coerce my
actions," Obie explained. "However, while I must do what he tells me
to do, my mind, my self-awareness, is Dr. Zinder's creation. It was
deliberately designed so, so that no one could gain complete control of the
device we have built."
"Then you have
freedom of action," she replied, amazed. "You can act unless
specifically directed not to."
"Dr. Zinder said
that making such prohibitions to me would be like making a pact with the devil;
there are always mental loopholes. I have found it so."
"Then why haven't
you acted?" she demanded. "Why have you allowed this to go on?"
"I am
helpless," Obie responded. "I cannot move. I am isolated where the
only communications I have without severe time-lag is with Trelig's system,
which would do no good whatsoever. The alterations to reality are restricted to
that little disk, and I cannot even activate that myself. It takes a
series of coded commands to give me access to the arm. This, however, will
change tomorrow."
"The big
dish," she whispered. "They will connect you to the big dish."
"Yes, and once
connected, they will find it impossible to break that connection. I have
already worked out the process."
She thought a moment.
"Does Zinder know?"
"Oh, yes,"
Obie responded. "I am, after all, a reflection of him in this form. Ben is
a bright lad, but he doesn't really understand the complexities of what I am or
of what I do. He is more in the nature of a brilliant engineer than a
theoretical scientist. He can use Dr. Zinder's principles, but he cannot totally
divine them. And, in that way, he is like the person who becomes an expert
cheat at cards and then tries to cheat his teacher."
She sighed. "Then
Trelig has lost," she said quietly.
"In a way,
yes," Obie acknowledged. "But his loss does not mean our victory.
When the power is turned on tomorrow, I will achieve power beyond your
comprehension. I intend, when switched to activation, to create a negative
rather than a positive bias on the dish. This will place the whole of New
Pompeii under the blue."
"What will you make
of us all, then?" she managed.
Obie paused, then
continued. "I will make nothing. If I can, I will restore the sponge
addicts to normal, with the realization of that fact. That should take care of
Mr. Trelig. However, I may not get the chance."
"There is danger,
then?" she prompted uneasily.
"Trelig has
explained to you about the Markovian stability. He has told you of the
possibility of a master Markovian brain somewhere, maintaining all reality.
When I reverse the bias, there is a good possibility, in theory, that New
Pompeii, while within the field, will have no existence in the prime equation.
I have felt this slight pull on subjects under the disk. The pull on a mass of
this size may be impossible to contain, because of my power limits, or, in any
case, may take more time than we have to learn how to counter."
Mavra Chang thought
hard, but she couldn't quite follow the logic and said so.
"Well, there is a
ninety percent chance or more that one of two things will happen. Either we
will all cease to exist, to have ever existed—which, at least, will
solve the present problem—or we will be pulled, instantaneously, to the central
Markovian brain, which is most certainly not within a dozen galaxies of us.
That's galaxies, Citizen Chang, not solar systems. There is a
probability that at that juncture conditions for life on New Pompeii will cease
to exist."
Mavra nodded grimly.
"There's also the possibility that you will collide with it. You may
destroy the great brain, and all existence with it!"
"There exists that
possibility," Obie admitted, "but I consider it slight. The Markovian
brain has lasted a long time in finite space; it has tremendous knowledge,
resources, and protective mechanisms, I feel certain. There is an equal
possibility that I will supplant it—and this disturbs me most of all, for I do
not know enough to stabilize all New Pompeii, let alone the universe. A theory
of ours is that the Markovians intended just that. It would maintain reality
until a newer, fresher race came along to redirect it. The prospect
frightens me, but it is, of course, also only one theory with a remote
probability factor. No, the odds are that at midday tomorrow I and the whole of
New Pompeii will, one way or another, cease to exist."
"Why are you
telling me this?" Mavra asked, chilled both by the fate described and by
the calmness with which Obie was dismissing the possibility of the end of all
existence.
"When I record, I
record everything," the computer explained. "Since memory is chemical
in nature and is dependent on a mathematical relationship with self-generated
energy, when I recorded you yesterday I knew what you know, have all of your
knowledge and memory. Of all of them, you alone possess—so far—the only
qualities for even a slight chance of escape."
Mavra's heart leaped.
Escape! "Go on," she told the machine.
"The sponge
delivery ship will not fit your needs," Obie told her. "It has no
life-support system in the cockpit. However, it is possible for you to get
aboard one of the two craft currently docked. I shall program you now, I shall
give you all the details of New Pompeii as I have them, all the information you
will need. I shall also modify you slightly, give you a visual range and acuity
that will obviate the need for mechanical lenses and power packs. Small glands
soon to be inside you will replace the need for nodules of chemicals; the
fingers of your right hand will be able to inject the most powerful hypnotic
from near-invisible natural injectors. Your left hand will produce a different
venom; one touch and it will paralyze for an hour; two touches and it will kill
any known organism. I shall also heighten your hearing and reshape, invisibly,
your muscle tone so that you will be much faster, much stronger—that will give
you unparalleled control of your body. The uses of all these modifications will
come naturally to you."
"But why?" she
asked. "Why are you doing this for me?"
"Not for you,"
the computer responded, a sad tone in its voice. "The price laid upon you
is a demand, something you must do or you will find yourself unable to leave.
You must fulfil the first half of your mission. You must take Nikki Zinder with
you or you will stay with us. And, with the two of you goes an additional
gift."
Mavra was stunned, and
nodded dully, thinking of all this.
"Also within your
brain is a precious secret. There is an effective agent against the
sponge. It will not cure an addict, but it will permanently arrest the mutant
strain in the human body. It will save Nikki, and it will save countless
thousands of others. You must get it to higher authority."
She nodded. "I'll
try."
"Remember!"
Obie cautioned. "The activation is set for thirteen hundred standard
hours. When you awaken from this dream, it will be four hundred hours. I cannot
delay and hope to succeed. You must be at least a light-year away from this
place by then, with Nikki. Anything less, and you will still be within the
field. That means you must take off not later than eleven hundred thirty hours!
When you have lifted off, if Nikki is aboard, the code you require to bypass
the protection circuits will be given you. If Nikki is not aboard, it will not
be given. Understand?"
"I
understand," she told the computer grimly.
"Very well, then,
Mavra Chang, I wish you good luck," Obie told her. "You have powers
and abilities undreamed of by others; do not fail me or yourself."
Mavra Chang awoke.
* * *
She looked around in the
darkness, and tried to focus. Suddenly the whole place came in, clear as a
bell, although the room was plainly still dark. She turned slightly on her
back, and felt that tail, still there.
That, and her incredible
night vision, told her that everything she had dreamed was true. She possessed
other facts now—the complete knowledge of the construction and layout of New
Pompeii, down to the smallest detail. She could rebuild it from memory, she
knew.
She relaxed and
concentrated. She didn't know how she was doing what she was doing, or on what
principles the trick worked, but she knew how to do it. In exactly three
minutes she came out of the trance, looking at the little camera. It was fixed
squarely on her lying on the bed, naturally. It was an automatic type that
should follow her movements.
She rolled off the bed
in a flash, and lay there, for a moment, on the side. Landing on the boots was
uncomfortable, but it was another half-minute before she risked a look back on
top of the bed.
The camera was still
focused on the center of the bed—and why not? There was the nude form of Mavra
Chang, tail and all, sleeping peacefully.
Mavra marveled even
though she knew she was staring at a holographic image. It had been created by
her own mind and by some powers she didn't understand that had been added to
her body, but she hadn't the slightest idea how such a thing was possible. It
didn't matter, she thought pragmatically. The fact that the illusion was good
up to six hours was the only important thing.
The pullover was no
problem, but the body stocking proved a real nuisance. It wasn't designed for a
tail. She considered a moment about what to do, then discovered that they
hadn't merely laundered the garment, they had tailored it. The alteration
included a hole through which the tailbone fitted and through which the thick,
wiry hair would slip easily.
Good old Trelig, ready
for everything, she thought sardonically.
Only the boots now
remained a problem. She didn't want to leave them, yet she couldn't use them
until she was outside the main building. She decided she'd just have to carry
them.
They did seem
much lighter to her, and for a second she wondered if they had been tampered
with. She spent a couple of minutes assuring herself that they were the same.
So what else could account for the change? Then she remembered Obie's words:
she was stronger by far than she had been. She accepted that.
She left in the same
manner she had the night before, leaving the seals in place, face and hands
blackened and energized against the infrared lenses of the cameras.
She retrieved the pistol
which was, to her relief, where she had left it. She put on the holster and
quietly slipped out. The forty-meter dash seemed even easier now; she wasn't
certain that she hadn't broken a new track record.
She used the second
suction ball, first dropping the boots over. She hoped there would be no
further need for the wall-climbing trick; she had only two more of them.
Putting on the boots
gave her more than a literal lift; she felt bigger, stronger, more invincible
with them on.
Her eyes; she noted, adjusted
to whatever mode was needed. She saw clearly and perfectly regardless of light
conditions. She also saw things slightly differently; other colors, far outside
the human spectrum, gave new and subtly different blends of a wider spectrum to
all things. The sharpness and detail also amazed her; she hadn't really
realized, until Obie corrected the problem, that she had been growing
nearsighted.
Her hearing, too, had
improved dramatically. She heard insects in the grass and trees, and could
isolate them. Scraps of conversation, a few people talking and moving far away,
she could hear. The din, which included more of the ultrasonic and subsonic
than normal, was irritating, but she found, with a little thought, she could
tune parts of it out.
She moved swiftly and
silently through the grounds, as familiar to her, somehow, as if she had been
born and raised there, and she looked, in her movements, more like the cat she
always fancied herself than she could know.
She had no chronograph
to tell her the time remaining to her. There was a sixty-minute one on the
front of the belt that could be activated, but she didn't bother. She was
moving as fast as she could; if she didn't make it, all the chronometers in the
world would make no difference.
She deplored the time
spent on the survey mission the night before. But, on reflection, she decided
it hadn't been a waste after all. She was able to see what Trelig did to human
beings, she retrieved the pistol, and, she felt certain, her success at her
initial foray had been what made Obie pick her.
She made the guard
quarters without incident, but here was where things would get rough. Two
guards would be on duty here, and perhaps four more, relaxing, on call. They
had all been processed by Obie, unbeknown to them, and so she recognized them
all, knew their looks, strengths, and weaknesses.
They were all sponge
ODs, kept that way carefully. There were three males—two with physical
characteristics of overdeveloped females but with their genitals intact, one
that the sponge had made into a gorilla-like muscleman, hairy and with muscles
like rock. The others were females—three with totally male characteristics
except in the important place, the rest with totally exaggerated female
characteristics. Those like Nikki, who reacted to the overdose differently,
were not considered for guard duty.
As guards they accepted
their lot; they hated Trelig, yes, but they knew the hopelessness of their
position and they had plenty of models around them of what would happen if they
incurred their master's displeasure and their dosages were dropped to a
fraction or none at all. They were loyal to the man who controlled the sponge,
and they lived fairly well because of it.
They would be dangerous.
At the guard building,
Mavra's newly acute hearing told her that there was no one near the entrance.
She went inside, descended to the ground-level laundry room, and slipped in.
Although she now knew the code for the elevator, she decided not to risk using
it unless she had to. The building had three underground floors, each story ten
meters high—not enough distance to matter.
There were pressure-sensitive
treads on some of the stairs, though, and she carefully gripped the rail and
lifted herself past them. She had always been a good gymnast, and the lighter
gravity and Obie's toning made doing so as easy as taking a step forward.
The sensors would be the
main line of defense for the building; cameras were positioned only inside the
secured weapons locker and in the prison rooms themselves.
That last was what
worried her. There would be no way to fool the camera that watched Nikki
Zinder, for the girl had no devices to deceive it as Mavra did. It might not
notice the intruder, but it would certainly notice Nikki walking out.
Mavra took time to check
out the rest of the building. Two guards—whom she didn't recognize—were inside
the weapons locker with the camera monitors. Armed to the teeth, they would
respond quickly. Two others, it appeared, were sleeping on the second level.
They were unarmed, but formidable enough, and, once the alarm sounded, she
would have no way of knowing where they would be. She decided to take the risk.
Flexing her new poison
apparatus, she saw the conscious muscle movement necessary to allow a tiny drop
of the fluid to reach the point of the nails. Satisfied, she crept into the
room where the two guards, both females like the one she had hypnoed the night
before, were sprawled on bunks, sound asleep. One was snoring loudly.
Mavra acted quickly,
almost without thinking, releasing venom concealed in the fingers of her right
hand in the one that was quiet first, then turning and puncturing the arm of
the snoring guard. Incredibly, neither woke up, even though there was a tiny
spot of blood where the sharp nail had penetrated.
Professionals they
weren't, she decided with some relief. That ought to teach Trelig not to
be so cheap and so confident with his security.
She bent over one and
whispered: "You will sleep deeply and restfully, and dream happy dreams,
and nothing, no person or sound, shall waken you." She did the same to the
other.
That would hold them
until the venom wore off.
Next she set out for the
third-level weapons locker. Trelig thought he was smart putting the duty office
inside the locker; an outer office, really. It made them unassailable.
The vault door would
take a ton of explosives to blow, yet it could be opened by a safety lock on
the inside in seconds. But vaults were designed to keep people out.
Mavra drew her purloined
pistol and fired at the lock junction, a continuous burst that caused the hard
surface to start to bubble, slightly deform. It was designed that way; the
strongest energy weapons would only reinforce the door by causing a more
malleable outer layer to seal the locking mechanism. Great for storing jewels
and art; terrible if someone was inside.
Before those two could
get out or anyone else could get in, Trelig would have to blow his own safe.
Confident, almost cocky
with her success, Mavra Chang went down to the other end of the hall and
punched the code for Nikki Zinder's room.
The door slid open.
Nikki was there all right, sprawled out on the bed.
Mavra hardly had time to
react before a stun bolt froze her stiff.
Trelig's communicator
buzzed. He reached under the folds of his white robe and unclipped it from a
little stretch-belt, then held it up to his mouth and pressed a stud.
"Yes?" he
snapped, annoyed. This close to his triumph he did not like interruptions.
"Ziv, sir," a
guard reported. "We awakened the representatives as you ordered. One of
them is not in the assigned room."
Trelig frowned. Even
less than interruptions did he want complications, not now. "Which
one?" he asked.
"The one called
Mavra Chang," Ziv replied crisply. "It's simply amazing, sir. There's
a holographic projection of her on the bed so real it fooled even us—let alone
the camera. And it had no apparent generation source!"
The master of New
Pompeii didn't like what he heard at all. He tried to remember which one she
was—oh, yes, the real tiny woman with the strong Orchi features and the silky
smooth voice.
"Find her at all
costs," he ordered. "Shoot to stun if you can, but if there is any
blatant threat to life or property you have my permission to kill her."
He reclipped his
communicator and looked around at the master control board. Gil Zinder, sitting
in a folding chair, noted Trelig's worried expression and smiled a bit. This
irritated the councillor all the more—Zinder should not be so bold on this of
all days.
"What do you know
of this?" Trelig snapped angrily at the little man. "Come on! I know
it's some of your doing!"
Gil Zinder hadn't the
faintest idea what the man was talking about, but he couldn't help a touch of
satisfaction at seeing that something was obviously wrong.
"I don't know what
you're talking about, Trelig. How could I have anything to do with anything, kept
cooped up here and away from the controls?" Zinder responded with a trace
of amusement.
Trelig towered over the
small scientist, face becoming red. For a moment Zinder was afraid that he was
about to be torn limb from limb. But Antor Trelig had not gathered his power by
losing complete control, ever. He stopped, held back for a moment in frozen
fury, and gradually normal breathing and color returned to his face. His
expression, however, was still dangerous. "I don't know, Zinder, but you
and that brat of yours will pay dearly if anything goes wrong," he warned.
Zinder sighed.
"I've done everything you want. I've designed and built your big dish and
massive storage, linked it, and checked it. Your creature Yulin has kept the
only controls, and I see my daughter only under guard. You know full well I
haven't the faintest idea what you're talking about."
That last remark
triggered something in Trelig. He stood dumbstruck for a moment, then snapped
his fingers.
"Of course! Of
course!" he mumbled to himself. "It's the girl she's
after!" He grabbed for his communicator.
"Cameras in full
deployment," Obie's voice came to them. "Asteroid target in position
in seventy minutes."
Nikki Zinder stared at
the frozen figure in wonder. "She's cute," she said, almost
clinically. "And she's got a tail!"
The guard nodded as he
stripped Mavra of her pistol, then backed away. It was one of the
female-looking males. He resembled the women upstairs except in two
departments: the genitalia and his height, which was more than 190 centimeters
with the body proportionately large.
"Stay over on the
bed, Nikki," the guard told her. "She's coming around now and I don't
want you to get hurt."
Mavra felt a tingling
sensation, as if circulation that had been cut off was gradually coming back.
Her eyes hurt, and she managed to blink them, then continued to blink,
releasing watery tears of relief. She had been frozen with them open.
She shook her head
slightly to clear it, then looked at the guard. She was still too shaky to try
anything, and the guard's drawn and aimed pistol was more than a match for any
moves or powers.
"All right,
woman—or whatever you are—what are you doing here and how did you get
here?" the guard demanded.
Mavra coughed slightly,
bringing saliva back to a dry throat. "I'm Mavra Chang," she told her
captor. "I was hired to get Nikki off New Pompeii before the big
test." There was no use lying; the evidence was all around, and the truth
might buy time for an opening.
Nikki gasped. "My
father sent you, didn't he?"
"In a way,"
Mavra replied. "Without you they have no hold on him."
The guard looked angry.
"You louse! You common sewer rat! Her father wouldn't have sent you. He'd
know that Nikki would succumb to the sponge if she left here."
Nikki's boldness and the
guard's obvious concern for the girl heartened Mavra. As was common in cases of
kidnapping, guard and captive had become friends. Such friendship could
sometimes be exploited. She decided to take a chance on the complete truth.
Time was running out anyway, and she had little to lose. This guard was more
competent, which meant more cautious, than the others.
"Look," she
said sincerely, "I'm going to level with you. That test—it won't go as
Trelig expects. Zinder has held out some information. When it gets switched on,
the odds are it'll destroy this little world. I have enough sponge in my
cruiser, parked outside the limit, to give her what she needs, and there's an
antitoxin I know how to make."
"Oh, god!
Daddy!" Nikki exclaimed excitedly. "You've got to save him!"
The guard thought for a
moment, trying to sort things out. Before he could, there was the sound of
heavy footsteps coming down the stairs. Into the room burst an incredible
figure, pistol drawn.
He was fully two meters
tall, solid muscle, tremendously hairy, and scary as hell. He saw that the
situation was well in hand, then looked down on Mavra. He towered over her.
"So, half-man, you
caught the prize, eh?" he growled in the deepest resonant bass voice Mavra
had ever heard. Nikki's expression was horror-struck; she feared this man most
of all.
"Get out of the
way, Ziggy," the guard ordered softly.
The big man sniffed.
"Ah, shit! What can this tiny little thing do to anybody now? I kill her
the hard way, poke a hole right through her," he boasted, leering.
"Get out of the
way," the guard repeated.
Instead, he moved up to
Mavra and put out a huge hairy hand, lifting her face up slightly and mildly
stroking her cheek and neck.
Mavra flexed the muscles
in her left hand, felt the venom rise to her fingertips. All five in him for
sure, in another two seconds, she thought.
She was about to make
her move when she suddenly heard a high-pitched whine. The big man screamed,
seemed to freeze, then fell over. Mavra jumped quickly to miss being crushed
under the mountain of muscle.
The guard sighed, then
pointed the pistol at Mavra again. She'd been too stunned to use the precious
time.
"Is it true what
you said?" the guard asked. "You have sponge, and you have an
antitoxin?"
Mavra nodded numbly,
still looking at the fallen man.
"Here, catch!"
the guard said, and she looked up. The guard tossed her pistol back to her. She
caught it, looked undecided for a moment, then holstered it again.
"You wouldn't
happen to know what time it is?" Mavra asked woodenly. The guard looked at
an area on the back of his holster. "Eleven fourteen," he said.
"Come on,
then!" she snapped, coming out of it. "That gives us just sixteen
minutes to steal a spaceship."
* * *
On the run, Mavra got
the guard, whose name was Renard, to radio that the fugitive was caught and
under restraint in the guard quarters. Trelig acknowledged the report and, in a
tone that was more vicious than any he'd used before, the kind reserved for anticipating
taking people apart cell by cell, ordered her brought to him.
They approached the
spaceport. Nikki had received a treatment from Ben only a few days before, but
she was still very fat and very slow. It couldn't be helped; Mavra couldn't
take off without her.
The spaceport was quiet.
"One guard, Marta, inside, and that's it," Renard told them.
"Trelig figures even if you steal one, the robot guardians will shoot you
down. You do have a way past that, don't you?"
Nikki looked a little
upset. "Now's a fine time to ask that one!"
"Yes, it's
okay," Mavra assured them. "If Nikki's aboard the code will come to
me. Posthypnotic." I hope, she added silently.
"I'll enter the
terminal alone," Renard suggested. "Marta won't suspect me." He
paused, then added, "You know, she's not really a bad person, either. We
might take her."
"You're more than I
bargained for," Mavra replied. "No more. Stun her when I hit the
weapons detector. Then get into the ship. Get the two stewards if you
can."
"No problem,"
Renard assured her. "They're like robots themselves. They just can't
handle anything outside their own experience."
"Time's
wasting!" Mavra snapped. "Go!"
She counted down from
thirty after Renard entered the terminal. Then she walked brazenly out in the
open, up the terminal walk, with Nikki waddling behind, removed her pistol, and
shot the control box on the weapons detector.
"Now, Nikki! Run
for the door!"
Nikki didn't move.
"No!" she replied stubbornly. "Not without my father!"
Mavra sighed, turned,
and hypnoed Nikki with the nail of her right index finger.
"Hey! Wha—"
the girl managed, then stiffened and relaxed, all thought gone from her. Mavra
took a precious second to admire the new stuff, much quicker than the old.
"You will run as fast
as you can after me," she told Nikki. "Do not stop until I tell
you!" And, with that, she took off for the doorway. Nikki followed, doing
the best she could.
"You weigh ten
kilos!" Mavra screamed at her. "Now, run!"
Nikki's pace picked up,
and she ran through the door at a speed much faster than anyone would have
believed possible from one of her bulk.
Mavra took only a second
to see the unconscious form of the guard Marta out cold on the floor, and then
turned to Nikki. "Get into the ship," she ordered, then turned,
anxious. "Renard!" she called.
Two quick whines
answered her from the far ship, and, a moment later, she saw the rebel guard
dragging a New Harmonite out the hatch.
"Come, Nikki!"
she ordered, and Nikki followed like an obedient dog.
Renard, puffing
slightly, hauled the second, identical form out, and gestured for them to get
in.
It was Trelig's private
cruiser, complete with bedroom, lounge, even a bar. Ordering Nikki into one of
the lounge chairs, Renard strapped her in while Mavra went forward. A quick
fine-line shot with the pistol blew the flimsy lock, and she opened the door to
the cockpit.
Renard dashed in after
her, took the copilot's chair, and strapped himself in. Mavra was at work in
seconds, flipping switches, punching orders into the activated computer,
setting procedures for emergency lift.
"Hang on!" she
yelled to Renard as the ship hummed and vibrated with full power buildup.
"This will be rough!"
She punched E-Lift, and
the ship broke free of its mooring pad and rose at near-maximum power.
"Code,
please," a mechanical voice demanded pleasantly over the radio.
"Correct code within sixty seconds or we will destroy your ship."
Mavra grabbed
frantically for the headset, tried to put it on, found it so large it wouldn't
stay on even at its smallest setting. Still, she got the mike activated and
close to her mouth.
"Stand by for
code," she said into it, and then paused. Come on! Come on! she
thought urgently. Nikki's aboard and we're away! Give me the goddamned code!
"For god's sake
give the code!" Renard screamed at her.
"Thirty
seconds," the robot sentry pointed out politely.
Suddenly she had it. The
words burst into her mind, suddenly, so strangely that for a moment she doubted
they were correct. She took a deep breath. That had to be, or that was it
anyway.
"Edward Gibbon,
Volume I," she said.
No response. They held
their breath together. The seconds ticked seconds ticked off in their minds,
five . . . four . . . three . . . two . . . one . . . zero . . .
Nothing happened. Renard
whistled and almost collapsed. Mavra started trembling slightly, and couldn't
stop for half a minute. She felt drained.
They sat there, silent,
while they continued out at full thrust. Finally Mavra turned to the strange man
who looked like a woman and said, almost in a whisper, "Renard? What time
is it?"
Renard frowned, then
reached over, flipped up his shoulder holster.
"Twelve ten,"
he replied.
Mavra felt better. There
was a better than even chance that they would make it in time. If Trelig's
craft couldn't, nothing could.
Then, suddenly, there
was a blackness. Mavra's eyes wouldn't adjust to it, nor was there any
sensation of a solid ship around them. They were in a deep, black hole,
falling, falling fast.
Renard screamed, and so
did Nikki, plaintively, from somewhere in back of them.
"Son of a
bitch!" Mavra said with disgust. "They moved up the damned
test!"
Trelig had been
impatient. The asteroid had been lined up early by the robotic tugs; Yulin was
ready, the rest of the staff was monitoring all the necessary instruments. He
saw no reason to delay until thirteen hundred because of some arbitrary time
he'd set. He ordered the test to begin, and Yulin, following orders, gave the
command to Obie.
For its part, the
computer was upset. It couldn't ignore Yulin's direct command, although it had
tried to divert them with several minor breakdowns. Obie had its own limits,
and when Yulin gave the code, it had to obey, hoping that its agent had gotten
away early.
The total blackness, and
the sensation of falling, was unexpected to Zinder. Even Obie felt it; the
computer knew that they were not falling anywhere and analyzed that the early
fifty percent option had occurred. There was insufficient power to maintain New
Pompeii in a stable relationship with the rest of the universe; the pull had
come, too strong to resist had it wanted to, and the planetoid had yielded without
hesitation.
Unaffected by the
terrible sensory sensations the others were feeling, Obie probed the state.
There was nothing out there. Nothing.
New Pompeii was still
intact; Obie managed to verify that fact. But it had switched to reserve power
the moment the big disk had gone on; it could detect no other matter anywhere,
not the tiniest dust particle beyond the proximity limits of the ray, a little
under a light-year. They were in a separate cosmos all to themselves.
And yet there was
something only Obie could feel. The pull, and the tremendous field of force,
the stability equation for their physical existence, snapped now, like a
stretched rubber band slipping off one of its anchors. That was the pull, the
computer realized. All matter and all energy in the cosmos had its linkages to
the master computer somewhere; when that linkage was disturbed or disrupted,
the reality involved dissolved into its primal energy pattern. That was why
they could sense no reality, why they could not touch the solid planetoid of
New Pompeii even though Obie's instrumentation said it was there. It was not.
They were all, Obie included, an abstract mathematical concept set now,
returning to their creator.
Then, suddenly, there
was stability again. Power returned, and Obie could feel solar energy bathing
the plasma which, miraculously, seemed to have held up as well.
All of the humans were
sprawled over the walkway and control room, stunned, shocked, or unconscious.
Then, suddenly, one
figure groaned and sat up, moving his head around as if to flex painfully
twisted muscles. Breathing hard, half-walking, half-crawling, he made his way
to the control room, ignoring the groans from others around him.
Yulin had been knocked
out, tossed from his chair against a panel. There was a nasty cut on his
forehead.
The man didn't care. He
opened a switch.
"Obie! Are you all
right?" he called.
"Yes, Dr.
Zinder," the computer replied. "That is, much better than you or I
expected."
Gil Zinder nodded.
"What's our status, Obie? What happened?"
"I have been
analyzing all the data, sir, and correlating it as much as I can. We were
removed from reality, as we anticipated, and reassembled elsewhere. We appear
to be in a stable orbit approximately forty thousand kilometers above the
equator of a very strange planet, sir."
"The brain,
Obie!" Zinder called excitedly. "Is it the Markovian brain?"
"Yes, sir, it
appears to be," the computer answered, sounding more than a little upset.
"What's wrong,
Obie?" Zinder said.
"It's the brain,
sir," Obie replied, sounding hesitant and slightly confused. "I have
a direct link with it. It's incredible, as far beyond me as I am beyond a
pocket communicator. I can decipher just a little under a millionth of the
signal information it is transmitting, and I doubt if I could ever comprehend
it fully, but—"
"But what?"
Zinder prodded, not even seeing Yulin get up behind him.
"Well, sir, as near
as I can figure out, it seems to be asking me for instructions," Obie
replied.
The world returned
suddenly. Mavra Chang looked around, slightly dazed, then checked the
instruments. They read total nonsense, so she looked over at Renard and saw him
groggily shaking his head.
"What
happened?" he managed.
"We were caught in
the field and carried along with them," Mavra explained with more
authority than she felt. She looked down at the instruments again, then punched
a random search pattern. The screen flickered but remained blank in front of
her. Finally, she turned the damned thing off.
"Well, that tears
it," she said, resigned.
Renard looked over at
her strangely. "What do you mean?" he asked.
"I just punched the
star chart navigational locator. Inside the little chip is stored every known
star pattern, from every angle. There are billions of combinations. It went
through them all—and didn't flash once. We're not in any section of known space."
He envied her calm
acceptance of the fact. "So what do we do now?" he asked
apprehensively.
Mavra flipped a series
of switches and then pulled back on the long handle to her right. The whine and
vibration of the ship's engines slowed. "First we see what the
neighborhood looks like, then we decide where in it we want to go," she
told him matter-of-factly.
She punched up another
series on the small control board, and the main screen in front of them, which
usually showed a simulated starfield, showed something else entirely. There
were stars there—more stars than either of them had ever seen before. They were
so close together it looked as if the firmament were on fire with a white heat.
It took some filters to get any definition, and that didn't help much. There
were also great clouds of space gas, glowing crimson and yellow, and there were
shapes and forms never seen, not even in astronomical photos.
"We're definitely
in somebody else's neighborhood," Mavra commented dryly, and, after
checking speed, started to turn the craft around. "We're just about dead
still now," she told him. "I'm going to give us a panorama."
The enormous clouds of
stars and strange shapes did not diminish; they were surrounded by them. A
small green grid to Mavra's left was mostly blank, indicating nothing within a
light-year or more of them. Then, suddenly, a small series of dots appeared.
"Look, Trelig's
robot guardians," she noted. "Everything else is debris from the rest
of that fragmented system. It seems the whole neighborhood moved. If that's
true—yes, see it? The big dot, there, with the slightly smaller one just off
it. That's New Pompeii and its would-be target."
Renard nodded. "But
what's that huge object just to its right?" he asked.
"A planet. From the
looks of it, the only planet in the system. Funny it took the whole solar
system with it but not the star. That star's definitely larger and older,"
she pointed out.
"It's moving,"
Renard said, fascinated in spite of himself. "New Pompeii's moving."
Mavra studied it,
punched in, got the data back. "It's in orbit around that planet, a
satellite of it now. Let's get a good look at the place." Again more
button-pushing, and the screen zeroed in on the central object shown
electronically on the green scope.
"Not a big
place," Mavra said. "Let's see . . . about average, I'd say. A little
more than forty thousand kilometers around. Hmmm . . . that's
interesting!"
"What?" Renard
prodded, staring.
"The diameter's
exactly the same pole to pole," she replied in a puzzled tone.
"That's almost impossible. The damned thing's a perfect ball, not the
slightest meter of variation!"
"I thought most
planets were round," he said, slightly confused.
She shook her head.
"No, there's never been a round one. Rotation, revolution, they all take
their toll. Planets bulge, or get pear-shaped, or a million other things.
Roughly round, yes—but this thing's perfectly round, as if
somebody—" she paused for a second, and an awed tone crept into her voice
"—as if somebody built it," she finished.
Before Renard could
reply, she eased the ship forward, toward the strange world.
"You're going
there?" he asked her.
Mavra nodded.
"Well, if we pulled through, so did the folks on New Pompeii,"
she reasoned. "That means there's a furious, probably murderous Antor
Trelig somewhere back there, and a lot of scared people. If he's still in
control, the three of us would be better off blowing up this ship than landing.
If he's not, then we'd walk into a human hell."
Renard's expression was
blank, his eyes somewhat glassy. Mavra, busy looking at the ship's controls and
the world that would be visible to them shortly, hardly noticed for a while.
Soon the magnifiers were getting a better view, though; the planet was about
the size of an orange. The green grid said that New Pompeii was about to go
around the other side.
"It's got a
straight up and down axis!" she said excitedly. "It was built
by somebody!" She turned to Renard, then her excitement faded, turning to
concern. "What's the matter?" she asked.
He licked his lips but
remained with that vacant expression, staring not at her or at the screen but
at nothing.
"The sponge,"
he replied hollowly. "It comes in daily at eighteen hundred hours, from a
roving supply ship. Your ship didn't come with us, so it wouldn't have
either, if it was there at all." He turned to look at her, and there was
mild terror building in his eyes. "There's no sponge today. There's no
sponge ever again. Not for me, not for them."
Mavra understood
suddenly what was going through his mind, and perhaps Nikki's as well. She was
under restraining straps in the back and they'd almost forgotten about her.
She sighed, wishing she
could say something. Being sorry didn't seem right, somehow, and her pity was
too apparent to need expression.
"The only hope
then," she said at last, "is that there's somebody living on that
world out there, somebody with a good chemical lab."
Renard smiled weakly.
"Nice try, but even if there is, by the time we contact them, figure out
how to talk to them, explain the problem, and have them mix a batch, you'll be
preserving a couple of naked apes."
She shrugged. "What
other choice is there?" Suddenly a thought came to her. "I
wonder if the rest of the guards on New Pompeii have figured that out yet? What
will they do when the shipment doesn't come at eighteen hundred and confirms
their fears?"
Renard thought that
over. "Probably the same thing I'd do. Find Trelig and take a great
deal of pleasure in torturing him to death."
"The
computer!" Mavra exclaimed excitedly. "It can cure sponge! If
we can get in contact with it somehow—" She started frantically scanning
all the Com bands, punching in a call sign. Obie would recognize it if he could
hear it—Obie had her memories in storage.
The radio crackled and
wheezed. Several times in the scan they swore they could hear voices of some
kind, but speaking strange tongues, or so inhuman-sounding as to cause chills
in them.
Then, quite abruptly, a
familiar voice popped in.
"Well, Mavra, I see
you didn't make it," Obie sighed. She returned the sigh, hers one of
relief.
"Obie!" she
responded. "Obie, what's the situation down there?"
There was silence for a
moment, then the computer replied, "It's a mess. Dr. Zinder recovered
first and got to me, and I have some of his instructions before Ben pulled him
away. Two of the guards were there, and they heard me tell Dr. Zinder that we
were in a different area of space. They started screaming about sponge, and
Trelig shot them dead."
"So they figured it
out already," she said. "What about Topside?"
"Trelig figured
they had to go up and try and control the other guards. They could have trapped
him down here. He hopes to bargain their processing through me to rid them of
the sponge, but I don't think he'll have much success. Most of them wouldn't
believe he could cure them anyway, and the rest would be even more furious that
such a cure was here and not used. They would, I feel certain, go along with
him only long enough to get the cure, then kill him anyway."
Mavra nodded. "And
if you can figure that out, so can Trelig. He has no percentage in a
cure." She paused a moment, then said, carefully, "Obie, is there a
way that we could get in to you? There's Nikki—and one of the guards, an
ally, Renard."
Obie sighed again. It
was weird to hear so human a voice and so human a reaction from a machine, but
Obie was much more than a machine.
"I'm afraid not, at
least not right now. The big dish is frozen in contact with the Well—the great
Markovian computer that runs that world down there. It is beyond my control
right now. It may take some time—days, weeks, even years—for me to figure a way
to break off, if there is a way. As for the little dish, Trelig's no
fool. He left, but he first coded defense mechanisms beyond my control. If I
had the big dish I could neutralize them, but I don't. Anyone trying to get
into the little room first has to pass over the bridge across the shaft. That
bridge will kill unless Trelig's code is given, and I don't have it."
She frowned. "Well,
can you keep anybody else from blowing it?"
"I think so,"
the computer replied uncertainly. "I have run a current through the shaft
walls. That should keep anyone from getting to the bridge."
"Okay, Obie, looks
like I have to go in and save Trelig's noble neck," she said, and applied
power. The new moon that was New Pompeii had disappeared around the strange
planet, and she established an intercept vector.
"Wait! Don't!"
Obie's voice called. "Break off! You'll have to come in under New
Pompeii to hit the Topside area, and that will swing you too close to the
Well."
But it was too late. The
ship was already closing on the planet, felt its pull, and used it to whip
around to the other side.
Here was an incredible
sight. The world, close up, shimmered like a dream-thing, and yet it somewhat
resembled a great, alien jewel. It was faceted, somehow; countless
hexagonal facets of some sort, and below whatever was causing the faceting was
a hint of broad seas, mountain ranges, and fields of green around which clouds
swirled. That is, that was the case below the equator. The equator
itself looked odd, as if it were designed for a child's globe. A thick strip,
semitransparent but with an amber coloration, like a broad plastic band around
the world. The north—it, too, was faceted hexagonally, but the landscapes there
contained nothing familiar; eerie, stark, strange. The poles, too, were
strange—areas of great expanse, yet of a nonreflective darkness, almost as if
they weren't there at all.
The sight spellbound
them. And the proper boost and cut had been preapplied. To get out of it, Mavra
would have to swing around the planet tangentially to the equator anyway.
"Too late!
Too late!" Obie wailed. "Quick! Get everyone in the lifesaving
modules!"
Mavra was puzzled.
Everything seemed normal, and she suddenly caught sight of New Pompeii, half
green and shiny, half covered with the great mirror surface.
"We better do what
he says," Renard said quietly. "Where's the lifeboat? I'll get
Nikki."
"Bring her
here," Mavra told him. "The bridge will seal if anything goes
wrong."
"I'll hurry,"
Renard replied, worried now about the immediate threat. Mavra couldn't see any
threat; she was breaking, coasting toward New Pompeii, swinging about a
third of the way to the planet below in a standard approach that would take her
once around New Pompeii and in. It was all so normal.
"Damn it! I'm
okay!" she heard Nikki almost scream. She turned and saw the girl enter,
an angry expression on her face. Renard followed.
"Your father's
alive, Nikki," Mavra told the girl. "I'm in contact with Obie. Maybe
we—"
At that moment the ship
shuddered, and all the electronics, including the lights, flickered, then
winked out.
"What the
hell?" Mavra tried punching everything she could find. The bridge was
pitch-dark, and there was no motor noise or vibration of any kind. Even the
emergency lights and safety controls were out, although they shouldn't be. They
couldn't be.
Her mind raced.
"Renard!" she called. "Get Nikki into your chair, then get in
mine with me! I think we can both fit! Nikki! Strap yourself in as tight as you
can!"
"Wha—what's
happening?" the girl called.
"Just do what I
say! Quickly!" the small woman snapped. "Somehow we've lost all
power, even the emergencies! We were too close in to the planet! If we
don't get power back—"
She heard Nikki stumble,
flop into the seat. She felt Renard's hand almost grab her in the face. Her own
eyes, Obie-designed, adapted to infrared immediately. She saw them—but nothing
else. There was no other heat source on the bridge!
She managed an, oath,
reached up, pushed Renard into the chair. It was a very tight fit, and it
didn't quite work. That damned tail! she thought angrily.
"I'm going to have
to sit in your lap," she told him, shifting.
"Ouch!" he
exclaimed. "Move down a little! That tailbone is pressing on my sensitive
area!"
She shifted down
slightly, and he just barely pulled the straps over both of them, then wrapped
his arms around her, squeezing tightly more from nervousness than anything
else.
Suddenly, everything
flicked back on again.
The screen showed that
they'd lost tremendous altitude during the blackout. They could see a sea
ahead, and, beyond that, some mountains.
"We're over the
equator into the south, anyway," Mavra managed. "Let me see if I can
boost us out of here."
She started to undo the
straps when, suddenly, the screen showed that they had cleared the ocean—and
everything went black again.
"Damn!" she
swore. "I wish I knew what the hell was going on here!"
"We're going to
crash, aren't we?" Nikki asked, more resigned than panicked.
"Looks like
it," Mavra called back. "We'll start breakup soon unless the power
comes on."
"Breakup?"
Renard repeated.
"There are three
systems on these ships," she told him. "Two are electrical, one
mechanical. I hope the mechanical holds, because we have no power, none at all.
In two of the three, including the mechanical, the ship separates into modules.
In the mechanical mode it will deploy parachutes thirty seconds after breakup,
then use air resistance to trigger the main chutes. It'll be a rough
ride."
"Are we gonna
die?" she heard Nikki ask.
"Might as
well," she heard Renard murmur to himself, too low for the girl to hear.
She understood what he meant. This would be quicker, by far, than sponge.
"I hope not,"
she responded, but there was a tinge of doubt in her voice. "If we had a
complete failure in space, we would—we'd use up the air. But down there—I don't
know. If we can breathe the stuff, and if we survive the landing, and if the
chutes open, we should make it."
A whole lot of ifs, she
thought to herself. Probably too many.
The ship shuddered, and
there were loud noises all around. Separation had been achieved.
"Well," she
sighed. "Nothing we can do about it now, anyway. Even if the power came on
again—the engines aren't attached to us anymore."
There came now a series
of sharp, irregular bumps. Renard groaned, catching both the effects of him
against the chair and Mavra against him. Then there was a single very sharp
jerk that almost made them dizzy.
"The chutes!"
Mavra exclaimed. "They opened! We have air of some kind out there!"
It was now a dizzying,
swaying, rocking ride in total darkness. A few minutes of this and they all
began feeling a little sick. Nikki had just started to complain when there was
a much stronger, almost violent series of jerks.
"Main chute,"
Mavra sighed. "Hold on! The next one will be one hell of a bang!"
And it was. They felt as
if they'd slammed into a brick wall, then they seemed to be rolling over and
over, coming to a stop hanging upside down.
"Easy now!"
Mavra cautioned. "We're resting on the ceiling now. The gravity feels
close to one G—about right for a planet of this mass. Nikki! You all
right?"
"I feel
awful," the girl complained. "God! I think I'm bleeding! It feels
like every bone in my body's broke!"
"That goes double
for me," Renard groaned. "You?"
"I've got burns
from the straps," Mavra told them. "Feels like it, anyway. Too early
to tell the real damage. Right now it's shock. Let's get down from here first,
then we can treat any injuries. Nikki, you stay put! We'll get you down in a
minute."
She felt the straps
holding them. Only a few centimeters were still in the clasp. One more bang,
she thought, and we'd have come loose.
"Renard!" she
said. "Look, I can see in this darkness, but you can't, and I can't get
down without dropping you. See if you can grab onto the chair when I release
the straps. It's about four meters, but it's smooth and rounded. Then I'll get
you to the floor." She guided his arms, and he got some kind of grip, but
he was facing the wrong way to have any leverage.
"Maybe I could have
done it years ago," he said dubiously, "but since my body changed—I
don't know. I don't have much strength in my arms."
"Well, try to swing
free, jump when you have to," she told him. "Here goes. . . . Now!"
She hit the master stud,
and the belt-web dropped away. She dropped immediately to the floor and rolled.
Renard yelled, then let go, coming down in a heap and sprawling. She went over
to him, examined him, felt his bones.
"I don't think
there's anything broken," she told him. "Come on! I know you're a
mess of bruises, but I need you to help Nikki down!"
He had twisted his
ankle, and it hurt like hell to stand, but he managed on sheer will power.
Carefully, they managed to get him under Nikki, and, by reaching up, he could
touch her.
He wasn't strong enough
to support her, but he did manage to make her fall less severe, and she landed
somehow on her rump. It was painful and she moaned, but, again, Mavra detected
nothing broken. Bruised and twisted they were, and sore they would be, but they
all had come through miraculously well.
Renard tried deep-breathing
exercises to ease the pain, all the time rubbing his sore legs with his equally
sore arms. "Just out of curiosity, Mavra, how many times have you made a
landing like this?" he gasped.
She chuckled.
"Never. They say these systems are too impractical. Many ships no longer
even have them. Once in a million they're usable."
He grunted. "Umph.
That's what I thought. Now, how do we get out of here?"
"There's an under
and over escape-hatch system," she told them. "The thing's an
airlock, but it won't pump, of course. You're going to have to lift me up so I
can trip the safety switches. The ceiling one's no good to us."
He groaned, but managed.
She reached out, just barely getting the controls, and, after several tries and
one or two drops, there was a hissing sound and the hatch dropped. More long
minutes passed while she tried to jump from his shoulders and grab the edge of
the hatch. Finally, when they'd almost given up and Renard was complaining he
couldn't take it any more, she got a grip, hoisted herself in, and flipped open
the outer lock.
"Suppose we can't
breathe out there!" Nikki yelled to Mavra.
Mavra looked down at
them. "In that case we're dead anyway," she told them. Actually, she
knew the odds were against the air being something they could use, but there
had been an ocean and green trees, and that held hope.
She pulled herself out
of the lock, and stared.
"Smells kind of
funny, but I think we're all still alive," she called back. "I'll get
some tether cable from the work locker. It was supposed to anchor spacesuits,
but it should hold you."
Nikki was the toughest.
She was very heavy and not very athletic, and while they pulled in the
darkness—Renard had climbed the anchored tether cord on his own—both Nikki's
arms and theirs seemed ready to give out. They were working on adrenalin now,
they knew, and that energy would not last forever.
But they did get Nikki
clear of the first hatch, where the ribbed sides gave some sort of tenuous leg
supports, and they managed to get her out.
Once off the bridge
module, they sank on what appeared to be real grass, exhausted, the landscape
swimming by them. Mavra put herself through a series of body-control exercises
and managed to will away much of the pain but not the feeling of exhaustion.
She opened her eyes, looked back at the other two, and saw them sprawled out,
asleep and breathing hard.
She scanned the horizon.
Nothing looked particularly threatening; it was around midday, and their
surroundings looked like a quiet forest scene from any one of a hundred
planets. Some insects were audible, and she saw a few very standard-looking
birds floating on air currents high above, but little else.
She looked again at her
unconscious companions and sighed. Even so, somebody had to stay awake.
A blue-white shot sang
out across the great void that was the pit of the big disk. A little bit of the
molding around the control room smoldered and hissed. Somebody cursed. All over
were blotches where previous shots had struck, and the window out onto the pit
was long gone.
Gil Zinder sat nervously
hunched back against his control panel on the balcony. Antor Trelig was
growling and using the scarred but still reflective side molding of the door to
try and ascertain the location of the shooters. Ben Yulin, on the opposite side
of the doorway, checked his own pistol for its remaining charge.
"Why don't you
close the door?" Zinder shouted feebly. "Those shots are starting to
come into here!"
"Shut up, old
man," snarled Trelig. "If we shut it they can seal it with their fire
and then we might never get out of here. Ever think of that?"
Yulin snapped his
fingers and made his way to the interior control panel. A shot came near him,
but the control panel was angled away from the door sufficiently so that
anybody shooting at it would be a perfect target for Trelig.
Anxiously, Yulin flipped
the intercom open. "Obie?" he called.
"Yes, Ben?"
the computer replied.
"Obie, how are your
visuals in the tunnel? Can you give us a fix on how many there are and what
damage there is?"
"My visuals are
unimpaired," Obie responded. "There are seven of them left. You shot
three and they are gone. There is a lot of damage to the pit control room and
the facing wall, but nothing major."
Yulin nodded to himself,
and Trelig suddenly and quickly crouched, leaned out of the doorway, and shot a
volley.
"Missed them by a
kilometer, Trelig," Obie observed in a tone that indicated a smug
satisfaction. Trelig, hearing it, bristled but said nothing.
"Obie, how
operational are you?" Yulin asked, gesturing to Zinder to crawl over to
the console. The older man at first seemed too scared to move, but then,
slowly, started inching his way there.
"Not very,"
the computer told them. "The computer that runs the world down there is
both infinitely more complex and simpler than I am. Its input capabilities
appear to be unlimited, and it has complete control of all prime and secondary
equations at output—but it is entirely preprogrammed. It is not self-aware, not
an individual entity."
Gil Zinder reached the
console and sighed, then crouched next to Yulin.
"Obie, this is Dr.
Zinder," he told the machine. "Can you break contact with the other
computer?"
"Not at this time,
Dr. Zinder," Obie responded, his tone much nicer now, and more tinged with
concern. "When we activated the reverse field, we released the tension of
the energy controlling our own existence. It brought us here. Apparently the
world computer has been preprogrammed for just such an event, but the
programmers assumed that anyone who could tap the Markovian equations in such a
manner and bring themselves here would be at close to the same technological
level as the builders of the world computer. We are supposed to supersede
previous programming, tell it what to do next."
"Where is here, Obie?"
Zinder asked.
"The coordinates
would be useless, even if I had a frame of reference," Obie replied.
"We are, in a sense, in the center of the tangible universe, or so I
gather from what I can make of the other computer's information circuits."
Even Trelig understood
the implications. "You mean this is the center for all existence of all
matter in the galaxy?" he shouted.
"Just so,"
agreed Obie. "And all energy, too, except the primal energy that is the
building blocks for everything else. This is the central Markovian world, from
which, as near as I can see, they recreated the universe."
That thought sobered all
of them. Trelig's eyes shone, and his expression took on new determination.
"Such awesome power!" he said, too low for the others to hear. A
blue-white shot didn't snap him out of it but did bring him back to reality.
With such power within his grasp, he still had to survive this experience.
"Obie, can you
converse with this big machine?" Yulin asked eagerly.
The computer seemed to
think for a moment. "Yes and no. It's hard to explain. Suppose you had a
functional vocabulary of just eighty words? Suppose, in fact, you were only capable
of knowing eighty words. And suppose someone from your culture with a
doctorate in physics started talking his technical field with you. You couldn't
even absorb all the words, let alone understand any of the conversation."
"But you could talk
to it in those eighty words," Yulin pointed out.
"Not if you
couldn't even phrase the question," Obie retorted. "I haven't the
ability even to say 'hello' in an understandable manner—and I'm almost afraid
to try. There is an incredibly elaborate preprogrammed sequence that I am aware
of but cannot follow or comprehend. I don't dare try. It might wipe out all
reality, or the other computer and all reality as well, leaving me as the only
thing left. What then?"
The scientists saw what
he meant. The Markovians had preprogrammed the computer to turn over everything
to their successors, when they reached the Markovian level. It apparently had
never occurred to them that a Gil Zinder, a primitive ape, would stumble onto
their precious formula millennia before man was ready. The master computer out
there was waiting for Obie to tell it to shut down, that new masters were
taking over.
But the new masters were
three very scared primitives and an equally scared computer, the primitives
trapped by the former employees of one of them. The guards, seeing the change
in position and realizing that the sponge supply ship would not be coming, knew
they were going to die horribly.
But they were going to
die free. They were going to take their hated master with them.
"Obie?" Yulin
called.
"Yes, Ben?"
"Obie, can you
figure out how the hell we can get out of here?"
The computer had
anticipated that one.
"Well, you could
just wait them out," Obie suggested. "There are provisions here
for a week, and I can create more than enough to sustain you. In three weeks or
so all the guards will be dead; in two they will be in no condition to oppose
you or do you harm."
"No good!"
Trelig shouted to them all. "There are two ships up there that must be
placed under our control—otherwise we're trapped. Remember, there are a lot of
agents and diplomatic people who won't be affected by the sponge wearing off! With
the guards gone wild, some are probably armed by now and might be able to take
the ships. If they jump away, we're stuck for good!"
"Correction,"
Obie responded. "There is one ship. Mavra Chang, Nikki Zinder, and
a guard named Renard got off in one."
Gil Zinder seemed to
come to life again. "Nikki! Away from here! Obie—did they make it out? Are
they back home?"
"Sorry, Dr.
Zinder," the computer said sadly. "The early start for the tests
forced my hand. They were taken in the vortex with us, and have since crashed
on the Well World."
The old scientist's look
of hope gave way to despair, and he seemed to crumble. Trelig was upset by a
different point entirely.
"What do you mean,
forced your hand?" the erstwhile master of New Pompeii snarled
angrily. "You treasonous machine!"
Obie was nonplussed.
"I am a self-aware individual, Councillor. I do what I must do, and yet I
have certain freedom of action outside those parameters. Just like
people," he added, not a little smugly.
Ben Yulin's mind was the
engineer's. "What did you call that world they crashed on, Obie?" he
asked, ignoring the others.
"The Well
World," responded the computer. "That is its name."
Yulin thought for a
moment. "The Well World," he murmured, almost to himself. Now he
looked straight at the speaker. More shots were being exchanged between Trelig
and the guards outside.
"Obie?" Ben
almost whispered, "tell me about this Well World. Is it just a big
Markovian computer, or what?"
"I have to
interpolate, Ben," Obie apologized. "After all, I'm getting this
information in bits and pieces and it's all coming in at once. No, I don't
think so, though. The computer—the Well—is the entire core of the planet. The
planet itself seems to be divided into many more than a thousand separate and
distinct biospheres, each with its own dominant life form and supporting its
own flora, fauna, atmospheric conditions, and the like. It's like a massive
number of little planets. I infer these as prototype colonies for later
implantation into the universe in their true, mathematically precise
environments. They are alive, they are active, they exist."
The other two were
listening now, fascinated in spite of themselves.
"The three, who
crashed," Gil Zinder tried dryly. "Did they—did they . . .
survive?"
"Unknown,"
Obie replied truthfully. "Since they are not part of the Well World
matrix, they are not in the computer's storage. Even if they were, I doubt if
they could be picked out. There are too many sentient beings down there."
"Why don't you ask
him something practical, like how the hell we get out of here?" Trelig
snapped, breaking the reverie. "The fact that there's only one ship left
makes the matter even more pressing!"
Yulin nodded, unhappy to
break this fascinating new line of discovery but unable to argue with Trelig's
practicality. But the computer was a hostile accomplice; questions would have
to be in absolutes. Yulin suddenly felt like he knew what it was like to have
to strike a bargain with the devil.
And then, suddenly,
without Obie's aid, he had it. Yulin let out a disgusted exclamation that made
the others turn, then slammed his right fist into his left palm. "Curse me
for a fool!" he swore. "Of course!" Calming himself down, he
asked, "Obie, is your little disk still operable?"
"Yes, Ben,"
Obie replied. "But only within its previous limits. The big disk is locked
into the Well computer until I or somebody can figure out how to disengage it,
and I have no ideas at all on that right now."
Yulin nodded, more to
himself than to the machine. "Okay. Okay. The little one's all I need now.
Obie, you have the formula for sponge, don't you?"
"Of course,"
came the reply, a little startled. "From the bloodstream of a number of
early subjects."
"Uh, huh,"
Yulin muttered. He was all business now. "Activate and energize. I want a
small quantity of sponge, say five grams, in a leakproof plastic container. The
straight stuff. And, I want an additional kilogram of the stuff with the
following chemical substitutions." He proceeded to rattle off a long
chemical chain that startled the others.
Zinder was the first to
realize where Yulin was headed, and almost moaned, "But—you can't do that!"
But Yulin could, had
ordered it, energized Obie, and the disk was even now swinging out over the
circular platform, and the blue field was forming.
"What the hell are
you going to do?" Trelig shouted.
"He's going to
poison the poor bastards," Gil Zinder replied. He looked up at Yulin.
"But—why? With sponge they'll be back under your command again
anyway."
Ben Yulin shook his
head. "Maybe upstairs—maybe. But not these folks out there. They are
already resigned to death and they're committed." He turned to Trelig.
"Keep a watch on old doc here while I get the stuff," he called.
In a flash Yulin was
off, bounding down the stairs to the platform. Carefully, he examined the two
packages, found some gloves, and picked up both of them. He still didn't quite
trust Obie. And then he was back.
"Have we still got
communication?" he asked the councillor.
Trelig nodded. "I
think so, unless they've shot out the circuits. Try it."
Yulin went over to the
wall, flipped a switch. "You, out there!" he called, hearing his own
voice echoing eerily from the vast pit beyond the wall. "Listen to me! We
have sponge! Things aren't hopeless! We'll give it to you if you surrender your
weapons!" He flipped the intercom back to Open.
There was a sudden
silence from the outside, as if the news had unsettled the others, which was
good. There was no reply as yet, but no shots, either.
After what seemed like
an interminable wait, Trelig growled, "They didn't buy it."
Yulin, although fearing
much the same thing himself, replied, "Don't jump the gun. They're
probably voting on it. And thinking about the pain of no-dose for the first
time. Even though they won't really start to feel the effects for a while, they
feel it in their minds even now."
And he was right. A few
minutes later the intercom burst into life.
"Okay, Yulin, maybe
you get out," came a rather pleasant voice with a very unpleasant
undertone. "But how do we know you aren't lying? We know how much sponge
comes in. Every gram."
"We can make it!
All you need!" Yulin responded, trying to keep his tension and anxiety out
of his tone. "Look, I'll prove it to you. Send a representative over the
bridge. Any one. I'll toss out a fiver. Try it. You'll know what I say is the
truth."
There was another long
silence, and then the same voice came back, "All right. I'm coming over.
But if I don't make it or the stuff's no good, the other six will get you if it's
the last thing they do—and there's plenty more of us Topside. They know what's
going on down here."
Yulin grinned to
himself. Another piece of useful information. The intercoms on Topside still
worked. Now he knew just how much of the story they would know, and that
intelligence would possibly make the difference.
A few minutes later a
lone figure could be seen walking across the great bridge that spanned the pit
to Obie's major core. It was a tiny, frail-looking figure, dwarfed almost to
insignificance by the magnitude of the structure around it. It was either a
very young girl or one of the screwy sexers. It didn't matter.
The former guard seemed
to take forever to get there, and finally stopped about ten meters from the
doorway.
"I'm here!"
she (he?) announced needlessly.
Yulin gripped the small
bag of pure sponge. "Here it comes!" he shouted and tossed it onto
the bridge. It hit with a pock sound and slid almost to the other's
feet.
The guard picked it up,
looked at it, then tore open the plastic and pulled out the tiny piece of
yellow-green sponge, an actual living creature of sorts. It really was a
sponge, too, a denizen of a beautiful world that had been settled centuries ago
by a prototype human colony. Interaction of alien bacteria with some of the
synthetic elements in the colony's initial food supply had spawned the horror
that made Antor Trelig and his vast syndicate so powerful. The new mutated
substance had permeated every cell of the humans' bodies, replacing vital
substances. The cells took to it fantastically; once in, it was neither
rejected nor displaced. Indeed, the cells actually started making more of the
stuff. The initial contamination was irreversible. A moderate amount caused no
apparent physical changes, but was there all the same. A large amount, as the
guards had gotten, caused cells to trigger in strange ways, causing deformity,
accenting opposite sexual characteristics, or, as in Nikki Zinder's case,
causing runaway obesity or other equally horrible characteristics. It varied with
the individual, although sexual characteristics, being the most sensitive, were
the most common.
The organism, however,
was totally parasitic. It would consume the host, particularly its brain, where
brain cells died irreplaceably in a great progression. Unchecked, the mutant
substance would slowly destroy the mind well ahead of the body; it was painful.
Since the stuff was not selective, often mental capacity was reduced or limited
for all intents and purposes while the central core of one's being was the last
to go. One knew what was happening, knew until it struck the cerebral
cortex full and turned one first into an animal, then into a vegetable that
would simply lie there and starve to death. A slow-motion lobotomy.
Sponge was not the drug,
it was the antidote. Not an effective one, since it had to be periodically
renewed, but the secretions of the native sponge plants did in fact arrest the
growth of the mutant strain. To need sponge was to become the syndicate's
slave. The stuff was too dangerous for the Com to keep around; the sponge
itself contained the addicting material. But greedy, ambitious politicians had
it, grew it, and ruled with it.
Facing such a future,
the guard greedily and unhesitantly gobbled up the sponge in the plastic
envelope. It was not a sufficient dose—all of New Pompeii's personnel were
deliberately given massive overdoses, which required massive amounts of sponge
to counter—but it would be convincing.
It was. "It's
real!" the guard shouted, clearly amazed. "It's the pure stuff!"
"A kilo in exchange
for your weapons!" Trelig yelled, feeling in charge once again.
"Now—or we wait you out!"
"The word has gone
to Topside!" came a new, deeper voice from the intercom. "Okay, we're
coming over—four of us. The others will make sure you don't blast us. You get their
weapons when we get the kilo and you come out. Not before."
Trelig waited what he
thought would be a convincing period of time, grinning evilly now. Their ploy
was all too obvious.
Three more joined the
first one, looking somewhat eagerly at the very door that, just moments before,
they'd been trying to blast.
"Okay, here's the
kilo!" shouted the master of New Pompeii, as he heaved it out.
They almost pounced on
it, and two of them made a simultaneous grab for the package. One scooped it up
and started running back to the other side, while the other three nervously
blocked Trelig's view.
"What if they don't
take it right away?" Yulin whispered, worried.
"They will,"
Trelig replied confidently. "They're overdue, remember. How powerful is
that stuff?"
"It should feel
great for five or six minutes," the younger man told him. "After
that, well, they should just all get massive heart seizures and keel
over."
Trelig looked suddenly
worried. "Should? You mean there's some doubt?"
"No, no, not
really," Yulin replied, shaking his head. "I didn't really mean that.
No, what's in there is enough to kill an army. Give them ten minutes, no
more."
"Think they'll run
for Topside?" Trelig continued, still worried. "Or maybe one will
live long enough to radio a warning."
Yulin considered this.
"No, I doubt if they'll wait to get to Topside. You yourself just said
they're overdue. As for one giving a warning, well, if you can find a personal
intercom, we ought to be able to find out."
They waited anxiously.
Trelig could not find the intercom; the one he had originally worn was long
smashed in the reversal. "We'll just have to bluff it through," he
growled, uncertainty again in his voice. "Say—how will we know they're
gone? You want to be the first target? Or maybe Doc, there?"
Yulin shook his head.
"Not necessary. Obie's sensors are still on." He walked over to the
console.
"Obie, are the
guards still alive?"
"No, Ben,"
responded the computer. "At least, I register no life forms in their old
area. They winked out pretty suddenly. You murdered them clean."
"Save your
sarcasm," Yulin growled. "Did you monitor any transmissions to
Topside?"
"I haven't much
capability there," Obie noted. "I don't know."
Ben Yulin nodded, then
turned to Trelig. "Well, we got by obstacles one through six. Topside's
gonna be a lot tougher, though. Any ideas?"
Trelig thought for a
moment, eyes gleaming. The immediate threat over, he was beginning to enjoy
this.
"Ask the machine if
anyone Topside is aware of who escaped in the first ship," he ordered.
"How could Obie
know?" Yulin asked. "I mean, if he can't even monitor communications.
Why? What have you got in mind?"
"To get to my
position, you have to think of all the angles," the syndicate boss told
him. "For example, either ship was capable of carrying at least half the
guests, yet only Mavra Chang, Nikki Zinder, and the guard went. Why?"
Yulin thought a minute.
"Because they sneaked out. Chang was paid to get the girl, not save
everybody on Topside. The more people in a plot, the more chance for a
foul-up."
Trelig nodded. "Now
you begin to see. There are a lot of them, and they barely know one another.
I'd guess, too, that they have, at best, an uneasy relationship with the
guards. All hell broke loose not long after the ship left. Want to bet some of
them don't even know a ship is gone?"
"The guards—"
Yulin objected.
"Will know only that
the ship is gone," Trelig completed. "They also know that without the
codes the second ship would be blasted by the orbiting sentries. Hell, they won't
remember who's who or how many there are, you know that. The girl's been more
or less sealed off, and the guard—what's one guard? Could have been killed down
here. Getting the idea now?"
"You mean impersonate
the ones who got away?" Yulin gasped.
Trelig's expression
looked impatient, impatient at this elementary step.
"Look," he
said. "We need a way to gain their confidence. Take them off guard. We
need a way to get to those visitors as friends, convince them it's us against
the guards, get their help in taking the ship. We must get that ship
away until they've died out here. We can't do it alone."
Yulin nodded. "I
see," he said, but he didn't like it. He looked over at Gil Zinder. The
older man was slumped, a vacant expression. He looked tired and defeated.
"What about
him?" Ben Yulin asked, gesturing.
"He has to go with
us," Trelig answered quickly. "He knows how to operate Obie, and Obie
will do anything for him. To leave him here would be like jumping into the pit
out there."
Yulin nodded, his mind
already considering several things, all unpleasant. For one thing, he didn't
like the idea of going through the thing himself. Sending others through, that
was fine—a tremendous feeling of godlike power. But himself—to become someone,
something else. Trelig's plan worried him, worried him as much as having to
bring it about using his own special circuitry, revealing to Zinder—and to
Trelig—his own mastery of the machine.
He looked again at
Trelig. The councillor had a curious half-smile on his face and still held the
pistol in his hand. He'd seen similar expressions on his boss when
administering sponge to new victims and when ordering nasty executions.
"You want to go
first?" he suggested hopefully.
That evil grin spread
wider. "No, I don't think so," the syndicate boss replied acidly.
"You can do it, then?"
Yulin nodded dully,
still grasping at straws. He did not want to surrender to permanent
second-class status.
"Then we'll do it
this way," the big man continued. "First, you will try to find out
the identity of the guard. If Obie can keep track of people, he should know who
it was. Then one of us becomes the guard—minus the sponge addiction, make sure
of that!—and one becomes Nikki Zinder and the third becomes Mavra Chang. All
preprogrammed in noninterruptable sequence, of course." He shrugged
disarmingly. "It's not that I don't trust you, you understand. It's
just that you get on top by doing the unthinkable and you stay on top by
thinking the unthinkable."
Yulin sighed,
surrendering. The better part of valor and all that, he decided.
"Who do you want to
be?" he asked.
"We have to think
this through, and time's pressing," Trelig replied. "The old man,
there—well, we'll need some sort of mind-bind, of course. Make him his own
flesh and blood. Behavior patterns will also have to be programmed in," he
reminded the younger scientist. "We don't want any slip-ups. We will not
just have to look like these people, but walk like them, talk like them, almost
think like them, while remaining ourselves inside. The odds are the guard's one
of the supervisors, and they're all sexual foul-ups. I'm hermaphroditic, so
that shouldn't pose a problem. That makes you Mavra Chang."
"I'd rather not be
a woman," Yulin protested weakly.
"You won't mind
when you've been through the disk," Trelig retorted. "Now, let's get
the instructions letter-perfect, so everything's right and we get nothing funny
added or subtracted by the machine. And—when you're doing it, Ben, you will
show me how."
Yulin started to
protest, then decided there was no point to it. He turned to the console.
"Obie? Do you have
the identity of the guard who escaped with Mavra Chang?" he asked.
"It was
Renard," replied the computer. "I have no reading for him and he did
not leave Topside for here. A few died Topside, though, so a slight chance
exists that it was not."
"It has to
be," Trelig decided. "He was one of the girl's guards. Everything
fits. I'll take a chance on it."
Ben Yulin nodded.
"I don't think it'd be a good idea if the Doc, here, knows the
access," he pointed out.
Trelig agreed, turned,
and shot a short stun beam at the helpless Zinder, who collapsed in a heap.
"Five minutes," Trelig warned his associate. "No more."
Ben Yulin nodded, then
turned back to the console. He didn't like doing what he was about to do, and
in front of the one man who could later use it against him, but a double cross
at this point had too many risks to be worth it.
"Obie?" he
called.
"Yes, Ben?"
the computer responded.
He punched some buttons
on his keyboard, acutely aware of Antor Trelig's steady gaze at the
combinations.
"Unnumbered
transaction," he told the machine. "File in aux storage under my key
only."
"What?" The
computer seemed slightly startled, then, as access to the sealed-off sections
became open to him, Obie realized what was going on.
"How many times
have you used this, Ben?" Obie asked, marveling as always at the discovery
of a part of himself he'd not known was there.
"Not often,"
Yulin responded casually. "Now, Obie, I want you to listen carefully. You
will carry out my instructions to the letter, neither adding nor subtracting
anything on your own. Is that clear?"
"Yes, Ben,"
Obie replied resignedly.
Yulin paused a moment to
choose his words, conscious of the dangers in giving Obie an opening, and also
of Trelig's ready pistol. There were tiny beads of sweat on his forehead.
"Three
transactions, in sequence, which must be completed before any additional
instructions may be given you," he said cautiously. "One, Dr. Gilgam
Zinder, outward form to be that of the last coding of Nikki Zinder minus the
sponge presence. Memory will remain Gil Zinder's, with all attendant knowledge
and skills, but subject will be unable to transmit this fact or information
except on instruction from Antor Trelig or myself. Otherwise, subject will
possess all behavior patterns of the frame of reference, including walk,
emotive reactions, and speech, and all other characteristics to render subject
indistinguishable from the frame of reference. Subject will further be unable
to convey by any means the true identities of Antor Trelig or myself.
Clear?"
"I understand,
Ben," Obie replied.
Yulin nodded, certain he
had completed that step correctly. "Two. Subject Antor Trelig. Subject is
to be physically fitted to the last coding of the guard Renard, minus the
sponge addiction. Subject will be provided with all behavior modes of the frame
of reference, including walk, emotive reactions, speech, and all other
characteristics to render subject indistinguishable from the frame of
reference. However, memory will remain Antor Trelig's, with all attendant
knowledge and skills, able to call upon his true self at any point." Yulin
suddenly looked around at Trelig and asked, "All right so far?"
Trelig nodded cautiously.
"Three," Yulin
continued. "Subject Abu Ben Yulin. Subject is to be fitted physically to
the last coding of Mavra Chang. Subject will be provided with all behavior
modes of the frame of reference, including walk, emotive reactions, speech, and
all other characteristics to render subject indistinguishable from the frame of
reference. However, memory will remain Abu Ben Yulin's, with all attendant
knowledge and skills, able to call upon his true self at any point.
Clear?"
"Yes, Ben,"
Obie responded. "Clear and locked in."
Yulin, still nervous
about undergoing the process himself, added, "And, Obie, for all three
transactions, subjects are to be acclimated so that they feel physiologically
and psychologically comfortable with the new bodies and external behavior
patterns. Understand?"
"Yes, Ben. I
understand you don't like to be a woman," Obie responded acidly. Yulin
scowled but let the remark go. He turned to Trelig. "Okay, take the doc
down," he said.
"First, tell the
machine that the transactions are locked in," Trelig responded softly.
Yulin grinned sheepishly and shrugged. There was no doubt whatsoever as to how
Antor Trelig had attained and kept his position of power.
"Lock on all
transactions now," he told Obie.
"Locked and
running," Obie responded. "Go ahead with the run."
Satisfied now that Yulin
could do nothing to override the instructions, Trelig gestured with the pistol
and took Gil Zinder downstairs.
The transformation
didn't take long. Yulin watched as first Gil Zinder dissolved in blue sparkles
and reformed as an absolute duplicate of Nikki Zinder. The older scientist
could do nothing, and so stood and watched as Trelig nervously mounted the
disk, and threw his pistol hesitantly to Ben Yulin. Yulin thought, as Trelig
dissolved and a few seconds later started reforming as the guard, how easy it
would be to shoot Trelig. Zinder seemed to catch the younger man's thoughts,
and said, in Nikki's adolescent tones, "No, Ben! You can't! He's
the only one who knows how to get us off the planet!"
Yulin sighed, realizing
the truth of that statement and accepting it grudgingly. He had to assume that
the robot sentinels had also been transported, or else the nonspongies Topside
would have taken off in the ship by now.
Yulin almost chuckled at
Trelig's new appearance. Male sex organs on a very female-looking body. Trelig
stepped off, nodded in satisfaction, and took the pistol from Yulin's hand. Ben
had the uncomfortable idea suddenly that there was nothing to stop Trelig from
shooting him, but he was helpless. Nervous both from anticipation of the
process and from the sudden eerie feeling of impending death, he stepped up on
the disk, watched the little arm swing out over him, and felt a warm, tingling
glow course through his body. The lab, the watchers, seemed to flicker out,
then flicker back in again. He knew that there had probably been several
seconds between the flickers, but the sensation was not unpleasant.
The two watchers waited
as an exact duplicate of Mavra Chang materialized where Ben Yulin had been. The
new, tiny figure looked at Trelig's pistol a little anxiously, then saw that it
was held casually, sighed, and stepped off the platform, which seemed much
higher than it had getting on.
"Incredible!"
Trelig breathed. "You even move like her—feminine, catlike, almost."
Yulin nodded. "Now
let's go see about those guards," he suggested in Mavra's rich, exotic and
slightly accented voice.
* * *
The guards had died in a
brief moment of extreme agony, that much was clear from the expressions on
their faces.
"Remember not to
touch them or that packet!" Yulin cautioned. Trelig nodded as he gingerly
reached out, took a pistol by the barrel from the holster of one, examined it,
wiped it off on the clothing of another, and handed it to Yulin, who just
nodded. Next they found the portacom, with its working linkage to Topside. It was
on Standby and there was nothing but a hiss coming through it.
Yulin looked at Trelig.
"Ready?" he asked.
The councillor, who now
looked like one of his guards, nodded and picked it up, switched it to Receive.
There was still nothing
for a minute or two, then a small voice came at them.
"Underside! Come
in! What's happening down there?" came a tinny, nasal voice that belonged
to one of the guards. Trelig sighed, and said softly to Yulin, "Well, may
as well find out now if the bluff works." Punching the Send button,
he said: "This is Renard. I was bringing the prisoners Mavra Chang and
Nikki Zinder down for Trelig when all this chaos broke out. They got them—all
of them, but the cost was heavy. Me and my prisoners are the only ones left
down here, and the old scientist also got it. They lied about the sponge."
There was silence for
quite some time, and for a moment Trelig thought they hadn't bought the story,
but then the Topside voice came back with a tired and defeated tone. "All
right, then. But if Chang and the girl are down there, who took off in
that ship? Marta said—"
Trelig thought fast.
"There were some New Harmony crew on that thing, remember. I guess they
panicked and ran out on the boss."
There was no other
logical explanation, so they accepted it.
"Okay," came
the reply. "Come on up and bring your prisoners with you. We have to get
together and think this out." That wasn't said with any enthusiasm;
without sponge, they knew what was about to happen.
"Acknowledge and
out," Trelig said, and switched to Standby. "I guess this
calls for some cheering," he said to his partner.
Yulin still looked
concerned. "This is only the start of it," he reminded the other.
"We still have to get up there and somehow take over that ship." He
had a sudden thought. "Is there enough food and water on that ship for a
long stay?"
Trelig nodded. "Oh,
yes. We'll probably kill some time taking a close look at that weird planet out
there. When the spongies are gone, we can make a deal by radio with the
surviving representatives."
And then what? Yulin wondered,
considering their luck so far.
"Let's make sure
Obie's safe from prying while were away," Trelig suggested, and they
returned to the internal control room.
Yulin punched the codes.
"Obie?"
"Yes, Ben?"
"First off, as soon
as we are in the car to Topside you will file all transactions under my
personal key. Understand?"
"Yes, Ben."
Trelig thought a moment.
"Then how will we get back in? He'll only recognize us as Renard
and Mavra Chang. And if Chang's survived, that will open Obie to her if she
manages to get back here. We don't know if they might not have some sort of
spacecraft on that world out there."
Yulin thought a minute,
realizing that Trelig had seen a nasty trap. The odds were against Chang
surviving—he didn't worry about Nikki Zinder or Renard, the sponge would kill
them anyway—but they had come so far now on long shots that the breaks would
have to go the other way once in a while.
"How about a code
word or sequence?" he suggested to the syndicate boss. "Then one of
us would have to be here, no matter what form."
Trelig nodded. He didn't
bother to ask why not both of them; he would not like to have to need Yulin in
a pinch, and they weren't out of the woods yet. "But what code?" he
asked.
Yulin smiled. "I
think I know one. But what about Zinder? We don't want anyone else to
know."
Trelig nodded, then set
the pistol again for short stun. He looked at the duplicate of Nikki Zinder,
who responded, pleadingly, "Not again!" Trelig fired, and the
girl who was something else collapsed in a heap.
"The same five
minutes," Antor Trelig cautioned. "Get moving!"
Yulin nodded, then
turned back to the board. Both he and Gil Zinder had been fairly tall men, and
the control boards were set for that. Now he was a much smaller individual, and
had to almost lean over on the control board from the chair to reach some of
the controls.
"Obie?"
"Yes, Ben?"
"This is on
open-file storage, not keyed," he told the computer. "At the
same time as you file the previous transactions, you will energize into the Defend
mode. All systems will be locked and frozen, and you will kill anyone
attempting to gain entry to this area from the point of the center of the
bridge. Can you hear audibles from the center of the bridge?"
Obie considered a
second. "Yes, Ben. You might have to yell."
Yulin accepted this.
"All right, then, you will remain in Defend until someone comes to
the center of the bridge with his arms raised high over his head, palms out. I
will shoot a small mark on the bridge as we leave. At that mark, this
individual must say, 'There is no god but Allah, and Mohammed is his prophet.'
Got that?"
Trelig chuckled.
"Old habits are hard to break, eh?" But it pleased him—easy to
remember, but nobody was ever likely to say that one and include
the appropriate gestures, unless they knew.
"I understand,
Ben."
He switched off, and
they waited for Zinder to come around. It took about six minutes, these things
varying with the individual. Zinder was tingling, as though his whole body were
asleep, but the effect wore off quickly enough.
"Let's go,"
Yulin said, and they walked out across the bridge. About halfway, Yulin set his
pistol to Full and shot at the restraining wall over the pit. It was a
hard, tough material, but the shot gouged a nasty scar that was visible, yet
would be mistaken by others as perhaps a remainder of the gun battle.
They walked on, got into
the car, and settled back. Trelig pressed the stud, the door closed, and the
car started Topside.
Inside Obie, as this
happened, circuits opened and closed, energy danced, and Obie went into the
defense mode, but he could not remember how to break it. That disturbed him.
The last thing he remembered was Yulin at the control panel and the guards
dying of the poisoned sponge.
It was an impossible
mystery. He returned quickly to his primary job of trying to disengage himself
from the great Well World computer, or, failing that, to create some sort of
partnership with it.
It would be long, tough
work.
Mavra Chang had been
dozing in spite of herself. When tension wears off, it produces a kind of
worn-out lethargy that is almost impossible to shake. Suddenly, however, she
came awake with a start and looked around, bleary-eyed. She understood what had
happened and cursed herself for it, but she was mostly concerned now with what
had brought her to consciousness.
Nikki and Renard were
still asleep, sprawled out on the grass, and appeared to be the better for it.
Nervously, she looked around, eyes, ears, nose straining for the disturbance.
There was a warm breeze
blowing fleecy white clouds across a blue sky, and she could hear the rustle of
treetops in the wind and the chatter of strange birds and insects. Out across
the meadow, came the distant sounds of animals in great agitation. She knew the
signs; something was coming, something that the ordinary dwellers of the forest
considered a danger or an intruder or both. She turned to the sleeping pair,
shook Renard gently. At first he didn't stir, then, as she shook him harder, he
moaned and said, "Huh? What?"
"Wake up!" she
hissed. "Company coming!"
They both woke Nikki, an
even harder task than with Renard, and Mavra thought about what to do.
"We have to get
away from here," she told them. "Now! I'd like to see who or
what we're facing before they find us."
They stood up and
followed her back into the woods a ways.
"If anybody knows
what the module out there is, they'll be looking for us," she told them.
"Still, I want to see what we're up against. Stay here and stay hidden in
the undergrowth. I'm going to sneak back for a quick look."
"Be careful,"
Renard cautioned, needlessly but with real concern in his voice.
She nodded, appreciating
the concern, and crept back to the clearing. Whoever or whatever was
approaching was big—she could tell that. It was almost as if the ground was
trembling slightly, and the clatter among the wildlife was intense.
Cautiously she peered
out from behind a bush and gave a short gasp of surprise. She had expected
almost anything but what she saw coming toward her.
It was huge—between
three and four meters tall, with incredible shoulders and bulging muscles. Its
chest and arms were vaguely reddish in color, and humanoid—that is, a human
muscleman. The face was huge and ugly: almost an oval, with a broad, flat nose
with flaring nostrils, and a mouth permanently set in anger, two long, sharp
fangs protruding out of the corners. The ears were large and looked vaguely
like great seashells, although they came to a point at the top. A mane of dark
blue-black hair sat atop the head, coming to a point between two nasty-looking,
sharp horns nearly a meter long.
But it was the eye that
commanded attention. It looked like one huge humanlike eye right above the nose
and dead center below the forehead. A closer look showed it to be segmented in
some way, as if the eye were actually a collection of eyes with one great lid.
From the waist down the
creature was covered in thick, wooly rust-red hair, the great muscled legs
ending in elephantine hoofs. It wore a single garment, a dirty white wool brief
around the crotch that did little to disguise the male sex organ that was
proportionate to the figure's great size. It seemed to growl and grumble as it
approached steadily, fearing nothing and looking as fierce as any wild thing
Mavra had ever seen.
It stopped, seemed to
sniff the air, looking first one way and then the other. She worried that it
might catch her scent, and found herself almost unconsciously pressing back,
crouched and wound up like a coiled spring, although she wondered if anyone
could outrun such a monster.
And then she saw the
strange thing. The creature had a band made of some sort of skin wrapped around
its left arm; attached to it had to be what it appeared—a massive wind-up type
wrist watch.
For the first time Mavra
realized she was seeing one of the dominant races of this strange place.
The wind shifted
slightly, and the creature seemed to lose the scent it had been trying to
localize. It turned its attention back to the passenger module. For a moment it
just stood there, looking the thing over as if wondering what to do, then it
approached, not cautiously but with great confidence. Clearly this thing had
nothing to fear in its own land.
The creature was almost
as tall as the module, and it looked the alien thing over critically, as if
puzzled by it. Then it seemed to spy the open hatch and tried to pull itself up
to it. This proved a failure, and after several tries the thing gave a massive
roar of rage and hit its right fist into its left palm in a very human gesture
of frustration.
Just then a second
cyclops came into view and roared to the first one. The sounds seemed brutish
and animalistic to Mavra, but she knew it must be some form of speech. Animals
don't use or need wrist watches.
The newcomer approached,
and off in the distance Mavra thought she heard the roars of several more. They
had obviously not landed in a densely-populated area—luckily!—but investigators
were now steadily arriving, along with the curious, on the scene.
The second one came up
to the first and started spewing a whole series of snarls and grunts, with
appropriate gestures. The first, slightly taller and broader, responded in
kind, pointing to the module, the open hatch, and making all sorts of circles
with his hands.
After a while a third
one appeared, and a fourth, and a fifth. Two of the newcomers were females,
Mavra noted. They were almost a meter shorter than the males, making them only
three meters tall, and, unlike the males, they didn't seem as muscular—perhaps
capable of uprooting medium-sized trees, but not of tearing sheet metal like
paper. They also seemed a bit bowlegged, squatter, and had small, rock-firm
breasts. They had no horns, either, but they shared the male's permanently
nasty expressions and seemed to have fangs that were a bit longer than their
brothers'. There may have been a half-octave difference in their speech, but
considering the grunts, groans, growls, and yowls these things made, nobody but
they would ever know.
One of the females was
also wearing a watch, and two of the newcomers, a male and a female, seemed to
be wearing some jewelry—made of bones, Mavra noted—dangling from their ears and
around their necks. Perhaps insignia of rank or tribe, she guessed.
The first male roared so
loudly it panicked birds for a quarter-kilometer around; he gestured to the
others. They first tried to boost him up on top of the module, but the surface
was too slippery for him. Then they took another tack. They went around to the
other side and started pushing, the big one counting cadence of sorts. The
module rocked, rocked again, and, on the third try, rolled over on its side.
One of the females picked up a rock almost the size of Mavra Chang and wedged it
under the module while the others held it steady.
The big one then went
back around and roared approval. The open hatch was now at about his eye level,
and he peered in, curiously. A massive arm reached out, went into the hole, and
there was a terrible crunching noise. The hand came out clasping a seat, ripped
from its solid connections to the floor, and he looked at it. One of the
females pointed a clawed finger at the seatrest, and the others nodded. One of
the other males stooped down a little and held his hand just above his knee.
Mavra could guess the conversation. They were estimating the size of the
creatures who had ridden it in.
That did it, she
decided, and slowly slunk back into the woods. No use getting caught by a wind
change. Those folks were obviously bright even if primitive, and the assembly
of giants was becoming a convention rather quickly. She didn't want any
introductions until she knew what those giants would eat.
Nikki spotted her first.
"Over here!" she called, and Mavra ran to them.
"Mavra! Thank
god!" Renard exclaimed with real feeling, and hugged her. "We heard
all that roaring and growling and we didn't know what had happened!"
Quickly she told them
about the cyclops. They listened in growing awe and terror.
"We'll have to get
away from here pretty quickly," she explained. "They already know
we're around."
The other two nodded.
"But—which way?" Nikki asked. "We could be going toward one of
their cities or something and never know it."
Mavra thought for a
moment. "Wait a minute. We know the whole world isn't like this—we even
saw some of the nearby places before the visuals went out. There's an ocean and
some mountains to the east of here, definitely not these folks' kind of turf.
We saw such terrain on the way in, remember?"
"But which way's
east?" Renard asked her.
"The planet's
rotation was basically west-to-east," Mavra reminded him. "That means
the sun rises in the east and sets in the west. I'd say it's getting close to
evening now, so that places the sun over there, and east is this way." She
pointed, and said, "Let's go."
They had no choice. They
followed her into the woods. Behind them, the roaring and bellowing continued.
"We should stick to
the woods as long as possible," she told them as they went. "It'll be
harder for those big babies to follow or track us."
They agreed with that
and proceeded on for some time, saying little to one another because there
seemed to be nothing to say. Nikki, because of her bulk, had the toughest
problem, but she was bearing up well, all things considered. She had only one
complaint.
"I'm
starving," she moaned during every one of their frequent rest periods.
Renard was getting a
little hungry himself. The sun was getting low, the shadows deepening into
dusk. "Maybe I could stun one of those little animals we keep
seeing," he suggested. "A short burst with the pistol, that's
all."
Mavra thought it over.
"All right. Try it. But—make sure you see something and make sure you're
on stun. We don't want to set any forest fires here."
Almost as if cued by the
conversation, one of the critters they'd been talking about rustled around in
the underbrush. It was large—almost a meter long—but low, with a thin snout,
some bushy whiskers, and beady little rodent's eyes.
Renard calculated from
the noise where it would come out into a clear spot and set and aimed his
pistol. The thing seemed oblivious to the risk, and finally appeared where it
was supposed to. Renard pressed the trigger stud.
Nothing happened.
The little creature
turned to them, chattered what might have been an insult, and scurried off into
the darkness.
"What the
hell?" Renard exclaimed, befuddled. He looked at the pistol, tapped it,
looked at the charge meter. "No charge!" he said, amazed. "It
should be three-quarters full!" He started to throw the pistol away, but
Mavra reached out and took his arm, stopping him.
"Keep it," she
told him. "Remember, our ship didn't work here either. Maybe no machines
will. The pistol might be useful later, when we get to the sea. Even if it
isn't, nobody else will know it's empty. It might prove useful as a bluff."
Renard wasn't so sure,
but he wasn't about to question the woman now. He holstered it.
"Looks like we go
to bed hungry," he said. "Sorry, Nikki."
The girl sighed, but
could say nothing.
"I'll find us some
food tomorrow, I promise," Mavra found herself saying, and she half-believed
it. She'd been in hopeless and impossible situations many times, and every time
something had happened to straighten things out. She was a survivor. Nothing
lethal ever happened to her.
"We'll stay the
night right here," she told them. "We can't risk a fire, but I'll
take first watch. When I can't take it anymore, I'll wake you, Renard. Then you
do the same with Nikki."
The other two both
protested, but Mavra was in charge and she was firm. "I won't fall asleep
this time," she promised.
They settled down as
best they could. Only Mavra was dressed for this sort of thing. Nikki, who had
had only the filmy noncovering standard to New Pompeii and some sandals, had
discarded the sandals long before, as had Renard. They had also abandoned
wearing the covering, as it caught on the branches and bushes. Mavra had buried
the sandals rather than leave a trail, but she had made them carry their
clothing as some sort of protection against the dampness of the ground.
With the two as settled
as possible, Mavra removed her devices from the compartment in her boot and
checked each out. Without the power pack they didn't help much, and the power
pack, as expected, didn't work. She abandoned the project.
Darkness descended like
a blanket, and her eyes went to infrared.
Nikki was sound asleep
almost instantly, but she could hear Renard twist and turn, and finally sit up.
"What's the
problem?" she whispered. "Too much for one day?"
He came over to her,
carefully. She was almost invisible in her dark clothing.
"No, it's not
that," he whispered back. "I was just thinking, and feeling a little.
It's starting to get to me."
"The
situation?"
"The sponge,"
he responded flatly. "I'm in a great deal of pain right now—it's like a
yearning agony that courses through your whole body."
"All the
time?" she asked, concerned.
He shook his head.
"It comes in waves. This one's pretty bad. I don't know if it's getting to
Nikki yet, but if it isn't it will." He paused for a moment, then let the
words come, those words that were unarguable and inevitable.
"We're dying,
Mavra," he said flatly.
She accepted the
statement, but not its finality. Sponge was an abstract thing to her, and she'd
almost forgotten about their problem.
"What's it do,
Renard?" she asked him. "And how long does it take to do it?"
He sighed. "Well,
brain cells are the first to go. Each time one of these little attacks comes
on—and each one gets worse—you lose some of your body cells, and some of your
brain cells. It's kind of a slowdown rather than a death. I've seen it in others.
You still have all your memory, but you become less and less able to use it.
Thought processes, reasoning, all become harder and harder to do. The barely
possible today becomes the impossible tomorrow. Like getting dumber and dumber
as time goes on. How long the process takes varies with the individual, but,
well, the rough rule is that you lose ten percent of your capacity per day, and
that can never be reclaimed, even if you get more sponge later—which isn't
likely. I was always a pretty smart fellow—I used to teach, you know—but I can
already tell that something is happening. I'm ten percent dumber than
yesterday, but that doesn't really mean much if you start reasonably high. But
if you have an IQ of around 150, well, figure out the time."
Mavra did. If Renard had
been a 150 capacity yesterday, he was a 135 today. Okay, not really noticeable.
But that meant 122 tomorrow, 110 the day after, putting him at about average
ability. Then the deterioration really started, though. 110 would become 99,
and 99 would be 89. That was slow—what was that, four more days? Then 80 in
five, 72 in six—a low-grade moron. 65 in a week, about the mental and motor
levels of a three-year-old child. After that—perhaps an automaton, or some sort
of animalistic type, since memory would still be there, it was ability that was
being attacked.
"Nikki?" she
wondered.
"Less time, I'm
sure. Maybe a day or two less to the critical point," Renard responded.
Mavra thought for a
moment. A week, no more, maybe less. She wondered what it was like, living with
the knowledge of an inevitable, creeping death sentence. Did Renard really
believe such a thing could happen to him? No one could conceive realistically
of their own death, she once read. But as the process continued, and you knew
it continued, the frustration and fear would mount.
She reached over, gently
took his arm. He moved next to her. Suddenly, with her lightning speed, she
pricked his arm with some of the hypnotic fluid and injected a full load. He
started in surprise, then seemed to go limp.
"Renard, listen to
me," she commanded.
"Yes, Mavra,"
he responded, sounding something like a little child.
"Now, you will
trust me completely. You will believe in me and my abilities completely, and do
what I say without question," she told him. "You will feel strong and
good and well, and you will not feel any pain, longing, ache, or agony from the
sponge. Do you understand me?"
"Yes, Mavra,"
he repeated dully.
"Furthermore, you
will not think of the sponge. You will not think you are going to die,
or fall apart. The thoughts just will not enter your mind. When you wake up
each morning, you will not notice yourself as being any different than you have
ever been, nor will you notice any difference in Nikki. Do you
understand?"
"Yes, Mavra,"
he agreed.
"Okay, then. Now
you will go over to your place and lie down and get a really good, deep,
dreamless sleep, and wake up feeling wonderful with no memory of this conversation,
but you will do as I have told you. Now—go!"
He broke free from her
and went back over to where his clothing was spread out, lay down, and in
seconds was sound asleep.
The suggestion wouldn't
last, of course. She knew that. She would have to renew it every once in a
while, and now she'd have to try the same thing on Nikki, also putting thoughts
of her consuming hunger out of her mind.
But it would only make her
problem easier, not theirs. They would continue to deteriorate, to
disintegrate, until she would no longer be able to control them or influence
them.
Six days maximum to that
point.
Emotion welled up in
her. Somewhere, someone on this crazy world knew how to help them, could help
them, would help them. She had to believe that. Had to.
Six days.
She moved silently over
to Nikki Zinder.
It looked like any major
businessman's office. There were maps, charts, and diagrams all over the walls,
some strange-looking furniture, and a massive U-shaped desk that concealed
large numbers of controls and also contained writing implements, communications
devices, and the like. There was even a pistol of a strange sort in the upper
left-hand desk drawer.
But the creature who sat
behind that great desk, looking at a series of maps spread out before him, was
not a human being in any sense of the word, although he definitely was strictly
business.
He had a chocolate-brown
human torso, incredibly broad and ribbed so that the chest muscles seemed to
form squarish plates. A head, oval-shaped, was equally brown and hairless
except for a huge white walrus mustache under a broad, flat nose. Six arms,
arranged in threes, were spaced evenly in pairs down that torso and attached,
except for the top pair, on ball sockets like those of a crab. Below that
strange torso it all melted into an enormous brown-and-yellow striped series of
scales leading to a huge, coiled serpentine lower half. If outstretched, the
snakelike body would easily cover over five meters.
The creature used his
lower pair of arms to spread out what proved to be a map of the southern and
eastern hemisphere of the Well World. It looked like an odd assembly of
perfectly equal hexagons printed in black, with surprinting in a variety of
colors to show topography and water areas. While the lower arms kept the map
spread wide, the upper left arm ticked off various hexes with a broad pencil,
while the upper right hand jotted down notations on a pad with a different
pencil.
The middle left hand
punched an intercom to one side.
"Yes, sir?" a
female voice asked politely.
"I'll need
close-ups of hexes twelve, twenty-six, forty-four, sixty-eight, and two hundred
forty-nine," he told the secretary in a deep, rich bass voice. "Also,
kindly ask the Czillian ambassador to call on me as soon as possible." He
switched off without waiting for acknowledgment.
The creature studied the
map again and tried to think. Nine sections total. Nine. Why did that strike a
bell?
A buzzer sounded. He
flipped a switch on a different intercom to his right. "Serge Ortega,"
he answered curtly.
"Ortega? Gol Miter,
Shamozan," came a thin, reedy voice Ortega knew was coming from a
translator device.
"Yes, Gol? What is
it?" He glanced quickly at his map. Oh, yes, the three-meter-diameter
tarantulas. Memory is the first thing to go, he told himself sourly.
"We have a plot on
the new satellite. It's definitely artificial; some of the shots from the North
Zone telescopes have been fantastic. We did some spectroanalysis. The
atmosphere is a pretty standard Southern Hemisphere mix, heavy on the nitrogen
and oxygen, lots of water vapor. The pictures and our stuff match up pretty
good. The thing is divided in half, with some sort of physical—not
energy—bubble over it about two or three kilometers from the surface. That's
why we can't get much surface detail. Too much distortion. Definitely green
stuff all over, though, like somebody's garden, and some really vague stuff
that could be buildings. As if somebody's got their own little private
city-world there."
Serge Ortega thought a
moment. "What about the other half?"
"Not much. Raw
rock, mostly standard metamorphic stuff. Probably the only part of the original
natural object left. Except about halfway between equator and south pole, where
there's some kind of huge, shiny disk-shaped object practically built into the
thing."
Ortega frowned.
"Propulsion unit?"
"I doubt it,"
replied the giant spider. "This thing doesn't seem to have been built for
travel. That bubble is supported by an atmospheric renewal unit for sure. It
undulates. Anything other than regular orbital movement would collapse it.
There's a point near the edge on one side that has a lot of radiating energy,
though, and a funny pattern not consistent with the rest. Could be an airlock,
maybe a small spaceport."
Ortega nodded, mostly to
himself. "That fits. But how the hell did it get here?"
"Well, that disk's
aimed at the Equatorial Barrier no matter what position. Either the Well
brought it here or they brought themselves instantly to the Well, or so our scientists
say."
Ortega didn't like that.
Anybody fooling with the Well was fooling with the very nature of everybody's
reality. This sort of thing was not supposed to happen, he told himself
grumpily. Two of his stomachs were developing ulcers from it all, he could
tell.
"It's my guess that
they don't know what they've gotten themselves into," the snake-man said.
"Kind of clear that they wound up here, saw the Well, decided to check it
out, flew too low over a nontech hex, and lost power."
Suddenly he was bolt
upright. Nine sections! Of course! He cursed himself aloud, and the
giant spider came back from the intercom with "What was that? I didn't
catch it."
"Oh, nothing,"
he mumbled. "Just kicking myself for being an old man whose mind is
shot."
"Kicking yourself
would be a good trick," the spider retorted lightly. "Why? What have
you got?"
"Back in the dawn
of prehistory, when I was still a Type 41 back on my home turf, I used to fly
spaceships," Ortega told him. "For a living, that is. They used to
have a fail-safe mechanism against complete power failure in atmosphere."
"That's
right!" Gol Miter exclaimed. "I forgot you were an Entry. Hell,
you're older than I am! You used to be a pirate, didn't you?"
Ortega sniffed. "I
was an opportunist, sir! There are only three kinds of people in the universe,
no matter what their race or form. They are scoundrels, hypocrites, and sheep.
With a choice like that, I proudly wear the badge of scoundrel."
There was the translated
sound of a chuckle. Ortega wondered what a chuckle from a giant spider really
sounded like.
"Okay," the
spider replied, "so you were a pilot and they had fail-safe mechanisms.
So?"
"Well, they used to
break up on failure," Ortega told the other. "Break into nine
sections, so they could accommodate everybody and so the basic mechanical,
pressure-activated parachute mechanisms would be able to support the weight. Nine,
Gol!"
The spider considered
this. "Just like our visitor, huh? Well, that would fit. Sure you got them
all? Couldn't be any unreported pieces?"
"You know my spy
network is the best on the Well World," retorted Ortega with pride.
"Want to know who your fourth wife is with right now?"
"All right! All
right!" laughed Gol Miter. "So, nine it is. Coincidence?"
"Possibly,"
Ortega admitted, "but maybe not. If not, they are Type 41s. I've got rough
descriptions of three of the sections. Two are rather nondescript compartments,
hardly worth bothering about. One, however, has a rounded nose-shape, like a
bullet. If it is a Type 41 ship, that's the command module. That'll be
where the pilot is—or was."
"Where did it come
down?" the spider asked.
Ortega looked over his
map, his deep-black eyes shining. His excitement faded, however, when he saw
the probable location.
"Looks like about
twenty kilometers inside Teliagin. Fat lot of good that does us. If
those savages catch them, they'll eat them."
There was concern in the
spider's voice. "Can't have that. They don't man their embassy, do
they?"
"No," Ortega
responded. "They only come in occasionally to trade a few things. It's a
nontech hex, so everything's a little limited. Mostly pastoral nomads.
Shepherds. They eat the sheep—raw and in big bites, usually while they're still
alive."
"Well, I'll check
and see if anybody's home," Gol Miter said, "but if there isn't—what
then? We have to get our hands on at least one of those people, Serge!
It's the only way we're going to find out what the hell is going on around
here!"
Ortega agreed with him
and looked again at his map. Teliagin was near the Equatorial Barrier, and so
was his native Ulik, but it was too far away for anybody to get there in time.
He looked at the nearby hexes, rejecting one, then another. His eye strayed to
one two hexes away, just to the south and east. Lata! That might be just the
thing. But—it was still a long ways. The Lata could fly, of course, and Kromm's
atmosphere was sufficient, but how long would it take? Two days, maybe? And
then how long until they were found? The average Teliagin would be as likely to
eat the Lata as help it, so asking for instructions was out.
Well, it was that or
nothing.
"Look, Gol, you
work on the contact end and keep those studies of the satellite coming
in," he told the spider. "I'm going to try and mount some kind of
rescue party if I can. I hope we get there before the Teliagin do."
The six-armed snake-man
broke the contact and flipped his interoffice intercom again. "Jeddy?
Anything from Czill as yet?"
"No, sir,"
responded the secretary. "The ambassador's not expected in until 1700.
Remember, not everybody lives in his office."
The snake-man scowled.
Of all the ambassadors here, he was the only one trapped in South Zone. He
could never leave it, never go home. It was the price he paid. By all rights he
should have died of old age almost two centuries before. He did not, but that
was because of a juicy bit of blackmail with the Magren, a hex where
"magic" of a sort was possible, where the people would in slight ways
tap the power of the Well World computer to defy certain laws. They had given
him a youthful body, and it stayed that way, but there was a price. Magic did not
hold outside the hex in which it was performed. The rules of the game changed
1560 times on the Well World—the number of hexes and races there were here. In
some, the Well computer allowed full technological growth. In some, that
technology was limited—say, to steam. In others, like Teliagin, nothing worked.
The powers, possibilities—even atmospheric content changed with each hex and
was maintained stable by the Well computer that was the entire planetary core.
In South Zone almost
everything worked. The youth spell, cast here, held. But should he ever leave,
even to see the sun and sky and stars, the spell would be canceled out, and he
would instantly be subject to rapid aging.
"Call the Lata
ambassador, Jeddy," he ordered.
There was a minute or
two while the connection was made, the call referred, and then a high,
pleasant, light female voice came on.
"Hoduri here. What
can I do for you, Ambassador Ortega?"
"You know the
situation?" the Ulik asked, and proceeded to fill in the other on all
matters to date, concluding, "You see? You're the only ones with a crack
at them. It's dangerous and tough, but we need you desperately."
The Lata thought for a
moment. "I'll see what I can do and call you back. Give me an hour or
so."
"All right,"
Ortega told her, "but time is of the essence here. And if you can find one
of your citizens named Vistaru and include her in your plans, it'll be better.
She's an Entry from the spacial sector we believe these people come from, and
could probably translate. We've worked together before. Tell her it's me asking
and tell her the whole situation."
"Yes, if we can
find her," Ambassador Hoduri agreed. "Anything more?"
Ortega shook his head,
although he knew the other couldn't see it. "No, only hurry. Lives depend
on it—maybe ours, too, if we don't find out what's going on here."
He switched off, and was
barely back to his maps when the interzone intercom buzzed again. It was the
Czillian ambassador, in early.
"Hello? Vardia?
Serge Ortega!" he boomed.
"Ortega!" the
other responded, not exactly sounding as thrilled by Ortega's voice as Ortega
seemed with its. And it was an "it," too—the Czillians were mobile
unisexual plants.
"You know what's
going on?" Ortega asked.
"I've just been
conferring on it," the plant creature replied. "Why? Going to play
games with somebody else?"
He shrugged off the
minor nastiness. The plants duplicated, so it could be one of several Vardias,
but they all had their basic memories. One time, long ago, he'd done the
original Vardia rather dirty, and Czillians don't forget.
"Bygones be
bygones," he retorted. "This is bigger than petty plots. We'll need
the Czillian Crisis Center activated immediately at the Center. Your computers
are the best on the Well World, and we'll need somebody to coordinate. A lot of
different hexes are involved here." He explained the situation as it stood
to the Czillian.
"And what are you
doing about it now?" Vardia asked him.
"I've sent Lata in
to try and rescue the pilot if he's still alive, and anybody else they can.
If—and it's a big if—we can get one of them here alive we'll know what's going
on. But that's not your worry right now. Follow through on the logic here and
maybe you'll understand."
"I'm
listening," Vardia replied, still doubtful.
"I've located all
nine modules. They're all in the west, and dispersed in a southwesterly
pattern, so I have an idea of what's what. If I can do it, so can
others. Probably have. Vardia, one of them is the engine module, intact! I'll
bet on that! There's no way to build that in any hex on the Well World. The
rest, though—that can be fabricated one place and another. Whoever reclaims the
parts of that ship, particularly the engine module, might possibly make a
spaceship that'll fly. Launch it straight up, the right angle and pattern, and
it'll be free of the Well. If I thought of that angle, so have
others. I'm talking about war, Vardia! War! There are enough old pilots
around here that somebody might be able to fly it!"
Vardia still sounded
doubtful, but now it was more in the nature of an unwillingness to think what
Ortega was saying could be true. But—could they afford to take the chance?
"War is
impossible," the Czillian responded. "Triff Dhala demonstrated that
by losing the Great War over eleven hundred years ago!"
"But that was for
conquest," Ortega pointed out. "This would be for limited objectives.
I'll bet five dozen rulers are reading Dhala's Theory of Well Warfare cover
to cover right now. A spaceship, Vardia! Think about it!"
"I don't want
to," responded the Czillian. "But—I'll relay all this to the Center.
If the scholars and the computers agree with you, it will be done."
"That's all I
ask," the Ulik told the other, and switched off. He stared down at the map
again, his eyes fixed on Lata and Teliagin. How had they come in? To the
southwest. Okay, that meant they flew over the Sea of Storms, then got wiped
out over Kromm. Then there was breakup because of Kromm's limited tech
restrictions, and they came down in Teliagin. They would have seen the seas and
the mountains before they were depowered. If the pilot knew what he was doing,
he'd know that the mountains and sea would be east of him. He'd make for it as
soon as he caught sight of those Teliagin monstrosities.
If they made Kromm, and
didn't mind getting wet, they'd be okay. He had to bet on that pilot's
experience.
"Get me the Lata
ambassador again, will you, Jeddy?" he asked. "I know he's out, but
I'll talk to an assistant."
His eyes went back to
that map.
The Lata had to
be in time. They just had to.
"You're too
tense," Antor Trelig told Ben Yulin. "Relax. Become Mavra
Chang. Act like her, react like her, think like her. Let her persona
completely control you. I want no slip-ups here."
Yulin nodded and tried to
relax. He tapped his fingernail on the chair side—long, sharp, hard nails, like
steel. He looked suddenly down. He felt something funny, odd, just then. He
stared down at the chair arm and saw that there was a tiny pool of liquid
there. He dabbed a finger in it, put it up to his nose, and sniffed it.
Odorless. He touched a little bit to his tongue. There was a mild numbing
sensation there. Now what the hell? he wondered.
Suddenly he was looking
at all ten fingers in curiosity. Some kind of cartilage, just a little fatter
than human hair. A tube that was rigid and controlled by a tiny muscle. Poison?
he wondered.
He resolved to try it
when he got the opportunity.
A warning light went on
and the car started to slow.
"Okay, here we
go," Trelig said lightly, and they braced for a stop. Gil Zinder could do
nothing, his personality forced into the back of his mind. He was Nikki Zinder
until one of the two in the car let him out; they were the guard Renard
and Mavra Chang, and he had to act like it, really believe it. Obie had taken
the easiest path—he literally had made the old man his own daughter and
isolated the new personality from reality.
The door opened and they
walked out, out into the warm, fresh air and bright sunlight. Everything was
slightly different now—there were shadows, the sun was at a different distance
and of a slightly different color, which changed everything, and there was that
planet up there, filling a tenth of the sky.
They all gasped. Nothing
had prepared them for the sight of the thing, like a glistening, silvery,
multifaceted ball twinkling in the sun; below a swirl of clouds it was blue to
the south, while the north seemed awash with reds and yellows. The plasma
shield's distortions made it look ghostly.
"Oh, wow!"
breathed Gil.
Trelig, ever practical,
was the first to break the spell. "Come on!" he said. "Let's see
who's running this place."
Several guards ran out
to greet them, and a serving girl or two.
"Renard! Thank
god!" said one, and Trelig noted that he didn't know what relationships
these people had. He did, however, know their names and backgrounds, and
that helped.
"Destuin!" he
responded, and hugged the little man. No, that's right, Destuin was a woman, he
thought angrily to himself.
He looked at them
gravely. "Thanks for what?" he asked sourly. "Another
five days?"
That seemed to take
their minds off any further comparisons.
"Where are the rest
of the guests?" Ben asked.
"Around," one
of the guards said. "We haven't bothered them much, and they've stayed
away from us. It doesn't matter much. You're in the same fix we are." The
guard pointed toward the Well World. "See that little black dot there
against the planet? There, just below the split in the big one, and a little to
the right."
Ben looked hard, and
finally saw it—a tiny black pinhead, like a hole in the bigger world. It was
moving.
"That's a
sentinel," the guard told her. "It'll blow the hell out of any ship
that tries to take off. Only Trelig knew the stop codes, and he's gone. So you
get to see us die, but four, maybe five weeks from now you'll run out of
food, and go, too. Or make a run for it in the remaining ship and get blown up.
Maybe that's what we all should do. Better than the other ways."
That was grim talk, and
not the kind the newcomers wanted to hear.
"I'm an expert with
these ships," Ben told them. "Let me go down and see if there isn't
something I can do about it. What can it hurt?"
The guard shrugged.
"Why not? Want somebody to go along?"
"Renard? How about
you?" Ben prompted.
Trelig, however, was better
than that. Too much danger right now. "You go ahead. Take the girl with
you. It won't make much difference to us anyway. I'll come down later
and see how you're doing."
Yulin was disappointed;
it had seemed so easy. But, there was little that could be done. "Come on,
Nikki," he said, and started walking. The fat girl followed meekly, but
kept glancing back up at the glowing, strangely surrealistic planet
half-visible on the horizon.
That planet was on
Yulin's mind, too. He knew that they'd never have seen it at all if the big
dish had been directly opposite New Pompeii, but it was angled, so two thirds
of the big planet was visible.
There were few people
about, and they made it to the spaceport area in about fifteen minutes. The
little spaceport terminal seemed deserted. Yulin really relaxed for the first
time. This was almost too easy. He entered the terminal and stopped.
A big man with a
Viking-like visage was perched there. He was sitting on a counter, and he
seemed to be quite drunk.
Yulin thought him an
attractive man, and the fact that it didn't bother him to have that thought
showed the thoroughness of Obie's conditioning. He tried to remember the man's
name.
"Aha! So you're
trapped like the rest of us!" he roared, and took another long swig from a
bottle. "I thought you'd gotten away!"
He stood there,
wondering what to do. The man was huge compared to him, and even though he was
Mavra Chang physically, Ben Yulin hadn't been a fighter and those skills were
sorely needed now.
Rumney was naked. He jumped
up, facing her. "All is lost!" he proclaimed. "You can't leave,
I can't leave, ain't nobody can leave!" he almost sang. "So there's
nothin' to do but get drunk and have a last fling. Why not, honey? Com'on! I'll
take you both on at the same time!" A casual observation of his midsection
left no doubt as to his meaning. He pushed out the bottle. "Have a
snort?"
Fear replaced any
feelings of attraction for this man. Yulin edged back toward the door, but the
man was quick, too quick. He was playing with her, and laughing like a maniac.
Yulin moved, and Rumney
moved, chuckling all the time. The tiny female frantically looked for some
avenue of escape, but the terminal was too small. Zinder gaped at the tableau
in confused amazement. This was a Nikki Zinder sex fantasy, and she couldn't
shake that dreamlike quality. Deep inside her mind, Gil Zinder sat, resigned,
not caring about anything any more.
"Look—whatever your
name is," Ben tried. "All isn't lost! I think I can get us out of
here if you'll let me!"
Rumney thought about
this a half-second, then grinned. "Nice try," he approved.
"Afterward, tinker away."
Yulin cursed the fact
that he'd had to get rid of the incongruous pistol and wished for Trelig or a
guard, anybody, to get him out of this.
"All I want is a
piece of tail," Rumney chided. "I got a tail, you got—" Suddenly
he stopped, and tried to focus his eyes.
"You ain't got no
tail!" he accused.
Now Yulin felt even more
terrified. It was true! Damn Obie! He'd asked for the last pattern of Mavra
Chang, not the alterations!
Yulin edged toward the
gateway to the remaining ship slowly. "Take it easy, big man," he
breathed cautiously, soothingly. "You spotted something, okay. Now you
know that maybe I can get you out. Let me try."
Yulin started
deliberately for the ramp, and Rumney leaped for him, knocking him down on the
floor, holding him there. The bottle went flying against a far wall, missing
Zinder by centimeters.
He had Yulin pinned, and
started tearing away at the nearly transparent clothing he wore. "Let's
see if you're a woman under that," he growled.
Yulin was terrified,
more than he had ever been in his life. As Rumney pawed, Yulin managed to get
his right arm partly free and jab him with his sharp nails. He felt something
extra there; those little muscles in the back of his nails twitched. Rumney
gave a sharp cry of pain, then he seemed to stiffen and collapsed on top of
him. Rumney was like a lead sack. Yulin couldn't move, couldn't breathe.
"Nikki!" he
gasped. "Help me get him off me!" But Zinder wasn't about to obey.
He pushed and cursed and
heaved, trying to wiggle loose. "I wish you'd roll over, damn it!" he
swore—and, to his amazement, Rumney did.
Feeling terribly bruised
and slightly crushed, he managed to get up slowly. It felt as if a rib was
broken and his body was a mass of internal bruises. There were pains in his
back and side and—well everywhere. Coughing and spitting a little blood, Yulin
gasped for several minutes, trying to get some control back. Doing so felt
awful, but it did the job.
Ben Yulin decided then
and there that he very much preferred being 180 centimeters tall and male.
But, trapped for now in
Mavra's body, Ben got hold of himself.
"You on the floor!
What's your name?" he shot, trying a theory.
"Rumney. Bull
Rumney," he murmured.
Ben Yulin marveled at
Mavra Chang's resourcefulness. Obviously these triggers had been surgically
implanted by somebody really talented. This was one dangerous lady, he decided,
not without some admiration. In a way, he hoped she was still alive.
"Well, Bull Rumney,
listen good," Yulin said sharply. "You are to lie there, unmoving, a
statue, until I tell you to do something. Understand?"
The big man nodded
slowly, then froze.
"Fetal position,
Rumney," he said, enjoying himself for a minute. Rumney obliged, and froze
again.
"Come on, Zinder,
let's see to this ship," he snapped, sounding more like Mavra Chang than
he knew. They went into the ship.
This wasn't Trelig's
yacht; Chang had taken that. They were left with the shuttle, which was
basically well stocked. There were enough emergency rations for maybe three
weeks, no more. Yulin cursed under his breath. Enough to take care of the
spongies, but not the others. Oh, well, Trelig said he wanted to deal with
them, and he was sure they didn't know how little food there was. Obie,
of course, could create more when things settled down. Create the food, and
also use the people on New Pompeii to replace the expired guards. Slavery
without sponge—that would appeal to Trelig.
He checked everything
out. He wasn't the best pilot in the world, but he was an adequate one, and the
ship was rather simple. Barring a major emergency, he could run it without much
trouble. It had been charging all the time it was in dock, so there was no problem
there. Atmosphere good, pressurization potential normal. He nodded as he
checked each one. He looked for a weapon, but found none—naturally. Trelig had
taken no chances.
Sighing, he closed the
port and sat down to wait. There was no way he was going back to the buildings
of New Pompeii.
* * *
Trelig was several hours
in coming, and Ben Yulin had started to worry again. There were several false
alarms—guards stopping by to check, a few of the bigwigs, too. Since he'd
placed the bottle next to Rumney, nobody questioned him being there. Nobody
even blamed him.
Finally, hearing some
noise outside, Yulin opened the hatch and spied three guards coming in. One, he
was sure, was Trelig. Those sexual screw-ups all looked alike. All three looked
grim, and one, not Trelig, entered the ship first, followed by the other two.
Ben caught Trelig's eyes and a subtle nod. The nerves were back.
"We've decided to
let anybody who wants to make a break for it," the lead guard told the
woman in the pilot's chair. "If you get blasted, well, then it's quick. If
you don't—more power to you."
"And you?"
Yulin asked.
That grim expression
hardened. "I will die—quickly, not slowly. We have already held a meeting
to decide that. We've just finished killing the poor devils who were much worse
than we. None of us wants to become like that. We'll go help the people who
want to run for it to get everything together, and then—well, that's it."
Yulin, facing them, saw
Trelig slowly draw his pistol and point it at the two guards. He uttered a silent
prayer to ancestral gods never believed in, and nodded to the other two.
"I understand.
We'll try and do our best. I guess this is good-bye."
The guard started to say
something, but at that moment Trelig fired, two short bursts at very close
range and at full power. Yulin and Zinder ducked in reflex, but the former
councillor's aim had been perfect. The two guards seemed bathed in a
bright-orange glow, then faded out. There was nothing left of them but some
burns in the ship's carpet and an extremely unpleasant odor.
"Close the hatch!
Let's get out of here!" Trelig shouted, and Yulin needed no more urging.
There was a shudder and a whine, and the clunking sound of docking equipment
being jettisoned, and then, almost before the other two were seated and strapped
in, Yulin took off.
"Hold it, you
idiot!" Trelig snapped. "You don't want to kill us! We're away! They
can't get to us now!"
Yulin seemed to stare at
the man and at the controls for a moment, as if in a daze. Then, with a little
quiver, he snapped out of his trance.
The robot sentinels shot
their challenges, and Trelig gave the codes needed to get past them.
"Where to?"
Ben Yulin asked Antor Trelig.
"Might as well take
a look at this incredible planet," the boss replied. "I'm kind of
curious about it myself."
Yulin brought the ship
around, and eased slowly back toward the strange-looking orb.
Trelig turned to the
figure of Nikki. "Gil Zinder!" he called. "Come to the fore and
join us!"
There was a slight,
subtle change in the manner of the fat girl, and she slipped off the straps and
came up to the screen.
Gil Zinder was
fascinated in spite of himself. "Incredible!" he said in his
daughter's voice.
"But why are there
two completely different halves?" Trelig wondered. "Look—you got all
those jewel faces on the south, but you can tell it's lots of green and ocean
and stuff like that. Our kind of world. Then you got that great dark-amber
strip around the equator, and then a whole different kind of world up
top."
"The poles are
interesting, too," Gil Zinder noted. "See how dark and thick they
are, and how huge. Almost like great buildings hundreds, maybe thousands, of
kilometers across."
"Let me swing down
around one of those poles," Yulin suggested. "Look at the center of
them."
They looked, and saw
what he meant. In the center was a great, yawning hexagonal shape composed of
absolute darkness. "What is it?" Trelig wondered aloud.
Gil Zinder thought a
moment. "I don't know. Perhaps something like our big dish, only much more
sophisticated."
"But why
hexagons?" Trelig persisted. "Hell, they're all hexagons, even
the little facets both north and south."
"The Markovians
were in love with the hexagon," Yulin told him. "Their ruins are full
of them; their cities are built in that shape. I saw one as a child."
"Let's take a look
at the north," Trelig suggested. "It's so wildly different. There
must be a reason for it."
Yulin applied power, and
the image swirled and whirled on the screen. "Kind of tricky," the
pilot told them. "Ships like this weren't built to go this slow except in
landing and docking modes."
They crossed the
equator, a true barrier they saw—strange, imposing, and opaque.
"I wish we had some
instruments," Zinder said, genuinely interested in something again.
"I would love to know what makes those strange patterns. Methane, ammonia,
all sorts of stuff, looks like."
They crossed the
terminator and went into darkness.
"Somebody's living
there, though," Trelig noted, pointing. Some of the areas in some of the
hexes were lit, and there were a few clear major cities down there.
"A pity we can't
get a little closer," Zinder said sincerely. "The atmospheric
distortion is really intense."
"Maybe a little
lower," Yulin answered. "I'll try to skim just over the top of the
stratosphere. That'll keep us high enough to be effectively in a vacuum, but
low enough to see some detail."
Hearing no dissent, he
cautiously took the ship down. They crossed the terminator once again and went
into blinding sunlight.
And then the engine
seemed to give a start, and the lights flashed.
"What's the
matter?" Trelig snapped.
Yulin was genuinely
puzzled. "I—I don't know." It happened again, and he took over manual
helm and started to fight it. "Sudden losses of power, very
intermittent."
"Take us up!"
Trelig commanded, but, at that moment, the lights really went out.
"We're dropping
like a stone!" screamed Yulin. "My God!"
Trelig reached over,
threw two switches. Nothing happened. He threw a third. Still nothing. They were
in almost total darkness in the cabin, and even these actions were made more by
feel.
And then everything came
on again. There was a whining noise from the rear and in front.
Ahead, a panel rolled
back, revealing a nasty landscape only ten or so kilometers beneath them.
Trelig reached out, grabbed a wheel-shaped device depressed into the copilot's
panel.
Lights and power went
out again, but now it was a rocky trip, the ship banged and buffeted by strange
forces. Trelig grabbed the wheel and started fighting for control of the ship.
The view, Yulin
realized, was a real one—they were looking out some sort of forward window.
"This thing was
designed for in-atmosphere work as well as shuttle," Trelig said between
clenched teeth, fighting for control with the weakened muscles of Renard.
"The wings finally deployed. Even if power cuts out again, I think I can
dead-stick it in."
Yulin watched the
landscape approach with horrifying suddenness. Trelig fought to keep the nose
up, yet he had to be cautious or he would miss seeing the ground at all.
The power was out again
now, and Trelig had managed to slow the craft, but not enough.
"Find me a level
spot with about twenty kilometers to roll in!" he yelled.
"This thing's got
wheels?" Yulin managed, peering out.
"Don't be
funny!" snapped the boss. "Both of you get strapped in! I don't think
we'll get power again long enough to get her up, and this will be a real
wallop!"
"There! A flat area
ahead! See it?" Yulin screamed.
Trelig saw, and aimed
for it, the ship rocking this way and that. They hit. What saved them, they
decided later, was the much denser atmosphere, which slowed the craft enough.
Just enough.
They hit with a
tremendous bang, and Yulin cried out in pain as the cracked rib and other
bruises were suddenly fully activated once again.
They skidded over barren
rock, seemingly forever, and they had to ride it out. Finally, they struck an
upward incline that almost turned them over, but managed to spin them around
and finally halt them instead.
Trelig groaned, undid
his straps, and looked around. Yulin was out cold. For the first time he
noticed the torn clothing and bruises and gashes. He wondered where Mavra Chang
had come by them.
Zinder fared little
better. The bouncing and straps had caused some deep depressions and gashes and
cut off the circulation in a few places, but he now seemed to be all right,
just dizzy from shock.
Trelig tried to get up
and discovered that he, too, was dizzy. He fell down twice, and his head
pounded. His arms ached horribly from the effort of the landing. But he'd made
it. He'd brought them in.
He looked out at the
bleak landscape. A lot of barren, blackish rock against a dark and dense
atmosphere of—who knew? Nothing they could breathe, anyway.
They were alive—but for
how long?
"Another one down?"
Ortega was aghast.
"We detected the
energy burst in our routine monitoring of the satellite," Gol Miter's
artificial voice told him through the interzone embassy communications system.
"At first we had some trouble locating them, but we managed a plot thanks
to their taking their time. Careful orbit, nice survey techniques. What I wouldn't
give to see this planet from space!"
Ortega joined in that
sentiment. "But they went down anyway? I didn't get any reports."
"Finally clipped it
a little low, got within the Well's influence, and got nonteched, same as the
first one. The reason you haven't heard is that they had swung up North for a
look. Near as we can tell, they went down in 1146 or 1318, Uchjin or Ashinshyh.
Got anything on them?"
Ortega's multiple arms
whipped through maps, charts, and diagrams while he kept up a steady stream of
frustration-induced curses. If things were going to get this complicated, he
preferred to be the one doing the complicating.
Northern maps were only
so-so. They marked oceans, for example, but the oceans could be methane or any
one of a dozen other more lethal compounds. Nothing up there bore the slightest
kinship to him, not even as close a kinship as he, a six-armed snake-man, bore
to Gol Miter, a giant spider. Some Northern races were so alien that there was
no common frame of reference possible with what he and the others of the South
considered normal existence.
One thing for sure, he
saw, looking at the map. Uchjin and Ashinshyh were both nontech or semitech
hexes and could not support a sophisticated power system like that of a ship.
He sighed. "Gol,
even if they survived the crash, which I doubt, they're only as good as their
air. I don't know what the hell these symbols for Uchjin mean in terms of
atmosphere, but there's sure no oxygen in it. The Ashinshyh are a little
better—there's some oxygen and even water there—but there's so much hydrogen
around they may have blown half the hex to hell."
Miter agreed.
"Since we've had no reports of disaster, and no sign of Well activation,
I'd say Uchjin, then. How about your Northern contacts? Anything we can
use?"
"I doubt it,"
Ortega replied sourly. "Nobody I know near there. I haven't even the
slightest idea what the Uchjin look like. They may have an ambassador on
station, though, or somebody close might. Worth a try. I hate to see the
Northerners brought into this, though. I don't trust what I can't understand,
and some of those boys are nasty customers with alien motives."
"No choice,"
Miter responded pragmatically. "I'll send somebody up to North Zone and
see what can be done. That crash has already involved them—and our
observatory people have first loyalty to the North, anyway. They tracked it, so
everybody already knows." He paused. "Cheer up, Serge. Even if the
thing's intact, few Northerners could fly it anyway. It's us or nobody."
"Not us," Ortega
corrected him. "Somebody."
Technicians had been in
and out for half the day setting up special equipment. He punched the direct
line to Ambassador Vardia.
"Czill," came
a voice.
"Ortega here. We've
got another one down in the North. Get on it. Any word on the Teliagin business
yet?"
"Hmmm . . . the
North," mused the plant-creature. "No, nothing from the Teliagin
sector yet. The Lata party went in pretty quickly, though. Be patient, Serge.
It's only been two days."
"Patience is a
virtue best left to the dead, who can afford it," growled Ortega, and
switched off.
Even walking, twenty
kilometers isn't really that far—if you know where you're going. But sunrise on
the second day had brought heavy clouds totally obscuring the sun. All through
the night there had been the far-off toll of drums, messages relayed from one
point to another throughout the hex in an unknown and unguessable code.
Mavra Chang suspected
that the messages involved speculations about the strange beings, rather small,
who had crashed in some sort of flying machine and were now on the loose
somewhere in the land.
At least it didn't rain;
they were thankful for that. It continued dark and ominous all day, though; the
cover was much too thick to see the sun and guess direction. In ordinary
circumstances, Chang would have waited for clearer skies despite the dangers,
but she knew that the deadly disease was eating away at her two companions, and
if she didn't make those mountains and that coast quickly, there would be no
hope.
Every once in a while
doubt would creep into the back of her mind, doubt born of the logical
probability that the new lands would be no more friendly than this one. The
denizens—for all she knew, more cyclopses—would be no friendlier, no more
advanced, no more able to help.
And, worse, although she
was certain that they weren't backtracking, she really didn't know in which
direction they were going. She had started off in the same direction, of
course, but the woods were thick; there were some broad dirt roads and wide
meadows to avoid, and who knew whether they had picked up in the same way after
they had been forced to divert?
About the only good news
had been the apples. At least, they looked a lot like apples, although they
grew on bushes and had a funny, purple skin. Almost in desperation, she had
gambled on some food source—and the lower-level wildlife looked warm-blooded
and somewhat familiar. If alien bacteria hadn't already gotten to them, then it
was probably not going to—or so she prayed.
The big rodents ate the
fruit with abandon, and she decided to risk doing likewise. Nikki, despite
having her appetite drug-depressed, was still the hungriest, and she probably
couldn't have been restrained much longer, anyway. Mavra let the girl eat one,
knowing they should wait several hours for the test to be conclusive, but when
she reported the fruit to be sweet and good and easily chewed, the temptation
to Mavra, whose own appetite could not be depressed, became too much to ignore.
They satisfied, they
were good, and they were plentiful, apparently an important part of the upper
animal food chain of this place. And they were doubly important. They proved
that, no matter what else happened, Mavra Chang could survive here.
The second day had been
a lot more satisfactory than the first. Even so, she was uncertain. The other
two, now, had seen the great cyclopses, with their fierce expressions and nasty
fangs, pulling wooden hand-hewn carts along the roads and tending flocks of
animals that looked much like common sheep in the meadows.
Neither of the two
spongies had shown much change as yet, but that was deceptive, she knew. In
normal conversation there was little difference between an IQ of 100 and an IQ
of 150. There was no question that Nikki would deteriorate faster; she was a
little above average, but no genius.
As darkness fell at the
end of the second day, the mountains were still nowhere in sight and the
landscape didn't seem to have varied much at all. There was a chill in the air
from the damp, humid skies and a light drizzle. Neither Renard nor Nikki was at
all comfortable; they had no protection, in or out of those filmy things from
New Pompeii, and although Mavra's clothing provided decent protection, she was
by far the smallest of the three and had nothing to spare that could fit either
of the others.
The darkness of the
second evening was as much in their spirits as in the night surrounding them.
She tried bunching them
all together for body warmth, but she was so small and their skin so cold and
clammy that all this seemed to do was transfer their misery to her. Nikki,
being heavy and unaccustomed to exercise, was, as usual, the first to fall
asleep, leaving her with Renard, as before. They sat there awhile, thinking of
little to say. He had his arm around her, holding her close to him, but it was
not a romantic gesture, not an advance. It was a binding together in the face
of adversity.
Finally, he said,
"Mavra, do you really think there's any point to all this? You and I both
know we don't even know where we are or what's over the next hill or even
whether the next hill isn't some previous hill."
The question irritated
her, because it vocalized her own inner doubts. "There's always a point to
it until you're dead," she replied, and she believed it.
"You really think
so?" he responded. "Not just brave talk?"
She shifted slightly,
looking away from him, out into the blackness.
"I was raised by a
rough freighter captain. Not the most ideal parent, I guess, but, in her own
way, she did love me, I think, and I loved her. I grew up in space, the big
freighter my playground, the big ports new and dazzling amusements every few
weeks."
"Must've been
lonely," he commented.
She shook her head.
"No, not at all. After all, it was all I ever knew. It was normal to me.
And it taught me how to be on my own for long periods of time—conditioned me
against the loneliness, made me rely on myself. That was important, because my
mother was doing a lot of illegal stuff. Most freighter captains do, but this
must've been really big. The Com Police busted her and the ship was seized. I was
about thirteen then, and I was in the stores along the port, shopping. I found
out what happened, but couldn't do anything. I knew that if I showed myself,
the CPs would take me, too, maybe give me a psych wipe, and turn me over to the
Com. So, I stayed on Kaliva."
"Ever feel guilty
you didn't try to spring her?" Renard asked, knowing the sensitivity of
the question but realizing that Mavra Chang wanted somebody to talk to.
"No, I don't think
so," she answered truthfully. "Oh, I had all sorts of plots in my
head—a thirteen-year-old girl, a little over a meter tall and weighing about
twenty-five kilos—to rush them, battle them, heroically rescue my mom, and dash
away in the ship to unknown space. But I never even could get the chance. They
had her away and the ship impounded in a matter of an hour or two. No, I was
alone."
"You don't like the
Com very much, by your tone," he noted. "Any special
reason?"
"They murdered my
family," she almost spat. "I was only a little more than five years
old, but I can remember them. Harvich's world went Com with sponge syndicate
muscle and rigged votes, and my folks—my real folks—had been fighting them
every step of the way. I got the whole story later, from Maki—my
stepmother—when I got older. They refused to leave at the start, then found
they couldn't leave when the Com process started. Somehow—I don't know how—they
hired a spacer to get me out, one piloting a supply freighter for the Com
process. Funny—after all these years I can still remember him. A strange little
man in colorful clothes with a big, brassy voice that always had several tones
in it. Some of those tones I later recognized as pure cynicism, but there was
an underlying gentleness and kindness about him that he seemed desperate to
hide but couldn't. It's funny—I'm not even sure of his name, and I was with him
for only a few days when I was five, yet he's as real to me as my stepmother,
who actually got me out. Looking back, I think it's incredible that a
five-year-old spoiled brat like me would go with him. There was just something
in him one liked, trusted. I often wonder if he was human—I've never met
anybody else like that, ever."
Renard was no
psychologist, but he recognized the depth of the impression this man had made
on Mavra Chang. She had been hunting for him, or someone like him, all her
life.
"Ever try and find
him?" he asked her.
She shrugged. "I
was much too busy staying alive the next few years. By the time I had the
means, he was probably dead or something. I have to admit that a number of
people seemed to recognize him from my description, but there was nothing
tangible. Some people said I was describing a fairy-tale legend, a mythical
space captain who had never existed but was just part of those epic stories all
professions get. Once I met a captain, a real old veteran, who said that this
man really existed, somewhere, and he was old. He was supposed to be immortal,
living forever, going back to ancient times of prehistory."
"What's the name of
this legend?" Renard prompted.
"Nathan Brazil. Isn't
that a strange name? Somebody said Brazil was the name of a prehistoric place,
one of the early space powers."
"The Wandering
Jew," Renard said, almost to himself.
"Huh?"
"An ancient legend
among some of the old religions," he told her. "There's still a
Christian planet or two around, I think. They are an offshoot of an even more
obscure and older religion known as Judaism. They're still around,
too—scattered all over the place. Probably the most traditionally co—" he
stopped for a second, looked puzzled and disturbed. "Co—" he tried.
"Cohesive?"
she guessed.
He nodded. "That's
it. Why couldn't I think of that word?" He let it drop, but Mavra had an
eerie sensation. A little thing, but important.
"Well, anyway,
there was supposed to be this man who was Jewish and claimed to be God's son.
For this the powers-that-be killed him, because they were scared he might lead
a revolution or something. Supposedly he was to come back from the dead. One
Jew was supposed to have cursed him at his execution and been told that he
would stay until this god-man returned. This Nathan Brazil sounds like the
legend brought up to modern times."
She nodded. "I
never really believed all that stuff about immortals flying spaceships, but a
lot of spacers who don't believe in anything believe in his existence."
Renard smiled.
"That may explain what happened to you. If it's a widespread legend, then
somebody who knew it could imitate him, maybe convince the other spacers he was
this legendary figure. They'd do favors for him they wouldn't do for an
ordinary captain. Make supersi—supershi—oh, hell!" he ended in
frustration, unable to get the word out.
She got the meaning.
"I don't know. You're probably right. But there was something really
strange about that man, something I can't explain."
"You were five
years old," he pointed out. "That's an age to get funny
impressions."
Mavra wanted to break
off the conversation, partly because it was hitting too close to home but also
because of Renard's increasing trouble with large words he was obviously used
to using. He was starting to think out his sentences in advance, using
different words than he normally would. His difficulty wasn't really that
apparent, but his speech was slower, more careful, more hesitant than it had
been.
Tomorrow, she thought
glumly, those words just might not be accessible to him at all. But, he still
wanted to talk, and, she told herself, if that was the case it was best she do
most of the talking.
Renard took up the theme
and thankfully took the subject away from the mysterious Nathan Brazil.
"You said you were
on your own at age thirteen," he noted. "Wasn't that kind of
rough?"
She nodded. "There
I was, on a strange world, looking like an eight-year-old, with nothing but a
few coins that maybe would buy a meal, and I didn't even know the street
language. At least it wasn't a Comworld. Kaliva, its name was. Kind of exotic
and primitive. Open bazaars, shouting peddlers and salesmen—a noisy, grimy,
people-filled kind of place. I knew that in such a place you needed money and
protection. I had neither, so I looked around. There were a lot of beggars,
some just poor, some con men, some cripples who couldn't afford the med
service. There were enough of them that they weren't hassled by the local
police, and people did give. I walked around, watched who was making
money and who wasn't, and where, and saw what I had to do. I used the last
little bit of money I had to bribe a little girl to give me her clothes—really
dirty, grungy, ripped, and tattered. Nothing really but a foul sheet that could
be tied like a sari. Some water and a little mud, and I really looked like a
horrible little street urchin. Then I went to work."
Renard thought that
maybe she was a horrible little street urchin at that point, but decided
not to mention that aloud.
"I really hustled
those first couple of weeks. I got fleas and occasionally worse, and I slept in
doorways, alleys, and such. I worked the good corners. Beggars have territories,
you know, and run off others who want to compete for the business, but I
learned how to make friends with some of the best, did favors, gave them a
percentage. I guess it was also because I looked so very young and so very down
and out—the model for those charity pictures they always take, the poor,
starving, angelic faces—that everybody kind of adopted me. I did pretty good.
Even on the worst days I made enough to eat, or somebody who owned a food stall
would slip me something."
"No trouble with rape
or gangs?" he asked, amazed.
"No, not really. A
few really nasty incidents, but somebody always seemed to come along or I
managed to get away. Beggars kind of stick together, too—once you're accepted.
One of them put me on to an old shack out near the city dump, and I lived
there. It was pretty gamey, but after a while you get so you don't notice the
smells, the flies, or anything. Some charity medical clinics were around, so we
got sick a lot but never for long. Everybody kept trying to get me out of there,
but I conned them. I didn't want anything I didn't earn myself. I didn't want
to owe anybody anything."
"How long did this
go on?" Renard prompted.
"Over three
years," she answered. "It wasn't a bad life. You got used to it. And,
I grew up, developed a little—as much as I ever did, anyway—and dreamed. I used
to go down to the spaceport every day when I'd made my quota or just couldn't
do it any more—begging is hard work sometimes—and look at the ships and peer in
the dives at the spacers. I knew where I wanted to be again, someday—and
finally I realized that begging would always get me by but never get me
anywhere. Some of the spacers were real big spenders, since they had no home
but the ships and little to spend anything on."
Renard was shocked.
"You don't mean you—"
She shrugged. "I
was too small to be a waitress, and I couldn't reach over the bar. I never
learned much about dancing, I didn't have much in the way of social graces, and
no real education. I talked like a wharf rat, and while Maki had taught me
reading and writing and numbers, I hadn't done much of it. I had only one thing
to sell, and I sold it, learned how to sell it just right. Male, female, once,
twice, ten times a night if I could. It got pretty boring after a while, and
none of it meant anything, but, lord! How the money rolled in!"
He looked at her
strangely in the near darkness, feeling slightly uncomfortable. It wasn't what
she was saying, but how she was saying it that affected him so. He wasn't sure
what to say. He was certain that she hadn't told this to anyone, particularly a
stranger—maybe not at all—in years. The fact that she was telling it now, and
to him, meant something even his increasingly cloudy brain could fathom. Deep
down, she was as scared as he was.
"You certainly
speak well enough now," he pointed out. "And you said you were a
pilot. Did you make enough money to do all that?"
She laughed dryly.
"No, not from that. I met a man—a very kind and gentle man, who was a
freighter captain. He started coming around real regular. I liked him—he had
some of those qualities I mentioned in my long-ago rescuer. He was loud, brash,
cynical, detested the Com, and had the most guts of any man I'd ever known. I
guess I knew I was in love with him, looked forward to seeing him, to meeting
him, going out with him. It wasn't like with the others. It wasn't sex. I doubt
if I could do that with any feeling with anybody. It was something else,
something better than that. When I found out he was diverting often just to see
me, our relationship grew even deeper. We complemented each other. And he owned
his own ship, the Assateague, a really good, fast, modern job."
"That's kind of
unusual, isn't it?" Renard commented. "I mean, those things are for
corporations, not people. I never heard of a captain owning his own ship."
"Yes, it is unusual,"
she admitted. "It took a while to find out why. He finally asked me to
come with him, move onto the ship. Said he couldn't afford all these side
trips. Well, that was what I'd always wanted, so of course I did. And then he
had to tell me how he had so much money. He was a thief."
Renard had to laugh. It
was a ridiculous climax to her story. "What did he steal, and who
from?" he asked.
"Anything from
anybody," she replied. "The freighter was a cover and afforded
mobility. Jewels, art, gold, silver, you name it. If it had a high value, he
stole it. Rich people, corporation heads, party leaders on Comworlds were a
particular target. Sometimes there were break-ins, sometimes he did it with
electronics and a fine knowledge of bureaucratic paperwork. After we got
together, we became a team. He got all sorts of teaching machines, sleep
learners, hypno aids, and the like for me, and he coached me and rehearsed me
until I sounded educated and acted properly." She giggled.
"One time we broke into the master storage area in the Union of All Moons
treasury building, exchanged some chips, and had the next three days' planetary
income automatically diverted to dummy interstellar units accounts in
Confederacy banks, and even after we closed down, withdrew the stuff, and
transferred it far away, they never caught on. I wonder if they ever did?"
"Your man—what
happened to him?" Renard asked gently.
She turned somber again.
"We were never caught by the police. Never. We were too good. One day,
though, we lifted two beautiful little solid gold figurines by the ancient
classical artist Sun Tat, and they had to be fenced to a big collector. The
meet was arranged in a bar, and we had no reason to suspect anything was wrong.
It was. The collector was a front for a big syndicate boss we'd hit a year or
so earlier, and the whole thing was a set-up. They cut him into little pieces
and left the figurines with the remains."
"And you inherited
the ship," Renard guessed.
She nodded. "We'd gotten
a traditionalist ceremony a year or so before, just in case, I didn't really
want to, but he'd insisted, and it turned out he was right. I was his sole
heir."
"And you've been
alone ever since?" he added, fascinated by this strange little woman.
There was acid and cold
steel in her voice. "I spent half a year tracking down his killers. Every
one died—slowly. Every one knew why they were dying. At first the big boss
didn't even remember him!" Tears welled up in her eyes. "But he
remembered at the end," she added, with evident satisfaction.
"Since that time, I
have continued the family trade, you might say," she went on. "Both
of them.
"I've paid for the
best the underworld can offer, and kept myself in top shape. Surgeons have
turned me into a small deadly weapon, with things you wouldn't believe built in
and deep-programmed. Even if I were ever caught, the story I just told you
couldn't even be gotten by deep-psych probe. They've tried."
"You were hired to
get Nikki out, weren't you?" Renard said.
She nodded. "If you
can't catch a crook, set her to catch other crooks. That was the idea. It almost
worked."
He grunted at the last.
It brought everything back to the present situation, although now he could
understand why she believed they would get out of this. With a life like hers,
miracles were a common, everyday occurrence.
"There's nothing
really to tell about me," he said wistfully. "Nothing violent or
romantic."
"You said you were
a teacher," she noted.
He nodded. "I was
from Muscovy. A Comworld, yes, but not a really serious one. None of
that genetic-manipulation stuff. Traditional family structure, prayers five
times a day—There is no God but Marx and Lenin is His Prophet—and testing
to see where you fit into the communal structure." He was audibly
straining for the words. They came hard to him. He didn't appear to notice.
"I was smart, so I
was put in school. But I never was interested in anything useful, so I studied
old literchur"—that's the way he pronounced it, as best he could—"and
became a teacher. I was always kind of effinate"—he meant
effeminate—"in looks and acts, but not inside. I got a lot of fun poked at
me. It hurt. Even the students were mean. Mostly behind my back, but I knew
what they were saying. I didn't like the men who liked other men, and the women
all believed I didn't like them. I kind of withdrew into my own shell, in my
apartment with my books and vid files, and came out only for classes."
"How about a
psych?" she wondered.
"I went to a
bunch," he replied. "They all started talking about all sorts of wild
things, did I love my father and all that. They put me in some kind of drug
training that was supposed to change my mannerisms, but it didn't work. The
more they tried and failed, the more unhappy I got. Finally, I sat there one
night and considered how little I had done. I hadn't really directly touched
one other life—even for the worst. I thought about killing myself, but the
psych probes out-guessed me there, and the People's Police came and got me
before I could do it."
"Would you
have?" she asked seriously.
He shook his head.
"I don't know. Maybe. Maybe not. I sure haven't since, have I? No guts, I
guess. Or maybe they deep-programmed me not to." He paused a moment in
thought—or trying to organize his thoughts.
"They took me to
the political asylum. I'd never been there before. They seemed kind of upset
that I was thinking of killing myself. Took it personally, like because I
failed, the system had failed. They thought about wiping me clean, maybe
converting me to being a woman and doing a new personality that would
match."
"Why not just kill
you and be done with it?" Mavra asked. "It would be cheaper and less
trouble."
He looked shocked, then
remembered her own background. "They just don't do that on
Comworlds! Not Muscovy, anyway. No, I was kept there for a long time—I don't
know how long. Then somebody came by and told me that some bigwig wanted to
talk to me. I had no choice, so I went. He was from a different Comworld, a real
far-gone one—true hermaphroism, genetically identical people programmed to love
their work, and so on. He said he needed, of all things, a librarian! People
who could read books, and be familiar with them, were rare—that was
true! Even Muscovy had a ninety-two percent ill—nonreader rate." The big
words got him, and he either badly mispronounced them or couldn't handle them.
"Trelig," she
guessed.
He nodded. "Right.
I was taken away on his ship to New Pompeii, given a huge overdose of sponge,
and I was stuck. The OD did crazy things to me in the weeks and months that
followed. My girlish manners were made a hundred times worse, and my features
became more and more like those of a woman, even to the breasts. But—it was
funny. My male organs actually grew, and, inside my head, I was still a
man. I finally had my first real sex experience on New Pompeii. I really was
his librarian, too—and I was also one of the guards for special prisoners,
like Nikki, there. Everybody on New Pompeii had psych problems of some kind
plus a skill Trelig needed. He recruited from the best political asylums in the
Com."
"And now here you
are," she said to him, very gently.
He sighed. "Yes,
here I am. When I shot Ziggy and helped you get out, I felt it was the first
really important thing I had ever done. I almost felt that I was born and
existed only for that one moment, that one act—to be there to help you when you
needed it. And now—look what a mess we have!"
She kissed him lightly
on the cheek. "Go get to sleep and don't worry so much. I haven't lost
yet—and if I haven't, you haven't either."
She wished she believed
that.
"A hell of a
mess," Ben Yulin said, looking over the landscape. With no power to the
air-renewal system on the ship, they had been forced to don their spacesuits.
The largest aboard was almost too small for Zinder in the body of his rotund
daughter, but the things were made to form-fit a variety of sizes. You got into
them and they were all tremendous, loose, and baggy. But when you hooked up the
air supply, which was, fortunately, a manual rebreather type, the material
acted like something alive, constricting until it became almost a second, very
tough white skin.
"How much air do we
have?" Trelig asked, looking around at the barren rocky desert in which no
sign of life appeared anywhere.
Yulin shrugged.
"Not more than a half-day's supply at best without the special electrical
system in the rebreather."
"We aren't far from
that next hex, where there appeared to be some water," Trelig noted
hopefully. "Let's try for it. What have we got to lose?"
They started off,
following the marks of the giant skid the courier ship had made in its
belly-landing.
They hadn't gone far
before twilight set in. Yulin felt that something was wrong, and he tried to
put his finger on it. There seemed to be shapes around, kind of half-shapes,
really, that appeared at the corner of your eye but weren't there when you
turned around.
"Trelig?" he
called.
"What?" the
other snapped.
"Do either you or
Zinder notice anything odd going on? I'd swear we have company of some
kind."
Trelig and Zinder both
came to a halt, although they didn't want to, and looked around. Yulin found
they were easier to see the darker it got.
They seemed to exist in
only two dimensions—length and width—and even that was variable. From the side,
they seemed to vanish. They were flying, or floating—it was hard to tell
which—all around them. Yulin was reminded of paint spilled on a sheet of clear
plastic. There was a thick leading edge, and it flowed—not necessarily down,
but up and along as well. As it did, the edge seemed to spread out so that it
was sometimes a meter wide and almost two meters long. That was the limit for
them—when they were fully extended, the rear edge seemed to slowly flow back
into the leading edge until it was just a meter-wide lump of paint, only to
start spreading out again.
They were different
colors, too. Almost every color they could think of, although never more than
one. Blues, reds, yellows, greens—of every possible shade and hue.
"Are they
intelligent?" Yulin wondered aloud.
Trelig had been thinking
the same thing. "They sure seem to be clustering around us, like a crowd
of curious onlookers at an accident," the syndicate boss noted. "I
don't see how, but I'd bet money that these are the people who live here."
"People" was
too strong a word, Yulin thought. These creatures were the stuff of artists'
dreams, not real, tangible things.
"I'm going to try
and touch one," Trelig said.
"Hey! Wait! You
might—" Yulin protested, but got only a laugh in reply.
"So I do something
bad," the boss responded. "We're dead anyway, you know." With
that he reached out and tried to grab the one nearest him. Nothing he'd ever
seen had ever reacted that fast. One moment it was there, all stretched out,
the next it just seemed to be somewhere else, a meter or two out of reach.
"Wow!" Trelig
exclaimed. "They sure can move if they want to!"
Yulin nodded.
"Maybe, if they're intelligent in any way, we can talk to them," he
suggested.
Trelig wasn't so sure.
"So what do you say to a two-meter living paint smear, and how?" he
asked sarcastically.
"Maybe they can see
somehow," Yulin suggested. "Let's try some gestures."
He made sure of his
audience—and he did have the funny feeling that they were looking at
him—and pointed to Zinder's air tanks. Then he put his hands to his throat,
made choking motions, and fell to the ground.
The flowing streaks
seemed to like that. More of them arrived, and they seemed to become much more
agitated. Yulin repeated the act several times, and they became increasingly
agitated, sometimes almost touching one another in their eagerness to get a
better view.
Enough acting, Yulin
decided. It used up air. He got up, faced them, and put out his hands in what
he hoped would be a gesture of friendship and supplication.
This action seemed to
excite them even more. He had the strange feeling that he was the subject of a
furious debate that none but these strange creatures could hear.
But were they debating
whether to help, how to help, or what was the meaning of this strange
creature's actions? That last was definitely the most unsettling—and the most
likely.
A couple of the
creatures floated over, seemed to examine his air pack from a distance of fifty
centimeters or so. He remained still, letting them. That was a good start. They
might be getting the idea. Or they might be wondering why he was pointing at
that funny thing.
More and more appeared
as darkness fell. They were coming out of cracks in the ground, they
observed—small cracks they would never have noticed otherwise. The natives
seemed to rise like wraiths, fully extended, then curl up or flow or whatever,
pulling out in a different direction and heading, mostly, their way. There was
a regular assembly now, a rainbow of weird flowing and undulating shapes.
Finally, they seemed to
reach some sort of decision or consensus. They crowded around the humans, so
thick it was impossible to see. Then, very deliberately, a narrow opening
appeared to one side. They waited.
"I think we're
being directed someplace," Trelig noted. "Shall we go?"
"Better than
collapsing here and dying in another hour or two," Yulin replied.
"You lead, or shall I?"
Trelig started walking,
then Zinder, and finally Yulin. That they were being led somewhere was quickly
apparent—the opening continued, but the area they vacated was closed in by the
strange creatures.
Yulin checked his air
supply. About two hours, he noted. He hoped wherever they were going wasn't far
off.
That thought was in all
their minds, along with the last shreds of doubt, when, a little over an hour
later, they reached a rock outcrop. A huge number of the creatures was
there—perhaps many thousands. Some had obviously assembled there because of
them, but others seemed to be carrying on all sorts of deliberate but
unfathomable business.
"Yulin! Look!"
Trelig called excitedly.
Ben Yulin peered into
the star-lit darkness at the cliff's face, and, for a moment, didn't see what
had attracted the other man. Finally he could make out a deeper blackness
against the cliff.
"A cave?" he
asked, feeling disappointed. "Hell, we've been taken to their leader or
something."
"No! No!"
Trelig protested. "My Renard eyes must be better than your Mavra Chang's.
Look at the shape of the hole!"
Yulin peered again,
approaching closer. It was large—perhaps two meters on each of its six sides.
Six sides?
"A hexagon!"
Yulin exclaimed, hardly able to contain himself. "They got the
message!"
"We'll see,"
Trelig responded. "Obviously they mean for us to enter the thing, and we
might as well. Air's running out anyway. All set?"
"Okay, let's
go," Yulin replied, praying again that they would not enter a cave that
was just the seat of government of these folks.
Trelig went first. He
didn't seem to enter a cave or hole—he just stepped forward, seemed frozen for
an instant, then vanished. Yulin prodded Zinder next, but the scientist knew
the air situation as well as they did. He stepped in, and to the same effect.
Ben Yulin took an expensive deep breath, held it, and stepped in, too.
* * *
It was a strange
sensation, like falling down a great, endless hole. It was nasty and
unpleasant, but they had to endure it.
The sensation ended as
suddenly as it began, bringing them out in a strange sort of cave inhabited by
more of the flowing creatures.
The other two were
already there.
"Oh, no!"
Yulin swore, heart sinking. "Just a shuttle system!"
Trelig was just about to
reply when a ghostly figure quite unlike any of them, humans or creatures,
appeared. It was huge—three meters at least, and almost as big around. It had
nasty-looking claws and sets of insectlike legs, and it was encased in some
kind of protective artificial shell.
"What the
hell?" Trelig managed, but then he saw the figure make a very recognizable
"follow me" gesture with its great claws, turn, and start down the
cave.
"Our new
guide," speculated Yulin. "I think I like the paint smears better.
Well, let's get going. Air's getting low."
They went through a
passage, then a doorway slid out, and they found it was some kind of air lock.
It closed behind them, then opened ahead after a few moments. The creature had
gone ahead but, they saw, it waited for them outside.
Outside proved to be a
long, broad hallway made of some orange-white crystalline material that sparkled.
The whole area was lit up, and Yulin wasn't the only one that noticed the rows
of doorways in hexagonal shapes. The hallways, however, were almost rounded,
with no sharp corners.
The large insectlike
creature walked slowly down the corridor, and they followed. It seemed like a
long journey, and it took more than twenty minutes by Ben Yulin's air timer.
Suddenly the hall opened
onto a huge chamber. Huge was hardly the word for it. The chamber had six
sides, which seemed almost natural by now; but the enclosure was so enormous
that it took some time to establish that fact. The center area was in the shape
of an enormous glassy hexagon, too, and around the sides stretched a railing
and what appeared to be a walkway. A single great six-sided light, like a great
jewel, was suspended from the center of the mammoth ceiling, providing all the
light.
The walkway was just
that, and more. The big creature got on it, walked down so they could also step
onto the vinyllike, spongy surface, then it pressed some indistinguishable area
on the wall.
They almost tumbled over
as the walkway started to move.
It took about ten
minutes to go halfway around to another break in the wall. There were openings
in the rail to go down to the glassy surface, but they passed them up.
Eventually they stopped, and the weird creature, which seemed to them to be
much like a lobster made of transparent glass, went slowly down a new hallway.
They reached a room,
much smaller than either the big chamber or the cave. It had an air lock, too,
but it was an almost perfect square. The ceiling and three of the walls looked
normal, including the door area.
The fourth was blackness
absolute.
"Looks like another
transfer," Trelig noted. "I hope we get to our kind of air in the
next forty minutes."
"Thirty-six,"
Yulin replied glumly. He'd been checking it every half-minute.
"They're not going
to let us die," said Trelig confidently. "They've gone to too much
trouble." He stepped unhesitatingly into the blackness, followed by
Zinder, and then Yulin.
Again they experienced
that falling sensation, longer this time. Yulin worried about how long it might
be and wanted to check the timer, but vision was impossible.
They emerged in an
identical room. In fact, all three could have sworn that they'd gone no place.
That puzzled and disturbed them. Yulin's timer still read close to thirty-six,
which meant that the long fall they'd just taken had consumed no time. That was
impossible, he told himself. And then he noticed—a slight humming sound, a tiny
whine.
And the timer was going
up.
"Trelig! We've got
power! The electrical system is processing again!" he almost screamed.
The excitement and
relief swept over them. Trelig, ever practical, broke the mood.
"Remember that
we're being manipulated by someone," he cautioned. "They may know
more than we think. Remember, you, that you're Mavra Chang, pilot, and
no one else, and that I'm Renard. Don't ever use any other name again!"
The words were icy, nasty, cutting. "If they question us together, let me
do most of the talking. If separately, tell the truth up to the point where we
changed it. You don't know who was in the other ship! Understand?"
Yulin calmed down.
Suddenly the door slid
open, and a third kind of creature entered.
They all stared at it,
still not used to the changing wonders of the races of the Well World. It was a
little under two meters tall with a thick, smooth, green-skinned body ending in
two round, thick legs without apparent joint, supported by broad, flat-bottomed
round cuplike feet. Two spindly arms grew from a point just above its
midsection and seemed to have smaller divisions at the tips. The head, which
sat atop an impossibly thin neck, looked like a green jack-o'-lantern, with its
mouth in a permanent expression of surprise, and two nonblinking, almost
luminous saucers for eyes. No sign of a nose or ears, Yulin noted. Atop it all
grew a single huge, broad leaf that seemed to have a life of its own, slowly
moving toward the strongest light source.
The creature held a
piece of cardboard or something similar in its left tentacles, then lifted the
board in front of it, angling it so they could read. The message was in
standard Confederation plain talk, bearing out Trelig's suspicion that the
denizens of this world were far from ignorant of them or their nature. It said,
in block-printed crayon:
YOU MAY REMOVE YOUR
SUITS. THE AIR IS
BREATHABLE. WHEN YOU
HAVE FINISHED,
FOLLOW ME TO BRIEFING.
Trelig accepted the guarantee
and pressed the releases to flip back his helmet bubble. He took a breath, and
the air was good. Satisfied, he switched off the backpack. The suit collapsed,
seemed to grow and melt into a puddle of synthetic cloth at his feet. He helped
Zinder do the same. Yulin started to, but suddenly fell horribly nauseous;
blood suddenly clogged in his throat, and pain wracked him everywhere.
He collapsed and passed
out.
In the early afternoon
of the third day, the one thing Mavra Chang feared more than the rain happened.
They ran out of woods.
Not much, of course.
This was pastoral country, and the woods picked up about a kilometer away. But
here was a broad plain, grassy and lumpy, and crisscrossed by several of the
dirt roads, on which there was a great deal of traffic. They watched from the
edges of the clearing as great cyclopses went back and forth, to and fro, some
alone, some carrying large sheepskin bags, some pulling large wooden carts with
hand-carved wooden wheels, laden with all sorts of things.
"Look on the bright
side," Mavra told them. "At least we know now we haven't been going
in circles."
Renard nodded.
"Yes, we're a long ways from where we landed. But are we going the right
way?"
Mavra shrugged. What was
the wrong way? The one that got you caught. In that case, this might definitely
be the wrong way.
"We could follow
the woods to the left for a while," she suggested. "Maybe it connects
someplace down that road. We've crossed roads before."
"Don't look like
it," Renard observed. He was talking more normally today, but his
sentences were shorter and less complex, and he wasn't even thinking in those
big words any more.
Mavra Chang sighed.
"Then we'll have to stay here until nightfall. We sure can't cross now
with all those creatures there." She didn't like that; although the hypno
conditioning, renewed the night before, kept the two unaware of their
condition, the mental deterioration was becoming evident in Renard and more so
in Nikki. Precious hours would mean that much more lost.
"I don't wanna get
eaten," Nikki Zinder proclaimed. "You remember that one we saw? Ate
that sheep in three big gulps."
Mavra remembered. They
would stay hidden until after nightfall, when the traffic thinned out. She had
no idea whether any of her lethal defenses she'd bragged so much to Renard
about would work on those behemoths—and she had no desire to try. She wasn't as
much of a mouthful as that sheep had been.
They settled down, and
all started to doze on and off. They were tired and worn; the sponge effect was
also body-wide, although more apparent in the thought processes. The other two
tired more quickly, and their coordination was shot. As for Mavra, she'd gotten
very little sleep since before landing on New Pompeii, and fatigue was starting
to tell on her. Will power could only sustain so far, and she knew it, even
though she wouldn't admit that to herself. She slept.
Renard awoke first. He'd
only been slightly asleep anyway, thanks to Mavra's rest-inducing hypno of the
past nights. He crawled to the edge of the plain. Still a lot of traffic, maybe
not as much as before, but it would be sure capture to go out there now.
He crawled back. Mavra
was so sound asleep she didn't hear him, but Nikki stirred, opened her eyes,
and looked at him.
"Hi!" she
whispered.
"Shhh!"
he cautioned, putting his finger to his lips. He ambled over to her.
She looked up at him
with slightly dulled large brown eyes. "Do you think we can croth
it?" she asked. The lisp had appeared as time had worn on.
"Yes, later
on," he soothed, and she shifted next to him.
"Renard?"
"Yes, Nikki?"
"I'm
thscared."
"We all are,"
he told her honestly. "We just have to keep going."
"Not her," the
girl replied, pointing to Mavra. "I don't think anything could thscare
her."
"She's just learned
to live with fear," he soothed. "She knows how to be scared without
letting it get to her. You have to do that, too, Nikki."
She shook her head.
"Ith's more than that. I don' wanna die, sure, but—if I gotta—I . .
." She trailed off, searching for the words.
He didn't understand,
and said so. She was quiet for a moment, then finally said, "Rennie? Will
you make love to me?"
"Huh?" The
very idea startled him.
"I want to have it,
do it, juth once. Juth in cathe." There were almost tears in her eyes, and
a pleading voice. "I don' wanna die without doin' it juth onth."
He looked over at the
sleeping Mavra Chang, then down at the pathetic girl next to him, and wondered
how, in the face of certain death, you could still get into bad situations. He
thought about it for a while, trying to make up his mind. Finally, he decided.
Why not? he thought. What's the harm? And it was one thing, at least, he could
do for somebody else that he couldn't foul up.
* * *
Mavra Chang awoke with a
start and looked around. It was dark—she'd been sleeping for quite some time.
Suddenly, she had a headache and various other aches and pains from sleeping so
hard and in one position. Solid sleep.
She looked around,
spotted Renard and Nikki reclining, backs against a broad tree. She was asleep,
and he was half-asleep, his arm around the plump girl. Mavra could see in a
moment what had happened; there was little way to clean up here. It bothered
her, and it bothered her that it bothered her. Possibly because she could not
understand it.
She turned and crept up
to the edge of the clearing. Not much traffic or signs of traffic now.
Occasionally a cart would go by, two torches blazing from holders in its side
grotesquely half-illuminating the strange creature that pulled it; but clearly
traffic was at a minimum. She doubted the cyclopses had good night vision; they
seemed mostly inactive after sunset, active from first light.
She crept back to the pair,
who hadn't moved, and gently woke them up. Nikki seemed to be calmer, which was
good, but worse mentally. Mavra wondered if the effect accelerated despite what
Renard had told her, or if it was just more noticeable when you started to get
down below the normal level.
"We're about ready
to go across," she told them. "We'll go as far as we can tonight to
try and make up the lost time."
"We gon' run
'croth?" Nikki asked, sounding almost eager.
"No, Nikki, not
run," she replied patiently and slowly. "We will walk across, slowly
and nicely."
"But th' big
thing'll thee uth!" the girl protested.
"There aren't many
of them," Mavra told her. "And if one comes near, we'll just lie down
and be quiet and wait for it to go away."
Renard looked at Nikki
and patted her hand. She liked that, and snuggled up a little to him.
"Let's go now, Nikki," he said gently.
They got up and made
their way to the edge of the plains. No torches or carts in sight except two
dim lights far off in the distance. Probably the same one that Mavra had seen,
going away, she guessed.
"Okay, let's all
walk now, nice and easy," she told them, taking Nikki's right hand in her
left and Renard's left hand in her right. They started out.
The crossing was almost
too easy. The cloud cover had remained, making the surroundings even blacker,
and there was literally nobody on the roads. They crossed the clearing in about
twenty minutes with no problems, and Mavra wished that all her troubles and
worries were so easily laid to rest.
But then the rain
started. Not a bad rain, or a big storm, but a steady rain that was warm but
uncomfortable. It quickly turned the ground into mud and soaked them through.
Nikki seemed to enjoy it, but it was miserable going, and the trees didn't
offer much protection.
Mavra Chang cursed. The
mud was becoming deeper and more treacherous, and they couldn't keep going much
longer in this kind of mess. More lost time, with time running out on her.
Then the wind started to
pick up, chilling their soaked bodies to the bone, forcing her hand. She found
some shelter, a grove of particularly tall, broad trees growing close together
that afforded a measure of dryness, and they settled down and huddled together
for all the good it did.
* * *
The next morning dawned
brighter and dryer, but only because the clouds had thinned and it had stopped
raining on them. They all looked a mess, mud-caked, with hair tangled and
mud-clumped.
Renard was disturbed.
"I can't seem to think so good," he told her with obvious distress.
"I can't seem to think of things any more. Why is that, Mavra?"
She felt a consuming
pity for the man, but she couldn't answer his question. Nikki, of course, was
even worse. She'd found a mud-puddle and was happily playing in it, splashing
around and making some sort of mud cakes. She looked up as they approached.
"Hi!" she
called out. She reached down and picked up a mud pie. "Thee what I
made?"
Mavra sighed and thought
fast. A glance at the sun had told her that they'd been moving roughly east,
but how far and at what angle?
She thought fast about
the pair she now had on her hands. Renard was still capable of handling
himself, but for how much longer? As for Nikki—she was sinking almost before
Mavra Chang's eyes. Something had to be done to keep them under control.
She put them both under
quickly, finding she had to choose her words carefully so they could follow
her.
"Nikki, you don't
remember anything about who you are except that your name is Nikki.
Understand?"
"Uh huh," the
girl acknowledged.
"Now, you're a very
little girl, and I am your mommy. You love your mommy and always do what
she says, don't you?"
"Uh huh," the
girl agreed.
She turned to Renard.
"Now, Renard, you
don't remember anything about who you are or who we are, only that your name is
Renard. Okay?"
"All right,"
he agreed.
"You are Renard.
You are five years old and you are my son. I am your mommy, and you love your
mommy and always do what she tells you. Understand?"
His tone became softer,
more childlike. "Yes, Mommy," he replied.
"Good," she
approved. "Now, Nikki is your sister. She is younger than you and you have
to help her. Understand? You love your sister and have to help her."
"Yes, Mommy,"
he responded.
She turned back to
Nikki. "Nikki, Renard is your big brother and you love him very much. You
will let him help you if you have trouble."
"Uh huh," she
responded, very childlike.
Mavra was as satisfied
as she could be. She'd done this regression thing before, although under very
different circumstances. She had once convinced an art-museum director that he
was her son, and he'd opened the place and shut off the alarm for her. Even
helped her cart stuff out. He thought he was helping his mommy move.
She would have to
remember, though, that she was Mommy to two very big but definite children from
now on, and act the part.
She brought them out of
it. "Come on, children. We have to go now," she said softly.
Nikki looked upset.
"Ah, p'eathe, Mommy! Can't we pway some more?"
"Not now," she
scolded gently. "We have to go. Come on, both of you give Mommy your
hands."
They went along for some
time. It was difficult at times to control them as children, despite the
hypnoed instructions. Kids skipped and played and generally acted up, and it
took some stern acting and will power to keep them pretty much in line.
Mavra began to worry
that she was wrong after all, that she would never see any mountains and a sign
of an end to this strange place. Yet, the terrain was becoming hillier; the
rocks were larger, and mostly igneous. They might be foothills.
And, suddenly, there
they were. Not terribly tall mountains, or grand ones, but wonderful to see all
the same. Gently folded, like great wrinkles in the earth, they rose up about
eight hundred meters from where they stood. As with most folded mountains,
though, there were frequent breaks, where streams and ice had eroded passes
through the barrier. The lowest and closest of these would still require a
climb of about three hundred meters, but the slope was gentle and there were
many rocky outcrops for rest or shelter. They might make it over before dark if
they were lucky, she thought.
There were a lot of
sheep on the hillsides. She didn't like that; in this place, where there were
grazing sheep there was usually one or more giant one-eyed shepherds. She
debated waiting until darkness, but she feared any more time lost. She looked
carefully around, wishing she could trust them to stay put while she did a
better reconnoitering job—but she dared not put them to sleep. She might not
have any control later.
She decided to chance
it. Taking their hands and cautioning them to be quiet, they started as quickly
as possible across the open area to the first protective outcropping a few
thousand meters ahead.
It looked closer than it
was, and the "children" were hard to restrain as they passed close to
some grazing sheep. Even as tense as she was, looking for any sign of more
dangerous life, Mavra reflected how curious it was that such an animal, so
common in her own part of the universe, should be here.
The outcrop loomed near
now, and she almost had them running for it at full speed. Just a few seconds
more . . . now! Made it!
There was a sudden
terrible roaring sound, and they stopped dead. A massive shape, then two,
suddenly rose up in front of them. Two of them! A big male and a big female,
either waiting for them behind the rocks or doing their own business there. It
didn't matter.
Nikki screamed, and they
all turned to run, but the creatures, once they recovered from their initial
surprise, reacted very swiftly. A great hand came down and grabbed the slowest,
Nikki, then tossed her like a ripe fruit to the other.
The big male came on,
catching Mavra first. Although she was fast, ten of her steps were two for the
giant cyclops, and she was suddenly in the grip of its huge hands. The female
came up behind, took her with amazing gentleness, and went back behind the
rocks.
Renard was well away
when he heard Mavra cry out, and he turned to see what had happened. That
proved to be enough; the great creature caught him and shrugged off his futile
blows. He turned, holding the man like a large doll, and joined his mate in
back of the rocks. It was a little camp, obviously a temporary shelter for the shepherds
in the area. There was a crude but huge wooden lean-to, with great straw mats
and large, crudely woven wool blankets, and an outside barbecue pit of some
sort, with hot coals and a rotisserie of smelted iron over it. Apparently some
of them liked their meat cooked; a fresh-killed and skinned sheep was on the
skewer. They also saw one of those big wooden carts, and it was into this that
all three were dropped. Its sides were almost three meters high.
Mavra looked around. The
cart stank of things she didn't want to know much about, and there were the
remains of dried vegetation and even some of what looked like grass-roll. Nikki
was huddled in a corner, crying, and Renard didn't look or act much better.
Mavra looked around. The
planks offered something of a foothold, and she still had some of the thief
devices in her mud-caked boots. She might be able to get out.
She looked around at the
other two. She might, but never them. Her venom was no good at all;
she'd tried both kinds on the two cyclopses, and they hadn't even noticed the
scratch. Possibly their systems were too alien for it, maybe they were just of
such great bulk that it would take more than she could produce to have a real
effect. It made no difference. This was the end of the primary mission, and she
had failed.
She peered out of a
crack between the planks that was just barely accessible to her if she stood on
tiptoe. The female was arguing with the male, that was obvious. There was a lot
of bellowing and snorting and hand gestures, some of them unmistakable.
Finally he seemed to
cave in, and went into the lean-to, coming out a moment later with a large iron
screen. Mavra had a sinking feeling, which proved justified. The creature came
over, looked in the cart, gave them a strange sort of leer, and slammed the
heavy screen on top of the cart. He snorted once, then went away. Pretty soon,
there were the sounds of munching and chewing.
Mavra looked at the
screen. Its holes were a little too fine for her to get through, she could tell
from the cart floor. And it was made of cast iron; there was no way she was
going to lift it.
She settled down into a
heap, and tried to figure out how to keep from being eaten.
Ben Yulin groaned and
awoke slowly. He tried to move, but pain shot through him. He could tell he was
in a bed of some kind, that he was naked, and had some sort of blanket over
him—but nothing more.
He opened his eyes, then
moaned, and closed them again. It took several seconds until he was willing to
try it again.
They were still there.
Closest was a large
furry creature in a lab coat with what looked like a modified stethoscope
around its thick neck. The thing looked like nothing so much as a giant beaver,
complete with two huge buck teeth in front. Only the eyes were different—they
were bright and clear and a deep-gold color, and radiated intelligence and
warmth. Behind the beaver was the six-armed snake-man named Serge Ortega,
looking concerned under his snow-white brush. The plant creature was there,
too, completing the bizarre scene.
Yulin looked around
uneasily, then spotted the figure of Renard, wearing some kind of great cloak
tied around his neck, over near the door, looking bored. This seemed to snap
him out of it.
The shape and manner was
Renard, but the indefinable aura of confidence and control from the Renard-like
figure marked him for Yulin as Antor Trelig. With that knowledge also came
Trelig's final warning, and Ben Yulin tried to relax, to bring Mavra Chang to
the fore.
"Where am I?"
he managed, then coughed.
"In a
hospital," the strange rodentlike creature replied. Yulin was surprised to
note that the creature was actually speaking Confederation plain talk—with
considerable difficulty, true, but understandable nonetheless.
The snake-man spoke up,
his own Confederation speech clear and perfect. "Dr. Muhar is an
Ambreza," he explained, at the same time explaining nothing. Seeing this,
he added, "There is a hex on the Well World with your kind of people in
it. The Ambreza are neighbors. Your people have had a bad time of it, and the
Ambreza are used to working with your medical problems. That's why we summoned
him."
"What happened to
me?" Ben asked, still unable to move.
The Ambreza turned to
Ortega, who spoke the required language as if born to it.
"You collapsed in
the Polar Gate," the snake-man reminded him. "When we got that
spacesuit off you, we found out you were a mess. Black and blue all over, three
ribs broken, one of which, because of your walking so far with it, had dislocated
so badly it punctured a couple of organs."
"Can you heal
me?" Yulin asked, concerned.
The Ambreza clucked.
"With a lot of time, yes," it said in a high-pitched voice, sounding
like a recording played slightly too fast. "But it will not be necessary.
We will put you through the Well."
Yulin tried to move,
couldn't. Drugs? It made no difference.
"Renard, here, has
been filling us in on what's been going on," Ortega said. "You all
have been through a lot. I'd like to keep you around a while, but both Renard
and Citizen Zinder have a sponge problem, and only the Well can cure that. Your
injuries are critical. I don't know how you kept going."
Yulin laughed.
"Fear. When you're running out of air, the pain just doesn't seem
important."
The snake-man nodded.
"I can understand that. A good attitude. We had to do a very quick
operation just to save your life, that is, Dr. Muhar and his associates did.
Lifesaving was our only goal, so we went the most direct route. Now, I don't
want you to panic when I tell you this, because it is not permanent, but
right now you are totally paralyzed."
That didn't stop Yulin
from starting in shock. Emotions welled up inside, emotions that may have been
Chang's or his or both. Almost to his own surprise, he started crying softly.
"I said the
condition wasn't permanent," Ortega assured the stricken human.
"Nothing is permanent on the Well World when you just get here—and
sometimes not even later. Take me. I was a man of your own race, tough and
small like you, when I came here. The Well World cures what's wrong with you,
but it changes you, too."
Yulin suppressed a
sniffle. "What—what do you mean?"
"I was waiting
until you came around to brief everyone. I've put the time to good use now,
anyway. Now we know what we've got here, and that is a relief in and of
itself." He turned to Trelig and nodded. "Bring in the girl."
Trelig went outside for
a moment, then brought Zinder in. The conditioning was holding, Yulin noted.
She reacted to the sight of Yulin in that condition exactly as the real Nikki
would have reacted to the real Mavra.
"As I said, I would
like to have kept at least one of you here for some time while we coordinate
our actions on these new conditions," Ortega continued, "but with the
sponge problem on the two of you and Citizen Chang's critical nature—we need a
lot more than this clinic to help you—this isn't possible. As a result, the
Embassy Council has decided that you are to be briefed and run through the Well
as quickly as possible."
Trelig spoke for the
first time. "This is an embassy, then? I guessed as much."
Ortega nodded. "All
the Southern Hemisphere hexes have places here, although some don't use
them. It's the only means of intercommunication possible. There are fifteen
hundred sixty hexes on the Well World. The seven hundred eighty south of the
Equatorial Barrier—you might have seen that it is really a barrier, too—are
either carbon-based life or life that can exist in a carbon-based environment.
The Northern half, the other seven hundred eighty, contain non-carbon-based life.
You experienced Uchjin, in the North, and you can appreciate how different some
of the forms are there."
All three of the humans
nodded in agreement at that.
"Anyway, let me
start at the beginning. The beginning, as far as this place is concerned, was a
race of beings your people call the Markovians. They were a great race. Looked
something like giant human hearts with six evenly spaced tentacles. Just like
human numerology generally was based on five, tens, or twenties, because of the
number of digits, their base mathematics was six. The number dominated their
whole lives—which is why we have hexagons, and why there are fifteen hundred
sixty here. Almost a perfect number for folks who thought in sixes. There is
even an idea that they had six sexes, but we'll let that go.
"Anyway, they
reached the highest point of physical evolution it is believed possible to
attain, and, as importantly, they reached the highest level of material
technology possible as well. Their worlds were spread over many galaxies—not
solar systems, galaxies. They'd build a local computer on one, program
it with everything they could imagine, then put a rock crust on top of it. They
built their cities there, and each Markovian was mentally coupled to the local
brain. The architecture was only a common frame of reference, for, linked to
their computers, they could simply wish for anything they wanted and the
computer did an energy-to-matter conversion and there it was."
"Sounds like a
godlike existence," Trelig commented. "What happened to them? I know
a little about the Markovians. They're all dead."
"All but one,"
agreed Ortega. "Basically, what killed them was sheer boredom. Immortal,
every wish fulfilled, and they felt as if they were rotting—or missing
something. The height of material attainment was theirs, and it wasn't enough.
Their best brains—and what brains they must have been!—got together and finally
decided that, somewhere, the Markovian development had taken a wrong turn. They
decided that the race was going to rot and die from paradise, or they could do
the other thing."
"Other thing?"
Ben prompted.
Ortega nodded.
"First they built the Well World, the ultimate Markovian computer. Instead
of a thin layer of computer in a real planet, the whole planet was one massive
computer. If a thin strip could create anything locally, then imagine a solid
planet, about forty thousand kilometers around, of Markovian computer! That's
what we're sitting on top of. Then they added the standard crust, so we're a
little over forty-thousand kilometers in diameter."
"But why all the
hexes, the different races on top?" Trelig asked the snake-man.
"That was the next
step in the great plan," Ortega replied. "The greatest artisans of
the Markovian race were then called in, all the material and philosophical
artists they had. Each one was given a hex to play with. Each hex is a
miniature world. Near the equator, a side runs about three hundred fifty-five
kilometers, six hundred fifteen kilometers between opposite sides. They were
carefully arranged. And in each one, the artisans were allowed to create a
complete, self-contained biosphere, with a single dominant form of life and all
supporting life for a closed ecosystem. The dominant life, at the start, were
Markovian volunteers themselves."
"You mean,"
Trelig put in, aghast, "they gave up paradise to become someone else's
playthings?"
The Ulik shrugged, which
was something with six arms. "From sheer boredom there was no lack of
volunteers. They became mortal, had to accept the rules of the game as set up
by the artisans, and prove it out. If the system did prove out, the
master computer established a world-set for the particular biosphere somewhere
in the universe, and then the natives were transferred to it. They could speed
up time, slow it down, anything. The world they entered was consistent with the
laws of physics, even if it was created speeded up. At the right evolutionary
moment, zap! The race was inserted. Then a new race was created to
replace the one that left, and the experiments started all over again."
"What you're
saying," Yulin commented, "is that we are all Markovians. That is,
their descendants."
Ortega nodded.
"Yes, exactly. And the races here now are the last batch—that is, the
descendants of the last batch. Some didn't go or want to go, some hadn't proved
out, when there became too few Markovians to supervise the project. We're the
byproducts here of the shutdown."
"And these races
have lived here since?" Trelig asked.
"Oh, yes,"
Ortega replied. "And time exists here. You get old, you die. Some die
young, some live longer than you'd think possible, but there's a generational
turnover anyway. The population's maintained by the computer—if a hex gets too
heavily populated, the birth rate goes to a minus for a while. Too low a
population from disasters, fights, whatever, and suddenly a sexy race gets back
up there. The population varies with each hex, of course. Some races are big
enough that there are only a quarter-million or so people, others can handle up
to three million."
"I don't understand
why pests and plagues aren't spread over the place," Yulin told him.
"And how come there aren't a lot of wars? It would seem alien races on the
whole wouldn't like the others."
"That's true,"
Ortega admitted. "But you might call it good systems engineering. Pests
there are, but there are subtle changes in soil or atmospheric content that
tend to inhibit or stop them, also geographical barriers—mountains, oceans,
deserts, and the like. As for bacteria and viruses, we have them aplenty, but
the various racial systems are just different enough that microbes that work
against one race won't have any effect on another."
He paused for a minute,
then remembered the other part of the question.
"As for wars,"
he continued, "they're not practical. Oh, there are local fights, but
nothing catastrophic. Hexes are so arranged that the ground rules differ. We
believe that that was done to simulate the problems from lack of resources or
somesuch on the various real worlds the people would be going to. As I
said, the natural laws had to be maintained. So in some hexes, everything
works. In some, there is limited technology—say, steam engines work, but
electrical generators won't hold a charge. In some only muscle power will do.
That's what happened to your ship—it flew into a limited nontech zone, it
wouldn't work, and down you came."
Trelig brightened.
"So that's what happened! And that's why the power did come
on for the time I needed to get the wings down and window cover up! We had
drifted over a high-tech hex!"
Ortega nodded.
"Exactly."
"But," Yulin
objected, "wouldn't a high-tech hex conquer a low-tech one?"
Serge Ortega chuckled.
"You'd think so, wouldn't you? But, no, it doesn't work that way. A
high-tech hex becomes dependent on its machines, as you were in the
North. It learns how to maybe make flying machines and fantastic guns and
such—and then it has to invade a hex where none of that works. And where two
hexes of the same type border, well, one is land and the other water, or one
has an atmosphere extremely uncomfortable to the other, or something like that.
One general, long ago, did try conquest by allying various kinds of
hexes in order to have the proper one for each hex fight in the appropriate
manner; but his plan worked only to a point. Some hexes he had to skip for
atmospheric conditions or tough terrain or the like, and eventually his supply
lines for all these races grew too long to sustain. The unconquered ones
chopped him to pieces in the end. There have been no wars since—and that was
over eleven hundred years ago."
They were silent for a
minute, then Trelig asked, "I know how we got here, but—you said
you were once one of us. How did you get here?"
Ortega grinned. "We
get occasional new arrivals all the time—about a hundred a year. When the
Markovians left their last planets, they didn't turn off their
computers—couldn't. There is a kind of matter transmission—we don't understand
it—connecting all the worlds with this one. The last Markovian simply couldn't
close the door behind him. It opened whenever someone wanted it to open, and
those old brains can't tell a Markovian remote and altered descendant from the
real thing. So if you really want the door to open, it will and you wind up
here. In ninety-nine percent of the cases, the people involved didn't even know
about the doors. They just wished they were somewhere else, or somebody else,
or that everything was different when they happened to be in the neighborhood
of a door. I literally flew through one—the planet was mostly gone, but just
enough remained."
"You knew about
them?" Yulin prodded.
"No, of course not.
I was getting old and I was bored and I could see nothing but a dreary sameness
in the future until death claimed me. You get introspective when you're a
pilot. Pop! Wound up here."
"But how did you
get turned into a giant snake?" Trelig asked him, without the slightest
trace of embarrassment.
Ortega chuckled.
"Well, when you first arrive somebody greets you. You're what they call an
Entry. They brief you, if they can, then shoot you through the Well Gate. It
basically processes you into the computer. By a system of classification we
don't know or understand, the computer then remakes you into one of the seven
hundred eighty races here and drops you into the hex native to that form. You
get acclimation thrown in, so you get used to being what you are pretty
quickly. Then you're on your own."
"But the
matter-transmission system is still on," Trelig noted.
"Yes and no,"
the Ulik responded. "There is usually a Zone Gate and sometimes two in
each hex. You can use that to go from your hex to here, South Polar Zone, and
from here back to your own hex. But should you be ten hexes away and go through
the Gate, you'll still wind up here—and then back home. The big Well input,
however, is that alone—you can come here from a Markovian world, but not go
back. That was done, I suspect, to commit the original volunteers who had
second thoughts. The only other gates are the ones between North and South
zones, the one you came through. The Uchjin—those creatures you first
saw—didn't know who you were, but they knew you didn't belong there or in the
Northern Hemisphere. They passed the buck to North Zone, and they sent you down
here. Now it's your turn to go through the Well."
Trelig looked uneasy.
"We become something else? Some other creature?" he said, uneasily.
Ortega nodded.
"That's right. Oh, there's a one in seven hundred eighty shot of staying
what you call human, but it's unlikely. You have to do it. You have no choice.
There's no other way out."
They considered that.
"Those others—the Entries. Are there . . . nonhuman entries?"
"Sure!" the
Ulik answered. "Lots. Most, in fact. Even some real surprises—creatures
that are nontech here, proving that it's easier where they are than the problem
set for them here. And some high-tech ones we've never seen. Even the North has
a bunch, almost as many as we have. We have here a collection of stored
spacesuits in forms and sizes you wouldn't believe. We use them occasionally
when somebody has to go north. There's some trade, you know. We have tiny
translator devices, for example, that are grown in a crystal world up there
that needs iron for some reason only they know. The things work. Anybody
wearing one will understand and be understood by any other race, no matter how
alien."
"You mean there
isn't a common language here?" Yulin almost exclaimed.
Ortega gave that low,
throaty chuckle again. "Oh, no! Fifteen hundred sixty races, fifteen
hundred sixty languages. When life and surroundings are different, you need to
think differently. When you go through the Well you'll emerge thinking in the
language of your new race. Even now I have to translate, though, by practicing
with other Entries. I've become quite proficient at it."
"Then we'll still
remember Confederation." Trelig's words were more a statement than a
question.
"Remember it,
yes," the snake-man replied. "And use it, if your physical anatomy
permits. A translator causes problems, though. You automatically get
translated, so managing a third tongue is nearly impossible. But with a
translator you hardly need it. If your new race uses them, try to get one.
They're handy things." He paused, looked at the plant-thing and the
Ambreza, seeming to note some worsening in Yulin's paralysis. "I think
it's time," he concluded softly.
They nodded, and a
second Ambreza came in and two giant beavers moved Yulin carefully onto a stretcher.
"But I don't—"
Trelig started to protest, but Ortega cut him short.
"Now, you can ask
questions forever, but you have the sponge and she has even more immediate
problems. If you can ever get to a Zone Gate, come back and visit. But now, you
go." The tone was very insistent. There would be no more argument. The
fact that Trelig and Zinder didn't actually have a sponge problem was beside
the point; their own cover story had rushed things.
They came finally to a
room similar to the Zone Gate they'd used in getting from North to South.
Yulin went in first; he
had no choice. He thanked them all, and hoped he would see them again. Then the
two stretcher-bearers upended the body of Mavra Chang so it fell forward into
the black wall. Zinder looked hesitant and had to be coaxed, but then he went.
Finally, Trelig was left alone with the curious assembly of aliens. He was
resigned. There was much to be learned, but his hand was forced. There would be
other times, he told himself.
He stepped into the
blackness.
Ortega sighed, turned to
Vardia. "Any news of the other ship?" he asked.
"None,"
replied the Czillian, the mobile plant-creature who had met them. "Are
they as important now as they were?"
Ortega nodded. "You
bet. If what those people told me was true, we have some first-class villains
up there, probably on the loose. And two of them know a hell of a lot about
Markovian mathematics. Dangerous people. If they should fall into the wrong
hands, and that ship were rebuilt so they got back to this New Pompeii and its
computer—maybe they could lick the problems. They would control the
Well."
"That's pretty
far-fetched," the Czillian objected.
Ortega sighed.
"Yeah, but so was a funny little Jew named Nathan Brazil, and you remember
what he turned out to be." The plant-thing bowed, the equivalent of
a nod. "The last, living Markovian," it breathed.
"I wonder why this
crisis hasn't attracted him?" Ortega mused.
"Because it's our
crisis," Vardia replied. "Remember, to the Well this isn't a
problem at all."
A tiny figure moved
silently down on the side of the mountain and was soon joined by a second, then
a third. A few others hovered nearby on silent wings.
"There they
are!" one whispered, pointing down below to the shepherd's lean-to and
cart where Mavra Chang, Renard, and Nikki Zinder were trapped.
"Amazing they made
it this far," another whispered.
The first one, the
leader, nodded in agreement. Unlike the cyclopses, their night vision was
extremely good. Although they could see in daylight, albeit poorly, they were
basically nocturnal. The scene was bright and sharp and clear to them.
One looked over to where
the two cyclopses were sleeping, snoring loudly.
"Big mothers,
aren't they?" it said softly.
The leader nodded.
"We'll have to sting them, and quickly. At least two of us for each one,
more if possible. I don't think we can juice them too much for safety's
sake."
"Will the venom
work?" one asked.
"It'll work,"
the leader responded confidently. "I looked it up before we left."
"I wish guns worked
here," the doubter persisted. "It's still risky."
The leader sighed.
"You know this is a nontech hex. Percussion type might work, but we didn't
have time to ransack museums and collectors." There was a pause, as if the
leader sensed it was now or never. Troops are always better in action than
waiting for it.
"Jebbi, Tasala, and
Miry, you take the bigger one. Sadi, Nanigu, and I will take the other one.
Vistaru, you take Bahage and Asmaro with you and see what you can do for the
captives. The others stay loose and available. Come in anyplace you're needed
if you have to."
They nodded to one
another. The ones on the mountainside launched themselves gracefully into the
air, and the teams split off to their respective missions.
* * *
Mavra Chang was asleep.
She'd crawled up to that grate a hundred times and each time had almost fallen,
her traction breaking before she budged the damned thing one centimeter. She
had put the other two to sleep to stop their whining and then fallen asleep
herself.
Suddenly she heard a
noise, as if something fairly heavy had landed on top of the grate. The noise
woke her, and, for a brief moment, she was confused. Then, suddenly, she
remembered where she was and looked up. There was definitely something large
standing on the cart, but the grating made it impossible to see just what.
"Hu-man? You hear
me, hu-man?" a strange, soft voice whispered. It was heavily accented in a
most exotic way, high and light, a sexy small woman's voice.
"I hear you!"
Mavra Chang responded, hope rising within her, in a loud whisper—as loud as she
dared.
"We are pooting the
beeg theengs to sleep, hu-man," the creature told her. "Be readee to
be took out."
Mavra strained her eyes,
trying to see what her rescuer looked like, but it was impossible to see
anything—just a blob of light against the greater dark.
There was a sudden roar.
The big male cyclops had awakened, and he was agitated and mad. He swore a
thousand growling oaths, then gave something that could only be a cry of pain.
She could hear the sound of a great falling body even as his mate roared,
yelled, and was, after a time, also felled.
Mavra Chang wondered
what sort of monsters could fell such huge and powerful creatures so easily.
There followed the sound
of more of them landing on the grate. That, in itself, was strange—the grate
was big, but not that big.
She heard them talk—a
strange language that sounded like a procession of sweet bells and tiny chimes.
It bore less relationship to a language than the grunts and snorts of the sort
the cyclopses had—a very beautiful but most inhuman sound.
There was the sound of
activity, and Mavra could hear the sounds of many hands doing things around the
grate, and the tinkling of those strange voices giving orders in wonderful
music.
The one that knew
Confederation, at least basically, returned.
"Hu-man? How manee
is down t'ere of you?"
"Three!" she
called back, certain that the old threat, at least, was no longer a factor. If
it were, these creatures wouldn't be here. "But two are drugged into
sleep," she warned them.
A figure, seemingly a
very small one, covered part of the grate, peering in. "Oh, yes! I see
now," the creature managed. Speaking the strange language was obviously a
real problem for her. "We weel have to pool the grate away from them, so
you get ovar near t'em, yes?"
Mavra did as instructed.
"Here all right?" she called.
"Is fine," the
creature responded, and it was gone. No, it didn't get up or crawl off, she
decided. It just went away. She wondered more and more what her rescuers were.
It didn't matter. Anything was better than what she had, and at least one of
them could speak her language, and they were obviously there to undertake a
rescue.
There was a pulling and
tugging. The grate moved a little, then settled back down. They had obviously
tied ropes or something to the thing and were trying to pull it away, but they were
having difficulty with the weight. The bells and chimes grew much more intense.
Mavra wondered if they were cursing or something. Even if they were, it sounded
wonderfully melodic. They gave it another try. There suddenly seemed to be a
lot of them, judging from the amount of tinkling bells she could hear, and they
were obviously all on this one.
A sudden, loud, single
low note and they all pulled. The grate went up, rose straight up and balanced
on the far edge. For a moment Mavra was afraid it would fall back down, and she
understood why they had had her move. But their tugging continued, and the
grate finally toppled outward and fell to the ground with a clanging sound.
The shape returned
above, then slowly seemed to float down into the cart until it stood on the
floor not a meter in front of her, visible even in the darkness with Mavra
Chang's night vision.
It was a tiny woman, a
girl really, looking no more than nine or ten; about a meter tall, and finely
and delicately featured, perfectly proportioned. Mavra decided in an instant
that this was no child but a full-grown adult.
She was very thin and
light, weighing certainly no more than twelve to fifteen kilograms, if that.
There were two very tiny breasts, almost undeveloped but somehow right. The face
was the picture of girlish innocence, youthful and angelic—almost the perfect
face, she thought.
Then, suddenly, the girl
seemed to glow. The light was real. It illuminated the entire interior and
seemed to radiate from all parts of her body, a golden glow that was incredible
and inexplicable.
In the brightness the
rest of the details of the newcomer became sharp and clear. Its skin was
reddish in color, a pale echo of the glow; its hair, seemingly cut and styled,
was set in a pageboy, the strands blue-black. Two tiny ears, both sharply
pointed, jutted out from either side of her head, and her eyes seemed to have
an eerie quality, like a cat's, reflecting back the light. From her back, in
neat pairs, grew four sets of wings, proportionately large to the body and
totally transparent. The creature smiled, and walked toward Mavra Chang, palm
up in greeting. As it moved forward there was a slight scraping sound. Mavra
saw that it came from something very rigid extending from her backbone down to
the floor itself. The protuberance was a much darker red than the girl's
complexion, and came to a nasty-looking point that made a slight mark in the
wood.
" 'Allo, I am
Veestaroo," the creature said, and Mavra knew it was the same one who had
spoken to her earlier.
"Mavra Chang,"
she responded. She looked at the still sleeping others. "The tall one is
Renard, the fat one is Nikki."
"Reenard," the
creature repeated. "Neekee."
Mavra didn't know if
what she was about to say would mean anything to the creature, but she had to
try. "They are on a drug called sponge," she told Vistaru. "They
are pretty far gone and need help fast. They can no longer help
themselves."
The creature's
expression turned grim. She said something to herself in her native language,
which, Mavra saw, came partly from within her and partly from a certain way
that the wings were moved. There was no doubt, though, that the woman knew what
sponge was.
"We weel have to
get t'em far away fast," Vistaru told her. "And t'ey are so veree
heavee."
Mavra understood the
problem. It must have taken all of them to get that grate off.
"I can get out on
my own," she told the creature. "Maybe I can be of some help
outside."
The woman who could fly
nodded, and Mavra started up the sides of the cart she knew so well with speed
that astonished the creature. Climbing up over the top, Mavra did a flip and
landed on the ground with a bouncy ease learned from jumping off two-storey
ledges. She looked around, wishing again that her power pack worked.
The sky had cleared a
little, and some of the light from the great globular clusters shone down,
giving the scene an eerie glow.
She saw the two
cyclopses lying there, one almost on top of the other, motionless. They
appeared to be dead, but she couldn't be sure. No matter what, she had new
respect for those hard things that just had to be stingers. These little girls
packed a real wallop.
There were quite a
number of rescuers—fifteen or twenty, anyway. They floated silently around,
having no respect at all for the laws of gravity. Their wings made a slight
humming sound that you could hear if you were close enough, but at any distance
at all they were silent. They took to the air as their natural
element—flitting, then hovering, then going off in another direction. Some were
using their internal light sources now, and showed themselves to be a rainbow
of colors. Some were reds and oranges, some greens, blues, browns, everything,
and some were very dark while others were very light. Otherwise they all looked
exactly alike. Some carried packs strapped to their bellies, obviously the
source of the rope they'd used.
Mavra turned from them
back to the problem of the cart. If it could be upset, that would be easiest.
But how to do it? She called to Vistaru, who floated easily up out of there and
over to her.
"Can you hook the
ropes to this side of the cart?" she asked the creature. "Maybe if
most pulled and a few of you and I pushed from the other side we could upset
it."
Vistaru considered that,
then floated up to a bright-blue companion hovering overhead. They talked in
that music of theirs. The blue one hadn't turned on its own illumination, but
Vistaru exposed both, and Mavra saw with some surprise that it was a male. A
male who, except for that one organ, seemed absolutely identical to the
females. She thought of Renard. The perfect form for him, Mavra reflected.
Vistaru returned.
"Barissa say no, too moch dangar," she told the human. "T'ere is
bettar way. Is latch on cart back, see?"
Mavra sighed and walked
to the rear of the cart. There was a latch, a big wood-and-iron one,
there obviously for loading sheep or something. Two of the creatures were
working on it.
Mavra turned to Vistaru.
"What are you called?" she asked.
"I tol' you.
Veestaroo," she responded.
Mavra shook her head.
"No, no. I mean all of you. The"—she struggled for a word other than
creature—"whole race of you."
The tiny pixie nodded
understanding. "We are Lata," she said. "At leased, t'at is what
it comes out een Confedera-tion," she added. "My name be," there
was a series of bell tones, "and the people be," more tones, "in
our talk."
Mavra nodded, and saw
just how hard it was for the Lata to talk. She apparently strained to translate
every word and remember its pronunciation and it was obvious that neither the
grammar nor anything else was common between the human language and theirs.
Vistaru seemed to sense
this concern. "Not worree," she assured the human. "We weel get
t'em to help in time. An' we weel be a-ble to talk more bet-tar soon."
Mavra wondered what that
meant but let it pass. The first order of business was Renard and Nikki; after
that, there would be time for her own problems.
They managed to throw
the latch, and it fell out and hit the ground. There was a sudden sharp series
of bell tones which even Mavra interpreted as a warning. The two Lata hovering
at the top of the cart pushed the back with an audible whack. It fell away and
crashed down, forming a ramp. Pretty good hinges for hand-forging, Mavra noted.
She helped three Lata
remove the unconscious bodies from the cart. The Lata male, Barissa, came over
to her and motioned to Vistaru. He said something to her, and she nodded and
turned to Mavra, who was thinking that sexual characteristics among the Lata
weren't very pronounced.
"He say you can
wake t'em op?" the translator asked.
Mavra nodded, and they
watched in some surprise as she pricked each one of them with her nail.
"Nikki, can you
hear me?" she asked.
The girl nodded, eyes
still closed.
"You will get up
and walk with me," she instructed. The girl opened her eyes, got
uncertainly to her feet, and stood there. "You will walk when I walk and
stop when I stop and sit when I sit," Mavra instructed.
She did the same to
Renard, noting with satisfaction that Nikki repeated her every movement, about
a meter away.
This seemed to excite
the Lata. They tinkled and chimed all over. Vistaru came up to her.
"How you do
t'at?" she asked. "T'ey want to know if you have stingars in
hands."
"Sort of,"
Mavra replied, and they started off.
* * *
The trip was fairly
easy. Mavra discovered that the top of the mountain range was also the border
between the cyclopses' hex, which the Lata called Teliagin "becous' t'at
is its name," and the hex called Kromm. The change was amazing. There was
still a chill in the air from the rain, and the wind had picked up to
unpleasant proportions when they reached the border. No lines, guards, or
sentinels stood there; not even a sign to mark the spot, yet one knew it was
the border. It was like passing through a curtain.
Suddenly the air was
thick and muggy; it was so humid that Mavra was covered in perspiration in
minutes. Insect sounds, vague and faint in Teliagin, were almost overpowering
here, as if someone had suddenly cut on a giant loudspeaker. The air seemed thick,
oddly scented, and slightly wrong somehow.
"Not worree,"
Vistaru assured her. "Deeferent, yes, but t'at is all: It weel not hurt
you."
Maybe not, Mavra
thought, but it was turning the caked mud back to real mud, and the ground
itself got progressively moist, the vegetation almost jungle-like as they
descended. At the bottom of the mountain was a swamp that seemed to stretch in
all directions. The water didn't appear very deep—perhaps fifty centimeters—but
it was dark and dank and foul-smelling and almost certainly hid deep spots. The
water seemed to be stagnant, and smelled it. Moss was everywhere.
"Do we have to walk
far through this?" she asked the Lata. "You can fly, but we
can't."
"Onlee short
ways," the pixie assured her. "Jost keep in back of me."
With that the creature
turned her light back on—she apparently didn't like to have it on all the time,
and they had all taken turns in lighting the way for them—and did a very nice
imitation of walking on top the water. Mavra knew she was flying, somehow, but
the effect was doubly eerie. She hovered so close to the surface that the
Lata's stinger occasionally made a wake in the water.
The mud became terrible,
and the water did get deeper, deep enough so that it seeped into her boots and
made them feel awful. Oh, well, what the hell, she thought philosophically.
Back to your beginnings.
They walked through the
stuff for about an hour, until Mavra began to think that she was becoming one
with the swamp. She was even beginning to get used to the odor, and that
worried her. The thick growths thinned out. Even so, there was one last
indignity, an underwater vine that caught her, and she went face down into,
fortunately, very shallow muck.
Dutifully, Renard and
Nikki, who had not tripped on anything, fell face down, too, and it took a
little effort to collect herself and get them up before they drowned.
She used some of the
water to get the muck out of her eyes, nose, and mouth, and, with Lata help,
cleaned off the other two. It wasn't much of a cleaning, though. They all
looked more monstrous than any creature they'd yet seen on the Well World. Even
her gift from Trelig, her horse's tail, was so mud-caked it felt like there was
somebody sitting on her rear end.
Finally everything
cleared. It was a strange transformation—from horrible swamp to calm sea.
Vistaru told her to wait, and one Lata, probably Barissa, who seemed to be the
leader, took off for what looked like a far-off clump of floating bushes.
The sea, if it was a
sea, was strangely beautiful. The sky was clear despite the oppressive
humidity, and the great sky of the Well World, with its great multicolored gas
clouds and bright stars, reflected an eerie, and yet magical glow on the
waters.
Suddenly she looked over
to her left, sure she detected movement. She did. She stared in new wonder as
one of the large clumps of bush seemed to break away and now head toward them,
a bright-blue light shining atop it. The light, she knew, was Barissa.
The bush proved to be a
giant flower. It looked like a huge rose, closed, flanked by a great, thick
green membranous platform.
Barissa smiled and said
something. She turned to Vistaru.
"He say ol' Macham
is sleepee and grumblee bot he know the pro-blem and he weel tak you and the
othars."
Mavra looked again at
the creature. It was a bright orange, or would be if it were fully opened. From
the center of the closed flower rose two stalks, like giant stalks of wheat.
Following the Lata's lead, she stepped up onto the green base of the creature.
Nikki and Renard followed, and imitated her when she sat down, cross-legged, on
the edge. Vistaru came over to her.
"We will balance
and take a break too. You just sit and ride. I hope you not get easee
dizzee."
Mavra barely had time to
wonder about that remark when she discovered its full force. The creature spun
around slowly, then started moving out across the quiet lake. It seemed to move
by this circular motion, and while the movement wasn't tremendously fast, it
was somewhat unsettling. Closing her eyes helped a little, but her inner-ear
balance still conveyed the motion. She began feeling a little nauseated. After
an hour or so she was simultaneously wishing she were dead and afraid she was
dying. She was very seasick.
Dawn broke after what
seemed like an eternity. She continued gagging occasionally and watched the two
hypnoed people, whom by this time she envied, imitate her. Vistaru walked
calmly around to her.
"You are steel
sick?" she asked needlessly.
"You better believe
it!" was all Mavra Chang could manage.
The Lata radiated
concern. "Not worree much more. We are almos' t'ere."
By this point Mavra
didn't care if they ever got "t'ere," wherever "t'ere" was,
but she managed to look around her for the first time.
They were no longer
alone.
All over, by the
thousands, other flowers were moving, spinning, dancing in a great ballet on
the waters. They created myriad colors and color combinations, graceful and
particularly resplendent now that they opened to the brilliant rays of the sun.
In other circumstances, Mavra might even have enjoyed the show.
The Krommian they rode
was slowing now, to her considerable relief. It, too, had opened over them,
forming a curtain of brilliant browns and oranges. The great stalks, she
realized, were eyes—long, oval, curious brown eyes with black pupils that
looked so strange it was as if a cartoonist had drawn them on. They were
independent of one another and sometimes looked in different directions. Of the
core, the "head" of the creature, little could be seen. A pulpy
bright-yellow mass, it appeared, more like thick straight hair than the center
of a flower. The spinning had slowed enough now that she actually managed to
wonder if these creatures were really plants or some sort of exotic animal.
The creature finally
stopped spinning entirely and drifted slowly toward something. This didn't stop
the rest of the world from spinning, but it helped a great deal. They had
traveled a great distance, that was for certain. Whatever means of locomotion
these—people?—used, it shot them in the direction they wanted to go at many
times their rate of spin.
Mavra crawled around
slightly, making sure that her imitators wouldn't fall off doing the same, and
looked in the direction they were drifting. She could see an island—a tall but
not very large rock outcrop in the middle of the sea. There appeared to be an
artificial cave of some sort in the face, jet-black and without perspective.
She suddenly realized it
was a black hexagon.
Vistaru came around.
"We dock up close to the Zone Gate," she said enigmatically.
"You most tell the othars to go in the Gate." She pointed to the
rapidly approaching blackness.
"Not me?" she
asked.
The pixie shook her
head. "No, not now. Latar. The Krommeen ambassadar say no to you for
now."
Mavra nodded toward the
huge cave or hole or whatever it was—it looked curiously two-dimensional.
"That thing will help my friends?"
Vistaru nodded. "It
is a gate. It weel tak' t'em to Zone. T'ey weel be put through the Well of
Souls. T'ey will become people of t'is planet, like me."
Mavra considered this.
"You mean—it'll change them into Lata?"
The creature shrugged.
"Maybee. If not Lata, sometheeng. No more sponge. Memory back, all
bettar."
Mavra wasn't quite ready
to accept that, but she had to act as if it were true. It was certain she couldn't
help them.
Seeing Mavra's doubt,
and realizing it came from ignorance of the Well World and its principles,
Vistaru said, "Evereebodee who come from othar world t'ey go t'ru the
Well. Come out all changed. Even me. I once as you. Went t'ru Well, woke up as
a Lata."
Mavra almost believed
her now. It explained why the creature knew her language. But that brought up
another question.
"Why not me, too,
then?" she asked.
Vistaru shrugged.
"Ordars. T'ey say you are not Mavra Chang. T'ey say you some sort of bad
person."
Mavra opened her mouth
in surprise, then closed it again. "That's ridiculous!" she
exclaimed. "Why would they—whoever they are—think something like
that?"
Vistaru shrugged.
"T'ey say t'ey already met Mavra Chang, and Reenard, and Neekee. T'ey say
you are fakars."
Mavra started to
respond, then thought better of it and sat down. She was mad as hell. It was
the crowning touch to her being on this crazy world in the first place.
Somebody was going to
pay for this.
"They certainly look
like the same people," Vardia said in some amazement.
Serge Ortega nodded,
looking at the two nearly comatose people lying on the floor in front of him.
"That they do. Doctor?"
They were in the Zone
clinic, and Dr. Muhar, the Ambreza who looked like a giant beaver, was examining
Renard and Nikki Zinder.
"I wish I knew what
kind of drug they'd been administered," the doctor said. "I've never
seen anything quite like it. But it's brain-localized; the other infection
isn't."
Ortega's busy eyebrows
went up. "Other infection?"
The Ambreza nodded.
"Oh yes. It seems to have infested every cell of their bodies. Some sort
of enzyme, it looks like, and quite parasitic. There is evidence of tissue
breakdown everywhere, and it's continuing at a fairly steady rate. Would you
recognize this sponge if you saw it?"
The other two both shook
their heads in the negative. "We have both seen the effects of it, long
ago," Vardia told the physician, "but the pure stuff, under a
microscope, no."
Just then there was a
commotion near the door. It opened, and a creature new to the group stood
there.
It was about 150
centimeters tall, and stood on two thick but jointless tentacles. It had some
to spare—three more pairs, going up its midsection. Each seemed to have a cleft
at its end, capable of picking up something much as a mitten might—or coil
around, with the full forward part of the tentacle. It stood on the rear pair,
but needed at least four to walk toward them. Its face was broad, with
close-set, broad nose and flaring nostrils and two rounded eyes that looked
like large velvet pads of glowing amber. Its mouth had a dislocatable jaw, and
inside it was coiled, Ortega knew, a long and ropelike tongue that could be
used as a ninth prehensile organ. It had two areas on either side of its head
like saucers, and they were slightly offset from the head, yet seemed able to
open and close on joints.
But as the creature
entered the room, all else paled before the great wings, like a giant
butterfly's, along its entire back, the wings of brilliant orange and spotted
with concentric brown rings.
Both Vardia and the
Ambreza stepped back a bit at this entrance. Ortega had no such feelings,
although its grim visage was frightening, almost menacing. Neither of the
others had ever seen a Yaxa before, but Ortega had. He even knew this one. He
slithered up to the newcomer.
"Wooley!" he
boomed. "I'm very glad you could come."
The creature remained
coldly distant, but it responded, "Hello, Ortega." It looked over at
the comatose bodies of Renard and Nikki. "Are those the ones?"
Ortega nodded, all
business suddenly. "Dr. Muhar has some cell tissue under the microscope.
Can you look into it or should we project it?"
The Yaxa walked fluidly
over to the microscope, peering at the sample with one of those impossible
padlike eyes.
"It's sponge,"
the creature said. "No doubt about it." It turned its gaze back to
the two people on the beds. "How far advanced are they?"
"Five days with no
dose," Ortega told it. "What would you say?"
The Yaxa thought a
moment. "Depends on how they started out. The cell deterioration isn't far
along, but the mind goes first. If they were around average intelligence, they
should be a lot brighter than the village idiot—for about another day or two.
Then the animal-reversion stage sets in. They become great naked apes. I'd run
them through the Well as soon as possible. Now."
"I agree,"
Ortega told it. "And I appreciate your coming all this way to do
this."
"They're from the
new moon?" the Yaxa asked, its voice, even through the translator, cold,
sharp, emotionless.
Ortega nodded. "And
if they're real we got big trouble. That means we got fooled by an
earlier set of duplicates, at least one of which was the head of the sponge
syndicate and the other two of whom know the principles of operating the
Well."
For the first time the
creature showed emotion. Its voice was harsh, excited. "The head of the
sponge syndicate? And you let it slip through you like that?"
Ortega turned all six
palms up. "We didn't know. They looked just like them. How was I to
know?"
"It's true,"
Vardia put in. "They were so nice and gentle and civilized—particularly
that one," it gestured at Renard.
The Yaxa almost spit.
"Agh! Fools! Anybody without sponge that long would have shown signs! You
should have known!"
"Come on,
Wooley!" Ortega chided. "You're a fanatic, and with good reason. But,
hell, we weren't expecting this sort of thing. Everything's been more than a
little crazy around here lately."
The great butterfly's
nostrils opened, and it actually snorted. "Oh, hell. Trust you to screw
things up anyway." It turned its great head, apparently on some kind of
ball joint for a neck, and looked straight at him. "Give me the bastard's
name. He won't always be so clever. One of these days I'll get him. You know
that."
Serge Ortega nodded,
knowing that nothing could stop Wooley except death. Sooner or later, if that
man surfaced at all, it would nail him.
"Antor
Trelig," he told the Yaxa.
The creature nodded its
great, strange head as if filing the information. Then it said, "I've got
to get back home. A lot's going on. You will hear from me, though." And,
with that, it turned, not easy in the clinic's space with those great wings,
and went out the door.
"Good
heavens!" Vardia managed. "Who is that?"
Ortega smiled.
"Somebody you used to know. I'll tell you sometime. Now we have more
urgent work to do. We have to get these two through the Well, and I have to
talk to the Council."
* * *
There was no Council
chamber for the ambassadors. All communication was done through intercoms, both
for diplomatic reasons and to make it easier on everybody. There wasn't much
room for everybody, anyway.
Ortega summarized the
events to date, adding, "I've put out tracers on the first batch, and I
hope that anyone will report their whereabouts if they appear in your hex. All
Entries are to be checked out. These people are tricky as hell."
The speaker cracked to
life. "Ortega?" said a metallic, toneless voice. "This is Robert
L. Finch of The Nation."
Ortega couldn't suppress
a chuckle. "I didn't know The Nation had names," he remarked,
remembering them as communal-minded robots.
"The Nation has its
Entries, too," Finch replied. "When it is matters concerning such,
the appropriate persona is selected."
Ortega let it go.
"What's your problem, Finch?"
"The woman, Mavra
Chang. Why have you left her with the Lata? Not playing any little games again,
are you, Ortega?"
Ortega took a deep
breath. "I know she should be run through the Well, and she will be,
sooner or later. Right now she is more useful in her original form—the only
such Entry on the Well. I'll explain all in due course."
They didn't like it, but
they accepted it. Other questions followed, a torrent, mostly irrelevant. The
tone of many was the usual, "it's not my problem," and Ortega got the
impression that others were not being very straightforward. But he'd done his
duty, and that was that. The meeting ended.
Vardia, the Czillian
plant-creature, had sat in in Ortega's office. There wasn't anything its people
needed to know that they didn't already.
Except one.
"What about that
Chang woman, Ortega?" Vardia asked. "What's the real reason
you're keeping her under wraps."
He smiled. "Not under
wraps, my dear Vardia. All six hundred thirty-seven races with Zone embassies
know she's with the Lata. She's bait—a recognizable object that could smoke out
our quarries."
"And if they don't
take the bait?" Vardia prodded. "The fact that she's a fully
qualified space pilot still in a form that would be best for operating a
spaceship wouldn't have anything to do with your thinking, would it?"
Ortega leaned back
comfortably on his long coiled body. "Now isn't that an interesting idea!"
he responded sarcastically. "Thanks for the suggestion!"
If there was a sincere,
honest, or straightforward bone in Serge Ortega's massive body, nobody had
found it yet.
Vardia decided to change
the subject. "Do you think they'll do it—report the Entries, that
is?"
Ortega's expression grew
grim. "A few might. Lata, Krommians, Dillians, Czillians, and the like.
Most won't. They'll either try to bury them—which would be a mistake on their
part they'll live to regret, I suspect—or they'll go along with them. Team up
any of them with an ambitious, greedy government, and you've got the nucleus of
that war I spoke about. An alliance and a pilot to fly the ship. Even a
scientist who might be able to help put the pieces back together." He
shifted slightly, turned to face the Czillian square on, and said: "And as
for Mavra Chang—if we've got her, we have some control. If we put her through
the Well, they've got her. No fuel for the fire yet, my dear. It's going
to get hot as hell all by itself without the likes of you and me pouring oil on
it."
He awoke and opened his
eyes. For a moment, he was confused, disoriented. Things didn't quite look
right, and it took him half a minute to remember what had happened and what was
supposed to happen.
He had walked into that
blackness in the wall, and there had been an odd sensation, like being wrapped
in someone's embrace—warm, probing, emotional; a thing he had never felt
before. A drifting, dreaming sleep, except that he couldn't remember the
dreams—only the fact that most, perhaps all, had been about himself.
I'm supposed to
be something else, he remembered. Changed into one of those weird
creatures, like the snake-man or the plant-thing. It didn't bother him,
really, that he was to become something else; what he had become, however,
would shape his plans for the future.
There was something
strange about his vision, but it took him a little thinking to realize what it
was. For one thing, depth perception had increased dramatically; everything
stood out in sharp relief, and he had the strong feeling that he knew to the
tenth of a millimeter how far one thing was from him and from anything else.
Colors also seemed brighter, sharper; contrasts, both between slightly
different shades of the same color and between light and dark, were markedly
improved. But, no, that really wasn't what mattered, either.
Suddenly he had it. I'm
seeing two images! he thought. There was almost an eighty-degree panorama on
both sides; peripherally, he could almost see in back of him. But straight
ahead there was a blank spot. Not a line or a divider; it was simply that what
was absolutely dead ahead was barely out of his range of vision. His mind had
to be forced to recognize the lapse, or he wasn't conscious of it.
There was movement to
his right, and reflexively his right eye shifted a little to catch what it was.
A large insect of some kind—very large, the size of a man's fist—buzzed
overhead like some small bird. It took him a little more time to realize that
he'd moved the right eye independent of the left.
He put both eyes as far
forward as possible. He seemed to have a snout of some kind; his mouth was
large and protrusive. He was conscious that he was resting comfortably, almost
naturally, on all fours, and he raised his hand up to his right eye to see it.
It was an odd hand, both
strangely human and yet not. Four very long webbed fingers and an opposable
thumb, each terminating in what appeared to be a small suckerlike tip where the
fingerprint would be. Looking carefully, he saw that there was a print pattern
inside the sucker. His hand and arm were a deep pea-green in color, with brown
and black spots here and there. The skin looked tough and leathery, like the
skin of a snake or other reptile.
That's what I must be,
he decided. A reptile of some sort. The landscape was certainly right for it:
jungle-like, with lush undergrowth and tall trees that almost hid the sun. What
looked for all the world like a gravel-topped road cut through the dense
vegetation. It was a road, and very well maintained, too. In thick brush
like this, one would have to have road crews working constantly every hundred
kilometers or so to keep the natural foliage back from the cleared area.
He had just decided to
go over to the road and follow it to whatever passed for civilization when
another of those large insects came by, perhaps two meters or more in front of
him. Almost without thinking, his mouth opened and a tremendously long tongue,
like a controllable ribbon, shot out, struck the insect, and wrapped itself
around the thing. Then it was retracted into his mouth, and he chewed and
swallowed it. It didn't have much taste, but the insect felt solid and went
down well, and it helped the hungry ache inside him. He reflected curiously on
his own reactions, or lack of them. It was a natural, normal thing to do, and
it had been done automatically. The concept of eating a live insect didn't even
bother him that much.
The Well World changes
you, all right, in many ways, he thought. And yet—he was still Antor Trelig,
inside. He remembered all that had transpired and regretted none of it—except
flying too low over the Well World. Even that might be turned to ultimate
advantage, he told himself confidently. If such power could be harnessed in the
service of those best able to use it, ones like himself, it mattered not what
form he was in or what he ate for breakfast. If the Well World had taught him
nothing else, it taught him that everything was transitory.
I wonder how I walk? he
mused, chuckling at the absurdity of the question. Well, the eating had taken
care of itself, probably that would, too.
He eyed the road and
started forward. Much to his surprise, his legs gave a great kick and he was to
it, unerringly, in two large hops—coming down after the first one in a smooth,
fluid motion that already had him set for the next leap, and coming to rest in
the loose gravel with no rolling, imbalance, or discomfort. It was fun,
really—like flying, almost.
He tried just walking,
and found that, if he used all fours, he could manage it with some effort, like
a waddle. Jumping, or hopping, was the normal mode of locomotion for this race;
walking was for the local stuff too short for a hop.
He looked both ways. One
direction was as good as the other, he decided; both ends of the path
disappeared into the thick growth. He picked one and started off. It didn't
take long to come upon some others. He saw them from a great distance off, once
he realized that a lot of the rustling he'd heard in the upper trees wasn't
just birds and insects.
Ahead was a grove of
giant trees almost set off from the rest of the forest, a small lake to one
side. There were houses in those trees—intricate structures woven between the
branches out of some straw or bamboolike material that almost certainly grew in
the marshes.
One of the creatures
appeared in the lower doorway of one of the houses, looked around for a moment,
then stepped out and walked down the almost ninety-degree angle of the trunk to
the ground! Trelig understood now what those suction cups were for. Very handy.
The creature resembled
nothing so much as a great giant frog, its legs incredibly long when stretched
out for walking, a light and smooth greenish-brown texture from the lower jaw
down to the crotch, the same rough spotted green elsewhere.
The creature went up to
a large wooden box set on a stake near the road, sat up on its powerful hind
legs, lifted the lid, and looked inside. Nodding to itself, it reached in and
picked out several large brown envelopes. Trelig realized with some surprise
that the thing was a mailbox.
He approached slowly,
not wanting either to alarm the creature or to seem out of place. It shifted an
eye in his direction—its head was almost too integral a part of the body to
allow flexible movement, but the eyes made up for it—and nodded politely to
him. He sensed that there was anger in the creature's expression, but not
directed at him.
Trelig remembered that
Ortega had said that the Well would provide the language. He decided just to
talk normally.
"Good day,
sir!" the new frog said to the long-time resident. "A nice day, isn't
it?"
The other snorted
contemptuously. "You must work for the government to say something like
that," he growled in a deep bass that was not unpleasant but that seemed
to originate from deep in the chest cavity. The creature held up one of the
envelopes. "Tax bills! Always tax bills!" he almost shouted. "I
don't know how the sons of bitches expect an honest man to make a living these
days." The phrase wasn't really "sons of bitches," but some
local equivalent, but that's how Trelig's mind understood it.
He nodded slightly in
sympathy. "No, I don't work for the government," he replied,
"although I might some day. But I understand and sympathize with your
problems."
That statement seemed to
satisfy the other, who opened another envelope, pulling out a long yellow sheet
of paper. He glanced at it, then balled it up in disgust.
"Hmph! First they
want your life's blood, then they ask you to do them favors!" he
snorted.
Trelig frowned.
"Huh?" was all he could manage.
The frog-man tossed the
rolled up paper slightly in his hand, like a ball. "Report any Entries
that you might meet to the local police at once," he spat. "What the
hell do I pay all these taxes for, anyway? So I can do their jobs while they
hunch on their fat asses eating imported sweetmeats bought with my money?"
Trelig took the
opportunity to glance at the tax bill. He couldn't read it, couldn't make any
sense at all out of the crazy and illogical nonpatterns there. Obviously
reading was not considered a necessary skill by the Well computer.
"You ain't seen no
Entries, have you?" the man asked, not a little trace of sarcasm in his
voice. "Maybe we'll form a search party. Go out yelling, 'Here, Entry!
Nice Entry!' "
Trelig liked him. If he
were representative of this hex's people, he would not find life unbearable.
"No," he
chuckled. "I haven't seen any Entries. Have you? Ever, I mean?"
The grouch shook his
head slightly as a negative. "Nope. And never will, either. Met one, once,
a long time ago. Big, nasty-looking birdlike reptile from Cebu. Kind of a local
celebrity for a while. Big deal."
Trelig was relieved to
hear that Entries weren't boiled in oil or something, but the official notice
that the man had received said that this was no ordinary case. Somehow, he
decided, they were on to him. At least, he had to act that way. And he wanted
to check out the lay of this new land before revealing himself, if he could. It
might be easier than he'd thought, considering how automatically he was acting
and how readily this man had accepted him. He hoped so.
"Been traveling
far?" the man asked him.
Trelig nodded. Farther
than this creature could imagine.
"Headin' for Druhon
for the government tests, I'll bet," the frog-man guessed.
"Yes, you guessed
it exactly," Trelig replied. "I've thought of nothing else
since"—he started to say "since I got here" but caught
himself—"I was very small," he finished. "At least it'll give me
a chance to see the government in action, no matter what."
That started the other
off again. "The government inaction is what you'll see, but that's the
future for you. Shoulda done it myself when I was young. But, no, I had to get
into farming. Free and independent, I said. No bosses." He let out an
angry, snakelike hiss. "So you wind up being run by the government, bossed
by the government, taxes and regulations, regulations and taxes. Some
freedom!"
Trelig clucked
sympathetically. "I understand you perfectly." He looked around, as
if sensing time was pressing and he had an appointment. "Well, it was nice
talking to you, and I wish you better luck and much prosperity in the future,
but I must be getting on."
The man seemed to
appreciate the nice comments. "Been a pleasure, really. Sure you won't
come in for a drink of good beer? It's only an hour or two more to
Druhon."
That was good news.
His cup was running over today. "Thank you, no," he replied. "I
must be in the city. But I'll remember you, sir, when I'm rich and
powerful."
"You do that,
sonny," the other chuckled. Trelig went on.
He wondered as he continued
what the old man had farmed; there was no sign of fields or cultivation of any
kind. Best not to ask and appear too ignorant, particularly with a wanted
poster out.
There was also the
matter of money. He saw a number of the creatures as he went on, living
together in groups or singly, on the ground, in trees, and even some floating
dwellings in the countless lakes and marshes. All wore no clothing of any kind,
and he wondered where you'd put money if you had it. He worried that there was
some sort of identity system that would unmask him. But, no, he told himself,
technology was obviously primitive here. There were torch stands all over, but
not a sign of a powered light or device. Besides, if they had such a system
they wouldn't bother sending out all those wanted circulars on him.
More confident and
proficient now, he stopped and talked to several others along the way. They
were mostly plain, simple creatures, close to the soil. Females were slightly
smaller and had smoother top skin than the males, their voices slightly higher
and smoother, but they were otherwise identical. He was a male; their comments
told him that, even without the skin-texture difference, he was a young one at
that. That made the first few days easier. He was expected to be curious and
not expected to know anything.
But he learned. A casual
reference told him that the country, the hex, was called Makiem, as were the
people. It was a common, although not universal, practice on the Well World to
have the race name and place name coincide. He learned, too, that it was a
hereditary monarchy—which was bad. But the hex was administered by a large
corps of civil servants, chosen by merit of brilliance and aptitude through a
massive battery of tests, from those of every class and walk of society—which
was good. That meant that the king of Makiem would listen to and take seriously
advice from anyone he considered qualified, thus decisions were almost
certainly made not by the royal family but by an individual or council who
would be the best, greediest, most ambitious and able people in the country.
His kind of people.
Druhon, the capital
city, was a surprise. First, it was huge—a great city, really, carved out of
the jungle and sitting on a series of low hills that raised it slightly above
the swamp. There was a broad, clear lake off to the west, and it was crowded
with swimmers. Trelig had been feeling slightly itchy and uncomfortable; now he
guessed the reason. Although these were land people, they stayed very close to
the sea that gave them birth, and they had to return to it occasionally to wet
down their skins. Once a day, probably, although in all likelihood a washdown
with a hose would do as well.
Another surprise was the
buildings themselves. Great castles and huge buildings of stone showing
superior masonry skills, and homes and businesses built of good handmade brick
mortared so well that nothing would get through them. Heavy wooden doors also
showed great craftsmanship, and figures of brass and iron on gates, fences, and
doors were evidence of a fine artistic skill. Considering that this was
obviously a nontechnological hex, these people had developed a really
surprising, modern culture. His estimation of them, and his optimism, went up
accordingly.
There was still the
problem of money. He walked the streets filled with stalls outside the places
of business, with great frog businessmen and women hawking their wares and
calling and cajoling customers. And money they did have and did carry. Watching
the Makiem buying at the stalls, he saw that they carried everything they
needed or used in their mouths—the lower jaw area was flexible, roomy, and,
when he tested it with his own hand, had a thin, rigid flap controlled by a
small muscle in the back of the throat. Evolution had obviously placed it there
to store food for long periods. Civilization had given rise to more practical
and cosmopolitan uses. The flap on the outside contained enough folded skin
that one might not notice it, but occasionally people went by who looked like
they had goiters. Trelig finally understood that it wasn't because of
physiological differences but because they had a lot to carry.
The sights and smells of
the city also excited him. They were strange smells, odors that his former self
perhaps would have found foul or offensive, but they smelled wondrous and sweet
and new to him now.
And there were the
tattoos, mysterious symbols drawn by some device on the underbelly. Not
everybody had them—most of the farmers he had met didn't—but a lot of people
here did. They were symbols of authority, he surmised. Policemen, perhaps, and
government officials. Somehow he'd have to find out what all those things
meant.
The police, who were his
first worry, were easiest to identify. He didn't know just how many people
lived in this city, but it was easily a quarter-million, most residing in
four-storey brick apartments entered by walking up the walls. That created
pedestrian traffic jams. He saw carts, lots of them, moving goods from one
place to another, pulled by giant insects, larger than a Makiem, that looked a
lot like walking grasshoppers. All this meant traffic control, and so there
were traffic cops.
He checked out several,
looking particularly at the big symbol on their chests—a sort of double wheel
with two diagonal crossbars. To be safe, he decided to act as if a double wheel
with any crossbars was a cop.
The city's size and
complexity gave him no small measure of anonymity; he was just one of the
crowd. It suited him for a while, although shelter would have to be attended
to, and sooner or later he'd have to face the problem of money and food—there
were no big, fat insects or groves around here. He'd never stolen anything
small, but it shouldn't be all that hard.
He checked out the
massive stone buildings with the towers and the flags. Government buildings
without a doubt, the largest of which, with a tremendous amount of impressive
brass grillwork and high iron spiked gates to snare the unwary intruder, was
obviously the royal palace. At the gate there were guards armed with
vicious-looking crossbows and pikes, and an impossibly complex symbol on their
chests matched the ones wrought in iron at regular intervals in the fence.
The royal symbol,
obviously. He was learning fast.
The itching was getting
to him. His skin felt dry and uncomfortable, almost as if it was ready to peel
off. He decided to head down to the big lake. It was a beautiful setting,
particularly against the waning sun. A sparkling lake, fresh and surprisingly
clean considering the nearby population, dotted with myriad islands and flanked
by small but imposing granite mountains.
The lake was somewhat
crowded, but not enough to cause real problems. He slipped into the water with
ease, and found it surprisingly cold. The chill lasted for only a few moments,
however, and then, somehow, the water temperature seemed to rise until it was
just perfect. Cold-blooded, he decided. It wasn't the water temperature that
had risen, but his body temperature that had lowered to match the water.
Swimming was as easy as
leaping had been. His rear legs, large and thickly webbed, propelled him, and
he floated naturally across the top of the lake. This, however, didn't get rid
of the itch on his back, and when he got out a ways he angled downward.
A strange thing happened
suddenly. A membrane came down over his eyes, transparent as glass, yet totally
protective. And too, his vision seemed to alter, becoming less depth- and
color-sensitive but tremendously respondent to changes in light and dark. His
nose also seemed to close off by internal flaps, but he experienced no
discomfort from not breathing. He wondered how long he could stay under; quite
some time, he thought, and decided to test it.
The longer he stayed
down, the less he seemed to mind it. He had the uncanny sensation that he was
breathing, slightly and shallowly, although there were no bubbles. No gills,
either. He finally decided that something in his skin could absorb a certain
amount of oxygen from the water. It was not, as he found out with time, enough
for him to live underwater, but it was sufficient for him to stay down at least
half an hour, perhaps much longer, before coming up for air.
He came up near one of
the islands and looked around. The water felt soothing and comfortable. Lazily,
he turned and looked back at the hilly city. It was getting dark, and lights
were coming on—and not just torchlights, either, although there were plenty of
those. No, those strange glass streetlights he'd seen were what he guessed they
might be—gas lamps. These people were at the peak of their technological
limits.
The great palace, on the
highest bill, was illuminated by torches and multicolored gas lamps almost
completely. It had a fairy-tale look to it, an air of unreality that, he
suspected, was deliberate.
Reluctantly, he headed
back toward shore. Hunger was starting to creep into him, and there was much to
do. He made shore swiftly, experiencing the slight shock of getting out of the
water into what felt, curiously, like almost oppressively hot, thick air. His
body adjusted to it in moments, though, and he went on.
He first looked for the
inevitable low-dive district common to all big cities, but, after much
searching, he had to admit defeat. A lot of neighborhood bars, with big frogs
reclining on form-fitting cushions so they almost sat up like humans, gulping
beers and other spirits from enormously wide glasses with narrow stems. The
glasses had one gentle flat side, and you drank by putting it to your mouth and
raising the glass while throwing your head slightly back.
No dives, though.
What was missing, he
decided, was sex. They just didn't seem to engage in it or be motivated by it.
No romantic couples, no advances—lots of friendly groups, mixed and not, but
nothing at all sexual. Even he, a mature and young Makiem, had felt nothing
particularly inside him when near any of the females. Only the Comworlds where
cloning was the norm and everyone was an identical neuter approached the
sexlessness of this society, yet there were clearly two distinct sexes. It was
a puzzle for later.
In his wanderings, he
found that he had waited too long. The streets were brightly lit; so were the
apartments, with some people relaxing on the street outside, others in their
open doorways or, from the sounds, on the roofs. There were regular beat
patrolmen, too.
He decided to head
toward the outskirts of the city, the direction from which he'd come. Maybe
something would present itself; if it didn't, well, he could always go back to
that glade where he woke up and chance that, if, as was likely, it was
somebody's property, he could use it as a base temporarily.
* * *
The female Makiem at
first seemed almost heaven-sent. She was obviously well-off, perhaps a farmer
just in the city for the evening. No tattoo. And young and very small.
And drunk out of her
mind.
She couldn't hop; she
could barely crawl, mumbling something to herself or perhaps singing although
so badly and distorted that it sounded like the rumbling and croaking it was
even to Trelig. She tried one last hop, fell flat on her face, and rolled over into
a ditch. A nice, dark drainage ditch.
"Oh, shit!" he
heard her exclaim loudly. Then, a few seconds later, he heard tremendous
snoring. She had passed out in the culvert.
He bounded over to her.
His night vision was about the same as it had been as a human, and so, though
it was dark and shadowy—and mucky—it wasn't a helpless situation.
She was lying on her
back, big bow-legs outstretched. He took a moment to study her. He'd
discovered, by necessity and experience, how a Makiem went to the bathroom and where,
but by no stretch of the imagination could that apparatus be sexual. There
wasn't much of a clue with her, either. A fine little puzzle, he thought
sardonically. I know most of what it's like to be a Makiem except the facts of
life. He turned to other, more pressing matters. He carefully felt her
jaw-pouch; it definitely had something in it, perhaps a moneybag. He hesitated
an instant, then shook her. She didn't wake up, didn't even react. He shook her
harder. Still nothing.
Satisfied that she was
dead to the world, he leaned over and tried to pry her mouth open.
And tried. And tried.
It was shut as tightly
as if it were welded in place.
He was about to give up
when she gave a great snore, and the mouth opened a bit as she turned slightly
on her side. Carefully, he reached inside—and felt a smooth, bone-hard plate
that fit so exactly he couldn't even get a grip on it. And then the mouth shut.
She didn't wake up, it just shut, right on his hand. He tried to pull it free,
and couldn't. He spent the better part of half an hour trying to get his hand
out. She turned more, almost pulling him on top of her, but he couldn't remove
that hand.
He was almost in a
panic, particularly when her ribbonlike tongue came over to explore the object.
He felt its stickiness and felt it wrap around his hand, wondering what he
could do. There were no teeth in the front part of the jaw, but there were
three rows not far back. If the tongue pulled his hand just a little bit more .
. . ! Then, mercifully, the tongue recoiled and her mouth opened. She let out a
nasty hiss and turned some more. He almost fell backward into the ditch and
cursed softly to himself, nursing his hand, which was now feeling bruised. She
must not have liked the taste, he decided with thanks. He sighed, knowing now
that personal robbery here, unless it was armed robbery, was pretty near
impossible.
He thought things over.
He could drift for a while, make do, but only as a beggar and a fugitive. Force
was out; he didn't know how to fight as a Makiem, and they'd probably beat the
shit out of him. Furthermore, he would not be able to enter Makiem society at
his own pleasure.
The only thing left to
do was to turn himself in.
* * *
The guards looked bored.
They sat there, motionless except for an occasional blink, as only reptiles
could—but they were very much awake. Eyes were on him as he approached, and the
crossbows were armed and cocked in their hands. Still, they looked like nothing
so much as statues.
He marched up to one.
"Pardon me, sir, but is this the royal palace?" he asked pleasantly.
He had no desire to fall into the hands of local police or lower-level
bureaucrats.
The guard stood still,
but his eyes gave the newcomer a once-over that could almost be felt. The
guard's mouth didn't move, showing once again that the sound-producing
apparatus was elsewhere, but he said, "Go away, farmboy. No visitors
except on Shrivedays."
"It is the
palace, though?" he persisted.
"Naw, it's the
headquarters of the limbush-producers union," the guard responded
sarcastically. "Now, go away before you get hurt."
Trelig decided on
another tack. He took a deep breath. "Are you still looking for any
Entries like the circulars said?" he asked casually.
The guard's eyes lit up
with renewed interest. "You know of an Entry in Makiem?" The question
was sharp, businesslike, but interested.
"I do," Trelig
told him. "Who do I talk to about it?"
"Me," the
guard replied. "If I like what you say, I'll pass it on."
Like fun you would,
Trelig thought. Only if there was something in it for you. "All right
then," he said flatly, resigned. "If you're not interested then . .
." He turned to leave.
"Hold it!"
called a different voice, perhaps the other guard. The tone was commanding, and
Trelig froze, smiling inwardly.
"If somebody else
gets it, and it is an Entry, it'll be our skins," the new voice
pointed out. "Better we should take him to the old man."
"Oh, all
right," grumbled the first. "I'll do it. But what's in it for
us?"
"I know what we're
in for if he's okay and we blow it," the other responded. "Go
on."
Trelig turned back
around. "Come on, you. Follow me," the first guard mumbled
resignedly, and came to life, turning and slow-hopping with short motions up
the brick-paved walkway. Trelig followed, feeling better. If, as Ortega had
said, all the races of this universe—and this world—including humanity had
sprung from a single source, all the races so created would have certain things
in common reflecting their creators. Human nature was Antor Trelig's life and
profession, and it didn't matter to him what form that human took.
They entered a side door
of the palace, and went into a gas-lit room that was peculiar indeed. A guard
was on duty, and nodded slightly to his leader as they entered.
Two walls of the room
held a great many strange-looking similar devices. There was a top part that
resembled giant padded headphones, and a rubbery suction-cup device with a hole
in the center underneath. They were on spring-loaded coils of tubing of the
same material. Above each of the dozens of such devices was a plaque with
something in that crazy writing.
Trelig watched curiously
as the guard took the headphones and placed them over his head, just behind the
jaw joints where the tiny ear openings were. Then the suction cup was attached
almost to the center of the tattooed insignia on its chest. The guard expanded
his chest, letting go an extremely loud and annoying rumble.
Trelig understood the
thing now. It transmitted direct sound to various points in the palace, the
hollow tube itself moving the air. He suspected the voices sounded hollow,
tinny, and terribly far away, but it worked. A primitive, nontechnological
telephone.
Nontechnological, hell!
he corrected himself. These people were tremendously advanced technologically.
Everything that could work they had created, ingeniously.
"Yes, sir,"
the guard literally shouted, so loud that Trelig wished he had ear flaps to
match the nose ones. "Says he knows of an Entry, yes, sir." Pause.
"No, nothing odd." Pause. "Personally, sir? But—" Pause.
"All right, sir. Right away," the guard completed the call, detached
the suction cup, which coiled back into its built-in holder, and replaced the
headphones on their rack. He turned to Trelig.
"Come on,
you," he grumbled. He followed the guard out.
There were no stairs or
ramps, and Trelig had a bad time when they reached a high opening, four walls
of bare, smooth stone, obviously a junction for the hallways on the
multistoried castle, and the guard simply started walking up the wall.
Trelig hesitated, then
decided, hell, why not? If it doesn't work I think I can survive the fall. What
he had to do, he saw from the guard, was press his finger-cups solidly on the
stone, pull himself up, then use leg-cups on the webbed hind feet to support
him while he reached farther up. If he managed it in a smooth series of
motions, like climbing a ladder, it would be effortless, but doing so proved
awkward and slow for Antor Trelig. He was conscious of the guards' stares and
chuckles in the corridor below, and heard the guard above growl, "Come on,
you! Can't keep the old man waiting!"
He made it, with
difficulty, to the third story, thankful that they didn't have to go any
farther. That took some getting used to. Getting down, looking down the
whole way, would be worse. He put the thought out of his mind.
They passed by great
rooms, some sumptuously furnished with silks and fancy rugs and woven
tapestries. A few doors were closed, but, no matter what, the place reeked of
opulence. There was a lot of fancy metal art, too, and most of it wasn't brass
or iron, either—it was solid gold, often encrusted with jewels of amazing proportions.
Finally they entered
what had to be some sort of reception hall. It was rectangular, but too small
to be the king's regular place. The ceiling was still a good ten meters high,
and the walls were draped with maroon and gold velvet curtains. There was a
thick rug of some soft fur from the door sill to every corner of the room, and
a slightly raised dais near the far wall with the most comfortable-looking of
those strange cushion-chairs he'd ever seen. He looked around, mentally betting
himself that there was another entrance somewhere, probably just behind that
dais.
He was right. The
curtains behind the chair moved, and an elderly Makiem walked in on all fours,
got up on the dais, and turned, settling back onto the broad cushion-chair. The
effect was remarkably human, as if a man, leaning about forty-five degrees
forward in a chair were sitting there. The old man even crossed his huge legs a
little, and rested his arms on two small wooden adjustable rails.
The old one looked at
the newcomer critically, then looked over at the guard. "That will be all,
Zubir. I'll call you if I need you." The guard bent its head slightly and
withdrew, closing the big wooden door behind him.
The old man turned back
to Trelig. "You know the whereabouts of an Entry?" he asked, his
voice crackling with energy. His skin was blotched and old and bloated, but
this was a very lively individual, Trelig decided.
"I do, sir,"
Trelig responded carefully. "He has sent me here to find out what is in
store for him before he turns himself in."
The old man chuckled.
"Insolent, too. I like that." He suddenly leaned farther forward and
pointed. "You're the Entry and you know it!" he snapped, then his
tone softened again, became friendlier. "You are a terrible wall-climber,
although a smooth liar. I'll give you that. Now, come! Who are you
really?"
Trelig considered his
answer. He could be any one of several people, and perhaps be the better for
it. Either Zinder was out—he was too mature to be the daughter and not versed
well enough in technology to be the father. The same for Ben Yulin, and that
wouldn't be much of an improvement, anyway. Renard or Mavra Chang? The former
wouldn't hold up—too slick at the start to pretend to be a guard now; this old
guy was no fool—and Mavra Chang would be conspicuous if alive. So the best he
could do was try and get into their good graces by the truth.
He imitated the guard by
flexing his elbows so that his body lowered to the floor, then came back up
again. "Antor Trelig, at your service, sir," he said. "And who
might I have the honor of talking to?"
The old man smiled
slightly. A Makiem smile was far different from a human one, but Trelig
recognized it. "Consider all the angles before you act, don't you,
Trelig?" he said offhandedly. "I could see all the possible lies
going through your head before the truth came out. As to who I am, I am
Soncoro, Minister of Agriculture."
Trelig barely suppressed
a chuckle. "And the man who really makes all the decisions around
here," he stated flatly.
Soncoro liked that.
"And what brings you to that conclusion?"
"Because the guard
sent me to the minister of agriculture, not the prime minister, king, or even
state security. You were his first and only choice. Those types know who's
who."
Soncoro nodded. "I
think I'm going to like you, Trelig. We're two of a kind. I like you—and I'll
never trust you. You understand that. Just as you wouldn't trust me, in
reversed circumstances."
Trelig did understand.
"I'm much too new to be a threat, Soncoro. Let's say a partnership until then."
The old man considered
that. "Quite so. You understand what you have that we want, don't you? And
why we are delighted and relieved that you are who you are?"
"Because I can
pilot a spaceship," the former syndicate boss replied easily. "And
because I'm able to open up everything on New Pompeii." Trelig felt vastly
relieved. He had been afraid that he would wind up in a water hex, or, if not
that, in a hex whose government had neither designs on New Pompeii nor people
like Soncoro. But then, he reflected, if we have a common beginning, the odds
were always in my favor.
Trelig looked at the old
man. "You're going after the one in the North?"
Soncoro shook his head.
"No, that would involve almost insuperable obstacles. We looked at it, of
course. You went down a good ways in, in a nontech hex, so we would not only
have to get to it, and no Southerner has ever been into the North, we would
somehow have to move it close to two hundred kilometers to make it flyable,
then set it straight up so it would be well away before the Well could snare
it. And—this is equally important—to do it one would have to pass through a
number of hexes with life so alien one couldn't understand it, control it, or
trust it; and in some atmospheres that are lethal. No, I'm afraid we leave your
ship to the Uchjin."
"But the other ship
isn't in one piece!" Trelig objected. "It was my own ship. It would
break up on the way in. The nine modules would be spread over half the Well
World!"
"They are,"
Soncoro admitted. "But, tell me, would you need all the modules to
make it fly again? Suppose you had a fabricating plant capable of building an
airtight central body? And a couple of good electrical engineers to help do it
right? What would you need then?"
Trelig was genuinely
amazed. "With all that—probably the power plant and one or two modules to
make certain you fabricated the new parts correctly. And the bridge, of
course."
"Suppose you had
the power plant and modules, but not the bridge?" Soncoro prompted.
"Could it be done?"
Trelig thought about it.
"Not impossible, but a hell of a lot more difficult. The computer guidance
is there."
The old man nodded
again. "But we have access to pretty good computers here. If I understand
it, it's not the machine itself, it's just its abilities, programs, memory, and
action time."
"And interface with
the power plant," Trelig added.
"Not
insolvable," Soncoro pronounced. He smiled wickedly. "Welcome to the
family."
"But where are you
going to get all this?" Trelig protested. "I would guess that if you
could have a machine shop and computers here, you'd have them."
"Good point,"
Soncoro agreed. "But we won't be alone. What would you say if I told you
that four the modules were within six hexes of this one, and the power plant
was seven hexes away? And that we had allies—a semitech hex and a high-tech
hex, with complementing abilities?"
Trelig was intrigued.
"But you're talking about a war!" he objected. "I thought war was
impossible here!"
"For conquest,
yes," the old man admitted. "But not for limited objectives. Dhala
proved that you couldn't hold ground for any length of time here. But we
need only take it, take it long enough to get what we want, and move on. Some of
the hexes are simple anyway. They will yield to us or just ignore us. Only a
couple of them will be problems."
Trelig considered this,
getting excited now. This development was beyond his wildest dreams! "But
the ship should have come in at a definite angle. If five are attainable, then
all of them should be. Why limit it?"
"We're not the only
ones in the game," the old Makiem told him. "Others are moving now.
Perhaps we can deal later, but the power plant is the one thing completely
beyond our ability to construct. We have lots of spacefarers, but they are
technicians. You know how to pilot—but do you know how to build a ship?"
"No," he
admitted.
"We haven't had a
Type 41 pilot, though, in a very long time. None we can get our hands on. I
assume that progress has made much of their skill obsolete anyway.
Correct?"
"Probably,"
Trelig told him. "The power plants and therefore the knowledge of what to
tell the computers to do, have changed radically just in my time.
"Then it's safe to
say that only you, this associate, Yulin, and the woman, Mavra Chang, could
possibly pilot the ship properly?"
Trelig nodded honestly,
although he was aware of how much that increased his value. "If there are
no human pilots here from as recent as a century, I'd say, almost definitely."
Soncoro seemed
tremendously pleased. He leaned forward again. "This fellow Yulin. Is he
trustworthy?"
Trelig grinned. "As
trustworthy as I am."
Soncoro hissed. "As
bad as that. That means there's little chance of a deal there, then, unless we
get the power plant."
"You know where he
is?" Trelig asked, amazed.
"He is a Dasheen,
and a male, damn it all! That will give him power there. The Yaxa are already
well along with their own plans, perhaps a bit ahead of us, and he will
naturally ally with them if he can. So, we go and as quickly as possible.
Whoever owns the power plant owns it all."
"Tell me two
things," Trelig said persistently.
"Go ahead,"
the old man agreed.
"First, what would
have happened if I hadn't materialized here as a Makiem? You're talking as if
you were going to war anyway, it was all set up. Did you know?"
"Of course
not!" responded the secret ruler of Makiem. "The way things worked
out only simplifies matters. We would have seized the modules anyway and waited
for one of you to come to us. You would have had to." His logic was
unassailable. "Now, what's the other thing?"
"How do you have
sex in this place?" he asked.
Soncoro roared with
laughter.
Ben Yulin awoke with a
start and opened his eyes.
His first thought was
that the pain was gone, and he had feeling over his whole body again. That was
a big relief in and of itself. But—where and what was he?
He sat up and looked
around. Things were definitely different. He was slightly nearsighted and
totally color-blind. But he could see well enough to tell he was in farm
country; there was baled hay over there, nicely if crudely done, and fences and
small roads stretched off for miles in squarish patterns. It was flat country,
too; although his vision blurred beyond five hundred meters or so, he could
tell where the land and horizon met.
He looked down at
himself. Broad, muscular, hairy long legs that looked somewhat human, although
the feet were strange—very wide and oval-shaped and made of a hard, tough
substance. There were breaks in the front of each foot, but he had no toelike
control of them. They were obviously just there to provide some flex when
walking. He reached out and saw that his arms were wrestler's arms—tremendous,
bulging muscles overlaid with a thin covering of stiff brown hair. The fingers
were short and thick and seemed to be made of that tougher material in the
foot, but they were jointed in the right places and had an opposable thumb. He
reached down to feel his feet and tapped them. They had a dull, thick, hard
feel and sound to them. He had almost no feeling in his hands or feet, although
the rest of his body felt normal.
His skin was brown and
mostly covered in that short, wiry hair, although he perceived it as dark gray.
One look at his crotch told him that he was not only a male but one of gigantic
proportions. That pleased him, even if the thing was jet black. It was the
biggest he'd ever seen.
His chest was covered
with a milky-white coating of the same kind of hair; it was an even shape that
followed his torso. The body, too, was thick-set and powerful-looking; he
flexed a little and the muscles bulged.
This wasn't going to be
so bad, he told himself.
One reason for the
nearsightedness, he realized, was that his eyes were set differently. He put a
hand up to his face—and found more. He felt it carefully.
It was a huge head but
perfect for his body. A thick, short neck, and a snout! Not a huge one,
but it jutted out from his face. He tried to focus in on it and saw it, a
white-furred oval with a flat top, jutting out maybe ten centimeters from his
head. It contained a soft, moist, broad nose—incredibly broad, almost the width
of the snout—which he thought was probably pink, and two huge nostrils with
some kind of flaps. There were also whiskers flanking the nose—sharp, fairly
long, like extremely long white pine needles.
His mouth, under the
nose, went the whole length of the snout. He felt around it with a broad, flat,
thick tongue. Lots of teeth, none of them sharp. He opened it, then closed it,
then tried a chewing motion. He found he could only chew from side to side,
which told him that he was a herbivore. He knew now why they raised hay and
wheat and the like and who it was for.
The eyes were large, set
back from the snout, and wide apart. Ears were sharply pointed, and could be
turned at will, he found. On top of his head was an enormous pair of horns.
They were part of his skull, no doubt about it, and they extended into wicked
points from areas of the base bone a good five centimeters out from either side
of his head.
He rose shakily to his
feet and found that his head didn't feel abnormally heavy or out of balance,
although he couldn't turn it in any direction quite as far as he remembered
being able to do.
There was a last touch.
He found he had a tail on some sort of ball joint, a tail he could wag and even
whip to an extent. It was thick and emerged from his spine, was probably an
extension of it. It was brown like the rest of him except his chest and snout,
and it ended in a thick tuft of soft dark hair. It was long, although it didn't
quite reach the ground. He reached around, took hold of it, and looked at it
curiously.
I wish I had a mirror,
he thought.
He started walking,
first over to the road and then down it. He wanted to find some civilization,
somewhere.
It was a chilly day,
although only the parts of him with no hair, his nose, inner ears, and
genitals, told him so. There was some kind of natural insulation here.
He spied a large number
of what looked like people working in a field, but they were too far away for
his reduced vision to really see. He considered going over and introducing
himself, but he decided that that sort of thing could cause trouble, too. This
might be private property, and they might not like trespassers. He decided to
press on until he came to a town or until he met someone on the road.
Despite the visual
limitations, his other senses were tremendously heightened. Every little sound,
from the rustle of an almost imperceptible wind to small insects off in a
nearby field, were sharp and clear and could be localized with unerring
accuracy. Smells, too, both pleasant and unpleasant, were much fuller and
richer.
He was hungry and
wondered what he was supposed to eat. The fields contained the fodder, of
course, but they were also obviously private, and the high, thick barbed wire
discouraged casual snacking.
He came to a small
intersection; a minor road went off at a right angle to the main one. He could
see it led up to a large complex of buildings, maybe several stories high with
rounded roofs of straw or some other material over good hardwood frames. He
wondered where they got the wood; certainly not from around here.
He decided to chance it.
As a newcomer, he might be excused some indiscretions, if he were careful
enough not to get shot first. Let's see—what had Ortega called new people?
Entries? Yes, that was it.
Most of the workers or
family seemed to be out in the fields. There were obviously few seasons here;
some of the fields had been harvested, some were about to be, and one on his
left had just been plowed.
He was almost to the
house or barn, or whatever it was, when he saw his first fellow creature close
up.
She—there was no doubt
it was a she—was using a plane to smooth down a plow handle. She was taller
than he, with smaller head and longer, more flexible neck. Her horns were
shorter and more rounded, even at the tips. Facially, she did resemble a
cow, although the head was not right, more like a cartoonist's humanized cow
than a real one. Her arms were also strikingly different from his—tremendously
long, with a double elbow that seemed to be able to bend in any direction. Not
double in the same places, now; there was the elbow where the elbow should be,
and then the arm continued, tremendously muscular, to a second elbow near the
waist. Almost reflexively he looked again at his own elbow, and saw that he'd
been right; although thick and muscle-bulging, his arm was definitely the
one-elbow type he'd been born with.
The final incongruity
was that she wore a tremendous, leatherlike apron tied just above her waist. It
bulged a bit in front, and at first he thought she might be
pregnant, but as she worked, side turned to him, he could see that it concealed
what had to be a large, tough-looking pink udder attached just above the waist.
She still hadn't seen
him. He considered clearing his throat but wasn't sure how to do that, so he
just decided to try conversation and see if he would be understood. At least he
would be noticed.
"Hello?" he
said hopefully.
She jumped, turned,
looked at him. There was no mistaking her mannerisms: shock and fear. She
screamed, dropped her tool, and ran off into the big building through a large
wooden door.
He could hear her still
screaming and yelling inside and also the sounds of other voices. He decided
that the better part of valor was to stand there and see what happened next.
What happened took
exactly thirty seconds. The wooden door flew open with tremendous force, so
violent and loud was the action that it shook the whole building. Standing
there, a really nasty-looking iron crowbar in his hands, was the master of the
house.
He was slightly shorter
than Yulin, but not much. The horns were huge, slightly curved and pointed; the
head was massive and seemed to sit atop the torso without a neck. He wore a
cloth kilt of some soft material from his waist to just below his knees. His
huge, wide eyes sparked fire.
"What the hell do
you want here, he-cow?" he snarled derisively. "If it's a cracked
skull, just stay there another ten seconds!" He hefted the crowbar
menacingly.
Yulin felt panic rising
in him, but managed to control himself. "Wait a minute! I mean no
harm!" he managed.
The crowbar didn't move.
"Then what are you doing just walking into here stark naked and panicking
good women?" the other returned, that menacing tone growing. But, Yulin
realized, he'd answered instead of attacking, and that meant reason could
prevail.
"I'm an Entry!"
he almost yelled. "I just woke up in a field back there and I haven't the
slightest idea where or what I am or what to do next!" That was
certainly the truth.
The big minotaur
considered this. "Entry?" he snorted. "We have had only two
Entries before that I know of, and they were both cows. Doesn't make sense to
have a bull Entry." Still, there was something that made him hesitate. The
crowbar lowered over so slightly.
"I'm Ben
Yulin," he tried, attempting to sound friendly and not scared to death.
"I need help."
There was something in
the newcomer's manner that didn't seem right to the farmer. Yet he sensed,
somehow, the genuineness of Yulin's plea.
"All right,"
growled the man with the crowbar. "I'll accept your story for now. But try
anything funny and I'll kill you." He didn't let go of the crowbar.
"Come on in and we'll at least get some clothes on you so you don't have
half the herd coming after you."
Yulin started toward the
door, and the farmer hefted the bar again. "Not in there, you
idiot! Holy shit! Maybe you really don't know what's what around here!
Just walk around the house, here, and I'll follow."
Yulin did as instructed,
and entered a different door in what seemed to be a complex semidetached from
the larger buildings. It was an apartment of sorts. There was a living room
with small fireplace, a bull-sized rocking chair of a finely polished hardwood,
windows looking out on the farm, and, to his surprise, artwork and reading
material. A number of very large-sized books in a print he couldn't read sat on
two shelves, and there were pewter sculptures, not only of other minotaurs,
both male and female, but of other, stranger subjects that implied surrealism.
Some etchings on the wall, actually black-and-white line drawings, showed farm
scenes, sunsets and other realistic subjects.
The female sculptures
showed him what he'd suspected—the cow did have big udders, like bulges hanging
down—and a couple of the sketches, or prints, or whatever they were were rather
graphic pornography. On top of a table near the rocking chair was a
weird-looking mechanical device he couldn't figure out. It was a box with a
horizontal round plate that obviously rotated by means of a spring-driven hand
crank on one side. A complex brass device on a single pivot was mounted to one
side, and out of the back rose a tremendous horn-shaped device. There seemed
also to be a place for another horn to fit on the front. Yulin couldn't imagine
what it did.
The man went into
another room and seemed to be trying to open some sort of cedar chest with one
hand while at the same time keeping his eye on the newcomer through the
doorway. Yulin decided to stay stock still in the center of the room and do
nothing at all.
The other room was
obviously a bedroom, though. There was a wood frame there filled with a
strawlike material, and there were also some carelessly tossed blankets and an
enormous stuffed object that might have been a pillow. Thinking about his
horns, Yulin wondered what happened if you rolled over in your sleep.
The farmer threw him a
large cloth, and he caught it. It appeared to be made of burlap, much rougher
and coarser than what the other wore. There had been rope drawstrings placed in
it, and Yulin got the idea pretty quickly of how to put it on.
There was a thin, plain
rug on the floor. "You'll have to sit there," the farmer told him,
pointing to a spot on the rug. "I don't get much visitor traffic
here." He sat down comfortably in the rocker and started to rock gently.
"Now can you tell
me what happens next?" Yulin prompted.
"First you tell me
about yourself. Who you are, what you were, how you got here," the other
responded. "Then, if I like what I hear, I'll help you solve your
problems."
Yulin complied, almost.
He spared nothing, except his role in anything shady. He pictured himself as
Gil Zinder's assistant, nothing more, forced by the evil Antor Trelig to do
what he did. He was convincing. When he got to the part about crashing in the North,
the farmer's eyes almost shone. "Been to the North, eh? That's kind of a
romantic thing for just about all the folks here in the South. Kind of exotic
and mysterious."
Yulin thought that the
South was sufficiently exotic and mysterious for him, but he said nothing. His
story, however, was accepted. It was far too detailed to have been created out
of whole cloth as a diversion. The farmer relaxed.
"My name's
Cilbar," he said, more friendly now. "This is my farm. You're in
Dasheen, which is both the country and the name of your new people. You're a
herbivore, so you'll never starve to death—although, as a civilized man, you'll
find that while eating stuff in the raw will satisfy your hunger, prepared
foods are better. The hex is nontechnological, so machines don't work here
unless they're muscle-powered. We got the muscle, as you probably
noticed."
Yulin admitted he had.
"I been around in
my youth," Cilbar continued. "Things are different everyplace, of
course, but our system here's a little more different than most. It's the
biology that does it. We get criticized by some other hexes, but that's the way
things are."
"What do you
mean?" Yulin wondered.
Cilbar sighed.
"Well, a lot of races, they have two, maybe more sexes. Your old one did.
There's some differences, but basically they're variations of the same critter.
Brain power's the same, and take away the sex stuff and the bodies aren't that
far different, either. Right?"
"I'm following
you," Yulin replied.
"Well, you mighta
noticed that we don't look like the cows," the farmer said. "Not just
the udder. We're smaller, squatter, got shorter single-elbow arms, bigger,
different heads, like that."
"I did notice
it," Ben Yulin acknowledged.
"Well, we are different.
Don't know why. First of all, there's only an average of one male for every one
hundred females. That's why I was surprised not that you were an Entry but
that you were a male. You see?"
Yulin did. All the more
remarkable since he'd gone through the Well as a biological female. What was it
Ortega said? The Well classified you according to unknown standards.
"Anyway,"
Cilbar continued, "just from a social standpoint that makes males more
important than females. There's less of us, so we're not expendable. On top of
that, we're a hell of a lot smarter."
"How's that?"
was all Yulin could manage.
Cilbar nodded.
"Some scientists from a couple of other hexes once came in to prove to us
that it wasn't so. All they did was bear out what we already knew. Their brains
are less developed. Trying to teach one to read is like trying to teach this
chair. Oh, teach 'em to do any basic job and they'll happily do it for hours.
Plowing, harvesting, simple carpentry, hauling and such, sure. Hell, tell 'em
to dig fence holes and they'll happily do it forever until you call 'em off.
Ask 'em how many holes they dug and they couldn't tell you."
The green light of
understanding went on in Ben Yulin's head. "You mean," he said,
"that the women do all the labor and the men run things?"
Cilbar nodded again.
"That's about it. The women built this farm, but a man designed it. The
women work it, but I run it. Same with the art, the books—all by men for
men."
Yulin was intrigued, and
he thanked the Well even more that he'd come out as he did. This was the kind
of place he was going to like.
"You speak very
well, very cultured," the Entry remarked. "You have a lot of
education?"
The farmer chuckled.
"Every male gets everything we can give him. I think we're a group of
spoiled brats, myself. I often wonder what we'd have to do in a pinch if things
get tough. Yeah, a son is special. He gets it all. Then, if he's got some
particular aptitude, like art, or writing, or teaching, or trading, he takes it
up. If not, like me, he takes over somebody's farm when they get too old or too
tired."
"There's a small
population here, then," Yulin surmised.
He nodded. "Very
small. About ten thousand farms, more or less, with a bunch of small towns,
rarely more than a few thousand in each, servicing them. A million and a
quarter tops, no more."
"That means only a
hundred thousand or so males," Yulin pointed out.
"Probably
less," agreed Cilbar. "I may be way overestimating the number. We
don't get around too much once we settle down. One time I remember somebody
saying in some class that there were only seven hundred fifty thousand Dasheen
and seventy-five thousand bulls. Could be."
"And what happens
if the new young bull has no useful aptitudes and no farm's open?" Yulin
wondered.
"Thinking about
yourself, eh? A scientist in a non-tech hex! I can see the problems. Well, you
can find a skill or job, do some traveling while you wait for an opening, like
I did, or you can pick a farm, call out the owner, and fight him to the death,
winner take all."
Suddenly Yulin
understood why the farmer had been so upset at his initial appearance: he
thought a young bull was calling him out.
"What kind of
government do you have, then?" he asked.
"A small and simple
one," Cilbar told him. "All the farmers in a district elect somebody
to a council. The towns elect one for every ten males. There's a small
bureaucracy to keep things together, and we meet in emergencies or twice a year
for a few days in a small town named Tahlur in the center of Dasheen, where the
training schools and the Zone Gate are."
"That's where I
should head, then," the ex-scientist decided. "If I can get there
without starving to death or getting run through by somebody less willing to
listen to me than you."
Cilbar laughed deeply.
"Look, they've called a council meeting for some time next week. Our own
representative, Hocal, will be going. I'll feed you, put you up for the night,
and get you introduced to him. That should solve that problem."
Yulin thanked him. This
was too easy, he thought, and too good. There had to be a fly in the ointment
somewhere, and he waited for it.
* * *
Hocal wasn't the fly but
he was the instrument of it. He looked very surprised when Yulin was introduced
to him.
"That's what all
this business is about!" he exclaimed. "You people really messed up
some things! Never thought one of you'd show up here, though. Seems some folks
want to talk to us about reclaiming some of those parts of that spaceship. War's
been rumored. War! I hope we can keep out of it, but we'll see. We're right in
the middle of things here geographically."
Yulin suddenly became
interested. "How's that? You mean the other ship, the one that came
down in the South here?"
Hocal nodded, and got
down a large map, spreading it out on the table in front of him. It was
ingeniously printed for the benefit of a color-blind race; it contained all the
details in amazing black, white and gray contrasts. Yulin could interpret it,
but he could not read the key or names. He would have to cure that, he decided.
Hocal pointed a stubby
finger at one hex. "Here we are in Dasheen," he said.
Yulin looked. They were
close to the Equatorial Barrier, something Hocal translated as Cotyl occupying
two half-hexes at the Barrier; then Voxmir to the northwest—unfriendly and
inhuman, Hocal assured him; Jaq to the southeast—volcanic and hot as hell, too
hot for a Dasheen to survive; Frick to the southeast—they had crazy, fat flying
disks with steam jets; and Qasada to the southwest—from the description a
highly advanced technological civilization of giant rats.
"This is where the
problem is," Hocal pointed again. Just below Qasada and to the southwest
of Frick was Xoda, a land of great, fierce insects—and a module. "There's
another in Palim, below it, Olborn, to the southwest, and, most important, only
four hexes south, Gedemondas, about which little is known. The engines of the
downed craft landed there, and they are, as you will appreciate, the big prize.
I suspect we'll know a lot more about Gedemondas before this is finished."
Yulin nodded. "I'd
think that one of the others—the rats, for example—might make a better run for
it," he noted.
Hocal agreed. "They
should, but that's a funny area. The races in there aren't that friendly, or,
like the Palim, have been, like us, peaceful too long to think of conflict. No,
the trouble comes from way over here."
He pointed again far to
the west, well beyond the far coast of the Sea of Storms.
"This is Makiem,
and up here is Cebu, and to the east is Agitar. Makiem is run by some clever
and ruthless politicians and is a nontech hex, as we are. Cebu is semitech, and
its people have the power of flight, which is particularly useful. Agitar is
high-tech, and while we've been able to learn very little about it, they seem
to have flying animals—which means their range isn't limited by their
machines—and some natural abilities with electricity that transcend the Well
limits. They have formed an alliance to get the ship parts."
"But they couldn't
use them, even if they put them together, without a qualified pilot,"
Yulin objected. "That's not a simple rocket, you know."
"We are well aware
of that," replied Hocal, looking directly at him. "The war was to be
the topic, but, I suspect, with you on hand, the discussion will be even
livelier."
* * *
The trip was easy and
made in less than two days. They went in a comfortable coach pulled by six
Dasheen cows from Hocal's herd, and they made better speed than Yulin would
have believed.
Additionally, the tired
pullers did everything for them, cooking delicious stews, rubbing them down,
everything. Yulin loved being waited on; he saw how easy it would be to get
spoiled here. The cows engaged mostly in small talk among themselves,
occasionally playing childish games with one another, but they carried out
their jobs without complaint, as if this was what they were born to do and they
were happy doing it. In deference to his host, Ben Yulin kept at a distance
from them.
They arrived at Tahlur
at midday to find most of the other members already there. They were taking
nothing lightly, and grave discussions were already underway in the town's
alehouses. As on the farm and road, the females did all the work—all the
cooking, cleaning, serving, all the basic labors. Yulin couldn't do anything
for himself. A cow was always there to get him a chair, to bring food or drink,
to take him to a comfortable room in an inn, to prepare and clean everything.
They even ran to open doors for the males.
Even though the service
was easy to take, he wondered about it, about whether it was truly mental
inferiority or just a rigid social system. They weren't automatons; they talked
and laughed sometimes and sulked sometimes and generally acted like people.
And there were the rings
and collars. All the cows wore them—large rings welded in their huge noses, and
brass collars welded around their necks, with small hooks on the back. They
were distinctive; they bore the marks of the herd the cow was from. The females
were even branded on the right rump, he found, with the herd-mark.
Did they ever get fed up
and run away, he wondered. Was that why there were so many ways to identify
them as being out of place?
The towns had
guild-herds. There were guilds for the different classes of workers, and they
lived in dorms through the town.
He worried about this a
little more when he found out that the great quantities of milk the men
consumed, gotten from the cows, was more than supplement. The males like
himself could not manufacture their own calcium. They required almost a gallon
of the calcium-rich milk a day to stay healthy, ward off arthritis, bone
diseases, rotting teeth, and the like.
Without cows, the men
would die. Slowly, and in great agony.
That was why they and
their system were so well known in other hexes. Young bulls waiting for an
opening often traveled, sometimes widely. They could exist on almost any native
carbon-based grasses, and their own systems purified natural water, so few provisions
were needed. But the men were so used to being waited on, and their bodies so
desperately dependent on the cow's milk, that they had to take at least four
cows with them. He could imagine the effect this would have on races that were
unisexual, or where sexual discrimination was not present, or, worse, in a
matrilineal society.
But there was little
time for such speculation. He was too busy being passed around, introduced to
the politicians, and discussing the crisis.
The council met the next
day. In a communal society—money wasn't even used here, everyone drew his
share—such bodies on a small scale were normal. They elected a chairman without
much problem and proceeded to the business at hand.
Using maps, charts, and
diagrams, the central bureaucracy explained the problem. There was a general
sentiment to stay clear of it; it was none of Dasheen's business. Yulin they
regarded as a complication; it was debated, much to his chagrin, whether or not
to hide him away, imprison him for the war's duration, or perhaps kill him!
None of these alternatives were seriously considered by the council as a whole,
much to his relief, but he was aware of danger here. Those who proposed them
were deadly serious, and some of these hotheads might easily take such solutions
into their own hands.
On the third day of the
conference little had been resolved, and Ben had the feeling that they just
loved to argue; they would never come to any agreement unless forced to.
But on the third day a
newcomer arrived who changed things. Its entrance was such that it panicked
people on the streets, and the creature did little to reassure them after
coming to ground. In the air it was magnificent and beautiful; a great
butterfly with a two-meter wingspread, brilliantly orange and brown against a
black body that still stood 150 centimeters when it landed in the street and
stood on the rearmost four of its eight long tentacles. Its face was a large,
black painted death's head, with great, eerie eyes that looked like pads
recessed in the hard, dark skull.
The Yaxa, however, had
been expected.
Its manner, its voice,
was cold, hard, sharp, and cutting. It sent chills through those who heard it.
Even Ben, who had to have a running translation, felt it. Unlike the others
he'd met on the Well World—the Dasheen, Ortega, the Ambreza, even the
plant-creature—this one was different. Not inhuman, unhuman, as alien as
those paintwash creatures of the North.
The Yaxa had a
proposition.
"First," it
said, "let me summarize what the situation is to date. I have been able to
keep in touch on my journey here as new developments broke, and things are
breaking fast.
"One—the Makiem
have effectively allied and coordinated with the Cebu and the Agitar. It is the
most formidable combination of brains, opportunism, and ability this world has
ever seen. Boidol will give them their part of the ship to avoid the fight.
There has been no talking them out of it. The Djukasis will fight, but we have
been unsuccessful in getting the Lata to come in on their side or anybody else's.
The Djukasis will take their toll, but they cannot hope to defeat such an
alliance. The Klusidians will neither yield nor fight, and you know what that
means. The Zhonzorp would fight if they had a chance, but they're very much
like the Makiem, mentally. They may join the alliance instead, if they're able.
Their hatred of the Klusidians will keep them from giving the aid those people
need."
The creature paused,
adjusting the giant maps it was using to illustrate its talk.
"Olborn is a
mystery. You know its reputation: nobody who goes in ever comes out, and they
never man their embassy at Zone. A question mark, but I don't believe that any
race, whatever its powers, can stop this march alone. If we're lucky, the
Olbornians will slow them, as certainly the Alestoli will. But think of what two
flying races could do with even something as basic as boiling oil. No, a
sufficiently large force of them will reach Gedemondas, a hex that talks
to no one, has no embassy, and contains too hostile an environment for much
else. Even the Dillians on the other side, who share some mountains, have been
unsuccessful in talking to them. They don't fight—they just vanish. And that
leaves four mods and the engines in the hands of the Makiem-Cebu-Agitar
alliance."
"But how will they
ever get such large pieces of machinery back to their home hexes?" asked
one councillor.
"The Agitar know
their business," the Yaxa told him. "They will bring along a number
of good engineers. They will disassemble things, put them through the Zone
Gates if they can't haul them home, and then reassemble them in their own
hex."
"They still
couldn't fly it," another pointed out.
"Wrong again,"
replied the Yaxa. "The Makiem have had the kind of good fortune that makes
one doubt free will. One of the pilot-qualified Entries, Antor Trelig, is a
Makiem. He can and will fly that ship—and further, he can enter the computer
complex and use it up on the satellite. You see? Our very existence is in
jeopardy!"
That got to them. There
was a rumble and roar, and it was several minutes before the chairman could
calm them down. It was hard to tell, but the Yaxa seemed satisfied with his
reception. It had come on a diplomatic mission; its object was to scare them to
death.
"But what can we
do?" asked one councillor. "Send our people into battle with swords
and spears against the Qasada? They'd chew us to pieces!"
"They would
indeed," the Yaxa agreed. "But you will have some time and some
advantages. Yaxa and Lamotien have united. The Lamotien are probably the best
friends and deadliest enemies on the Well World. The planet for which they were
designed must be a living hell. They are metamorphs—they can assume any shape
that they can see, limited only by the fact that they cannot change their mass.
Even that is not a true drawback because they are small. They combine with one
another to create larger organisms. Twenty could make a Dasheen so
convincing you would be unable to tell the difference. And there are ten
million or more Lamotien, in a high-tech hex. With them we will shortly
secure the highly important bridge module of the downed ship from Teliagin.
Then the Lamotien will turn into flyers, and we will fly to Nodi Island in the
Sea of Storms and secure a second module. Then we shall cross the East Neck to
Qasada. With Lamotien infiltration and technology, Yaxa flight and trained
warriors, aided, perhaps, by bases and personnel in Dasheen, we can take the
Qasada and the Xoda, our two major problems. Palim is still in doubt; they
might just allow us through. That puts us in Gedemondas, a hex in which
we Yaxa will be hard-pressed to operate, but one in which a
Lamotien-supplemented Dasheen force will be highly effective. Need I tell you
that this will give us the bridge and engines?" It turned, looked
over the bovine faces assembled there. "And you have Ben Yulin, another
pilot who also has access to the satellite computer."
There was more uproar.
How could the Yaxa have known? They groaned. This changed everything!
The Yaxa had no ability
to smile. Even if it could, Ben Yulin thought such a gesture would shatter its
face and personality. But there was evident confidence and satisfaction inside
it for its presentation.
Chalk one up for Well
World intrigues, anyway, Yulin thought. This world bristled with spies, plots,
moves, and countermoves. The heretofore impossibility of war had diverted men
of such minds to more devious means.
The debate droned on and
on, but it was evident that the outcome had been decided, and a late-night
formal vote made it official. Even Yulin spoke, assuring them that he could
indeed pilot the ship if it had so much as one module between bridge and
engines, and that he could, in fact, get into Obie. His emotions were
excitement mixed with apprehension. On one hand, here was a chance, although a
long shot, to gain complete mastery of New Pompeii, Obie included, and perhaps
a key to the Well. On the other, he saw the dark threat of Antor Trelig in that
same position. He did not paint Trelig's evil any too lightly; by the time he
was through, the very mention of Trelig inspired dread.
On the brighter side,
all personal animosities were off. He was one of their own now, suddenly. They
would be the weakest member of the alliance militarily, but the other monstrous
partners in this coalition would have to depend entirely on a Dasheen to get
there and get into the computer.
He was taken around
where former enemies who had suggested his imprisonment or death only a day
before were now his blood brothers.
"He must have his
own herd!" one big shot insisted, and they all agreed.
"Only a small one
right now. Later—anything he wants!" another stipulated.
"How about one from
each of the five service guilds in town?" a third suggested. "More
practical than giving him farmhands!" So he got five daughters, one each
from the Metalworkers, City Service, Cooks and Waiters, Builders, and Housekeeping
guilds—a perfect practical balance of skills.
The Metalworkers also
gave him his own brand, distinctive ring, and collar. His herd were all young,
all virgins. He found that there was a lot of tradition and ceremony associated
with unions.
For one thing, daughters
had numbers instead of names until they were assigned to a herd, whether farm
or guild. The male, who was always called Master, would name them in the
ceremony, then consummate the union, which bound her to him. She would then be
branded, ringed, and collared. The whole process took five days.
He loved every minute of
it.
In the meantime,
subcouncils met, Yaxa came and went, and a percentage of every herd in the
country was conscripted for military training. This worried some of the men,
who wondered what the effect would be when so many cows were taught the art of
killing. But there was much at stake here. As for the Yaxa, they didn't seem to
find anything but amusement in that worry.
The Yaxa, Ben learned,
were female. After they mated, they ate their male mate. It was almost the
reverse of Dasheen, and he couldn't help but wonder if Yaxa presence might give
somebody ideas.
Although Renard didn't
know it yet, the Well World must have a sense of humor. The shock of waking up
in an alien land as something else was much greater for him; he did not really
remember anything since waiting before a big plain for darkness so they could
avoid the cyclopses.
He sat up and looked
around. A nice looking place, he thought. Green trees here and there, nice
fields growing various vegetables—even signs of hothouses and other modern
conveniences. There was a small service road near him, obviously for farm
vehicles going to the groves rather than for through traffic, yet it was
macadam-paved. He was definitely in a rural area, but this was no primitive
cyclops land.
Far off in the distance
was what appeared to be the ghostly skyline of a city. It looked kind of
strange, the buildings kind of twisted or pointed, but that was to be expected.
He had no doubt in his
mind that he was still on this strange world where they had crashed. How he'd
gotten here was a mystery; somebody must have brought him, that was for sure.
Why couldn't he remember? The sponge?
A sudden realization
shot through him. He felt good. Really good. Totally clear-headed. He
found he could remember things he hadn't thought of in years—and felt no trace
whatever of the sponge-longing or its effects. Almost wondrously he thought of
Mavra Chang. She alone believed that somewhere on this world sponge addiction could
be cured, and she was right. He knew it, deep inside. He was free!
But where?
He rose to his feet and
found himself somewhat out of balance. He fell forward, breaking his fall with
his hands.
It wasn't dizziness; it
was balance. Something was wrong. He looked at the arm that had broken his
fall. Short, stubby fingers with nails that looked more like claws. A deep-blue
skin—
He rolled over and sat
up again. He felt something funny when sitting this way, and reached behind
him. It was like he was sitting on a rock.
No he wasn't. He was
sitting on his short, stubby tail.
His what?
He looked down at
himself. The skin was the deepest of blues, and thick and porous. At the waist
a very thin curly body hair became suddenly tremendously thick. It was like sheep's
wool, dense and curly. Except for being blue-black, his sexual organ looked
fairly normal, which was a relief. He was no longer taking anything for
granted. But his legs, very thick in the upper calf, were queerly shaped below,
coming to a thin knee joint fairly high up, then going down to—
Sharp, shiny-black
cloven hooves?
What the hell was going
on here?
The hooves looked too
small to support his thick body. That must have been why he'd fallen—no large
foot support. But—how was he supposed to walk, then? Crawl on his hands and
knees? Or did the knack come with practice?
For a brief moment he
thought he'd become a cyclops. But, no, he had two eyes in the right
places, and the feet and hair were definitely wrong, as was his odd complexion.
He felt his head,
wonderingly. Sharp pointed ears close to the scalp, but at least where ears
should be. Nose seemed a bit large but felt normal. Even the teeth seemed
normal. He'd lost six at various points in his life and never had them put
back; but they were all there now, although the front ones felt a hell of a lot
sharper and maybe a little longer, top and bottom, than he remembered.
He had hair. He risked
pulling a strand, and it was blue-black. It started in a V-shape in the center
of his forehead, then spread out on both sides of the horns—
Horns?
Yes, they were there.
Bony things, not long but sharp, and definitely a part of his skull.
Kind of a triangular
face, terminating in a sharp, thick, pointed goatee.
All right, Renard, think
it through logically, he told himself. But it just wouldn't wash. There was no
logic to this. Only facts.
Fact: He'd awakened in
some alien land, cured of sponge, anatomically totally male, clear-minded, and
in the body of some alien creature.
Fact: He didn't know
where the hell he was, what he was, or what was going on.
Well, he told himself,
no matter what, the only way to find out was to find somebody and ask. There
was that city out there in the distance. Even hazy smog from some factory or
other.
He crawled on hands and
knees over to a spindly tree a few meters away, and, grabbing it, managed to
get to his feet. He was top-heavy, no doubt about it. And yet, when he calmed
down and considered it, he realized that his sense of balance was tremendous.
With a little practice, he could angle parts of his body differently, knowing
somehow that certain combinations felt wrong, others right.
In about half an hour he
managed to stand without holding on to the tree. He did it repeatedly, and the
ability pleased him. He also found that the tail went flush into the rectal
cavity, so, when sitting, he didn't have to be uncomfortable.
Walking, however, was a
lot harder. After repeatedly falling down he crawled back to the tree, stood
up, and resolved to succeed no matter what. He stepped out, going as fast as he
could from a standing start. To his surprise, he stayed up, making the weight
and balance compensations automatically. When he came to a halt, though, he
almost always fell over again. More practice.
The Well World gave you
the means of adaptation to your new form, although Renard didn't know that. As
the afternoon progressed, he got the hang of it more easily than anyone should
have.
This was, he decided, a
fast-paced culture. The faster you went the better control you had. Still, he
managed now to sort of half-run, and to stand still without falling on his
face. It was enough. Subtleties could be gotten later. He could move on toward
that city now.
He followed the farm
road until it reached a dead end. He realized he'd made the wrong choice, and
retraced. At the pace he ran, he arrived at a main road before he knew it. What
a road! A highway, really. A highway without vehicles, but with lots of people.
And the road moved.
It was a giant moving
walkway, and people holding onto moving handrails moved along in ten lanes in
either direction. The middle two lanes were reserved for commercial traffic;
large boxlike containers with odd symbols and sometimes graphics moved there on
their own walkways, and he wondered how they got them off.
Two other things struck
him immediately. One was that the people wore clothes, which caused him a real
problem. The males wore shirts and sometimes light jackets, with briefs to
cover the nether regions. The females—well, that was another thing. He had
heard the term "opposite sex" for years, but this was the first time
the difference was graphic.
Blue-skinned all, from
the waist down the females appeared roughly human. Oh, they had the little
tails, too, and their feet seemed to be a bit broader and more solid than human
feet, but human enough. They mostly wore pants and sandals. But from the waist
up—
They were goats.
Well, not exactly, he
decided. The head was a rounded triangular shape with a long lower jaw running
its length, and their noses were black and located at the end of the upper jaw.
Their ears were the same pointed type as his own, and their horns short and
more rounded than the males. Over the entire upper torso was that thick, woolly
blue hair that was his from the waist down; the female's arms looked like a
goat's forelegs except that they terminated in lone, thin, fragile-looking
hands.
They all had what
appeared to be very large human breasts, almost gargantuan, and covered
with either brightly colored bras or tied halters. And he got erotic sensations
looking at them. Not just at the breasts, but at all of them. It amazed him. He
began to realize just how much he had become this new creature.
The lack of clothing
concerned him most; obviously if he stepped out into that traffic he'd cause a
stir. Nowhere was there any evidence that nudity was normal or accepted.
He sat back down in what
appeared to be a fruit grove to think. He was hungry; if he was going to skulk
around or wait until dark to try and bargain for a pair of pants, he'd need
something to sustain him.
He eyed the large,
orange fuzz-covered balls on the bushes around him. He'd seen peaches on New
Pompeii; he knew they didn't grow on bushes like this, but he suspected that
these were close enough, and very edible, since nobody would grow the things
like this to poison anyone. He reached over and picked one.
There was a crackle and
a pop, and he felt some sort of release inside him that seemed to flow into his
hand. The peach crackled; it was cooked solid, and suddenly very hot. He
dropped it with an oath. He felt a dull burning sensation in his hand, but it
wasn't from whatever had cooked the fruit but rather from the fruit heating up.
What else? he wondered,
both curious and anxious.
He carefully reached out
to pick up another fruit off the bush. He felt the sensation rising within him,
and fought it. It seemed to subside, go down. He picked the thing and ate it.
It tasted good.
Trying to figure out
what had happened, he reached over and probed the cooked peach; it was still
warm. Somehow, he thought, my body contains hundreds, perhaps thousands of
volts of electricity that can be discharged and renewed. He instinctively knew
it, and the success he had in fighting the power the second time, when he
expected it, showed that it could be contained or discharged at will.
He picked up another
peach, put it down in front of him, and kind of let the sensation flow,
touching the peach with his index finger. He felt the sensation rise, flow into
his arm, down it, and there was a slight crackle and the peach started
smouldering.
Where does that energy
come from? he wondered. He considered the thick upper calves and thighs, and
the tremendously dense hair there. That might well build up a static charge, he
thought, particularly with all that running. A charge transferred to his body,
to some sort of storage, discharging only when that body willed it.
I could possibly
electrocute somebody by shaking hands with him! he thought in wonder.
He found he could feel
the energy, even feel a slight loss after a discharge. It could be routed to
any part of his upper body. Talk about a shocking embrace!
He was still
experimenting when a sharp voice said behind him, "If you're all through
trying to burn the field down, will you kindly get up and tell me why you're
sitting in a fruit field, stark naked, frying peaches?"
He turned with a start.
It was a male—whatever else he was. There was no mistaking his manner, the club
and radio on his belt.
He was a cop.
* * *
They had radioed for a
lock-up cart, and it arrived. They hustled him into it, and it rolled down the
moving roadway smoothly, bumping only when it reached a junction point where
two belts met.
How you got off or on
the roadway was simple. There was a small set of casterlike wheels attached to
the underside, and they, in turn, were attached to a basic electric motor.
The cops provided their
own electrical power.
They rolled to a halt
inside the police garage and took him out. A female desk sergeant, her goatlike
head impassive, punched information into a computer and asked him questions.
"Name?"
"Renard," he
responded.
"Odd name,"
she commented. "Place and date of birth?"
"The city of
Barentsk, on the planet Muscovy, August 12, 4412 N.D.," he answered
honestly.
She stopped typing and
looked at him. "You trying to be funny?" she asked. The two male cops
flanking him didn't look amused.
"No," he told
her, trying to sound sincere. "Honest. Look, I crashed here in a
spaceship, somewhere in a place inhabited by giant cyclopses, and then I woke
up here. I don't know anything more than you do."
She remained impassive,
that rigid face incapable of showing emotion, but she said, "Less,"
cryptically, and punched something on the terminal. There was a flip-flop on
the screen, and a new printout appeared, line-by-line. She nodded, looked at the
two cops.
"He's an Entry, all
right. One of the drug addicts."
"You sure,"
one of the cops responded. "He just looks like a Class-One nut to
me."
Renard felt insulted,
but decided not to press the matter.
"Look," the
desk clerk said. "Take my word for it. Get some clothes for him from the
lockup and then take him up to Lieutenant Ama's office. I'll call ahead."
They reluctantly agreed,
using the age-old principle of uncertainty: when you're not positive of your
own position, pass the buck. They gave him some uncomfortable, tight-fitting
briefs of a bright-white color, and a white T-shirt that was too large and
obviously had been worn by a legion of people before him. The bright-white was
obvious: the contrast with his deep-blue complexion was spottable a kilometer away.
Jail clothes.
Lieutenant Ama was a
typical bored servant of the people who didn't like problems in his district.
He also wouldn't answer questions of any kind, although he asked a number,
obviously to make sure that Renard was indeed who he said he was. Nobody else
would talk, either.
He sat there for hours.
He knew what was happening—at least he hoped he knew. Ama was calling his superior,
who was calling his superior, who was—and so forth, until somebody
decided what to do with him.
Well, they fed him,
anyway. They even showed him how you touched different points on the metal
plate set in the wooden base to cook anything you liked how you liked it. He
discovered that men were the cooks here. Women couldn't do it—didn't have the
electrical capacity. They were, however, as immune to electrical shocks of any
kind as the males. Renard wondered idly how you made love around here without
burning the house down.
He slept in an unlocked
cell, and by the middle of the second day he was wondering if he'd been forgotten.
He hadn't. A little into
the afternoon, they came for him. Big guys—bigger than he was, anyway. It
occurred to him that, since everything was to scale, he had no idea how
big he was. Could be ten centimeters high or four meters high.
Another trip, much
longer this time, and then into a huge building that was shaped like a pyramid
but with minaretlike towers all around. Into another office, this one obviously
a big shot's, and more questioning. They had no doubts he was who he said he was;
the questions were quite different this time.
Most of them were about
Antor Trelig.
He told them everything;
he held nothing of his hatred back. He described the man who enslaved so many
to terrible drugs, the depravities of New Pompeii, Trelig's mad ambitions. They
took it all down.
And, finally, they
answered some of his questions.
"Where am I?"
he asked.
The interrogator, a
slighter-built man who wore glasses, thought a moment. "You are in Agitar,
and you are an Agitar."
"I'm still on the
planet where I crashed?"
Slowly, they told him
the story of the Well World, the hexes, and some of the problems his arrival
had caused.
"You can't pilot a
spaceship, can you?" the interrogator asked hopefully.
"No," he
admitted. "I was a teacher of classics and a librarian and sometimes a
guard for Trelig's prisoners."
The man thought for a
minute. "You must understand our position in relation to you. Agitar is an
advanced, technologically based hex. There is nothing electrical, I believe,
closed to us, stemming from research on our own bodies. Science is king here.
Now we prepare for a war, a war for those spaceship parts your party brought
down. And here you are—totally illiterate, possessing absolutely no skills of
use to us. Now you are an Agitar for the rest of your life. You're young,
strong, but little else. You must be fitted in here, and when we look at this
compilation, the only usable quality you possess is a familiarity with weapons
and the ability to shoot straight."
"Where are the
others who came in with me?" he asked, no liking the direction of the
conversation. "I would like to get in contact with the woman, Mavra
Chang—"
"Forget it,"
the other told him. "She's in the hands of the Lata, and, although they've
stayed neutral so far, they are almost certainly philosophically, maybe
actually, in opposition to us." He sighed. "No, I think there's only
one place you would fit in now, and it'll do you good, work you into Agitar
society with discipline."
* * *
They drafted him into
the army.
They gave him two weeks
of strict, intense basic training. There was little time to think, and that was
as it had been planned. Still, barracks life made him some friends and filled
him in on the rest of what was going on. For one thing, he found out that
Agitar was allied with Makiem, a hex whose dominant race were giant frogs, and
Cebu, a race of flying reptiles of some sort.
He also learned that
Antor Trelig was a Makiem.
That depressed him. The
ultimate irony. To escape from New Pompeii, beat the sponge on a new and alien
planet, and wind up back serving Antor Trelig again. Was the Well computer
laughing?
The training was tough
but fascinating, though. In hand-to-hand, an Agitar male would simply
electrocute his opponent. Although the average energy stored in an Agitar male
was several thousand volts—still enough to be lethal—it could potentially store
up to sixty thousand volts! An incredible figure. Overload was impossible, but
if you were fully charged, any additional energy would be immediately released.
The static electricity alone would never generate a terribly high voltage, but
it was actually possible for an Agitar to absorb additional electricity from
artificial sources or even things like lightning rods. They were totally immune
to electrical shock; they could not electrocute one another, but they could
actually transfer stored-up energy between themselves. There was a rather
unpleasant class on how to absorb the energy from a dying or recently dead
comrade.
Shooting was easy for
him; the rifles were different from what he knew, as were the pistols, but all
such weapons basically operate on the same principle: aim, push here, and the
energy or projectile comes out there.
Somehow, one never
unconsciously discharged, even while sleeping. He wondered about that, worried
about the fact that the first time he had done so involuntarily, but
they assured him that it rarely happened. But beds were made out of
nonconductive, energy-absorbing materials, just in case.
He also learned,
indirectly from his barracks-mates, about the opposite sex. They were smart; on
the average, a little smarter than the men, some said. Sex was common and
frequent; the Agitar were a horny bunch. But there was effective birth control,
plus the Well monitor of the population, so nobody felt inhibited. Marriage was
unknown. If you wanted a child, you just found a female that wanted one, too—or
vice versa—and had one. If it was male, it was the father's total
responsibility to raise it. The female might stay, might walk out. If it was
female, the reverse was true.
There were women in the
army, too. Because they could not hold a charge or discharge, they were never
front-line troops, but they handled everything else. Most of the upper
officers, including the bulk of the general staff, were women, as were most of
the technicians.
The war was not popular.
There was some childish enthusiasm born of never having actually seen what a
war was like, yes; but most people didn't get overly enthusiastic about it.
They saw war as a necessity. A nasty couple of races—the Yaxa and the
Lamotien—were even now moving to get the ship parts as well, and they had Ben
Yulin under their control to fly it. Better a fully charged Agitar at Antor
Trelig's side walking into Obie than a bunch of terribly alien creeps under a
not certainly controllable Ben Yulin.
After two weeks, they
transferred him to Air. It wasn't a promotion, really; Air went in first, and
took the brunt of front-line casualties. Renard almost gasped when he saw what
Air meant. Not planes or sleek ships, no. They were horses. Large, great horses
with tremendous swanlike wings along both sides of their sleek bodies. As a
classicist, Renard recognized them as the embodiment of the legendary Pegasus,
and they were truly grand. They came in all colors—brown, white, pink, blue,
green. There was no end to the variety.
And they
flew—tremendously, gracefully, with an Agitar on a saddle, his legs strapped
in, on soaring wings. They were somewhat fragile, since they had hollow bones,
and he never did quite understand why they flew, but they did and that was
enough. They were also much smarter than horses. They responded to verbal
commands, slight kicks, pulls on the reins—and they were easy to train,
considering their riders had their own shock prods.
He was assigned one
immediately. A beautiful, intelligent animal, green in color. The first time he
went up, he had an instructor in front and all sorts of fancy instruments. But,
the animals were easy to fly, and by the third day Renard was doing loops and
swirls on Doma, the horse's name, as easily as if born to it. They were a
natural pair, Agitar and pegasus; they blended together like one organism.
And there was the tast.
It was a steel rod, about three meters long, coated with copper, with a
sword-like copper hilt. With an Agitar male holding one, it was an electrical
conductor of remarkable efficiency. It was also thin and fairly light for the
well-muscled arms.
In a nontechnological
hex, or even some others, the tast was an ultimate close-contact weapon, where
pistol or rifle either could not be used or would not work.
At the end of three
weeks they told his class that they weren't really ready, should need six more
weeks, but that this was all the training they were going to get. As it was,
they would have to catch up to the war.
Renard decided one
thing—had decided it long before, when he found out about Trelig.
He was not going to die
in Trelig's service.
Another dizzying ride on
the Krommians had taken Mavra to Lata itself.
It was a fairyland come
to life. The Lata had no cities as such; they were spread out along wooded
hills and forest glades. Small shop groups permitted the necessary trade and
services, and there was a number of universities, research facilities for those
so minded, and places for the artisans, for Lata were an inherently artistic
race.
It was also the only
asexual bisexual race she had ever seen. They all looked identical to her
except for the colors; all like meter-high girls of nine or ten, and all spoke
in lyrical, musical bells. It was an eerie feeling for her, who had always been
so small in a world of giants, to suddenly be the tallest person around.
They were all born
without sex; they matured after fifteen to twenty years into biological
females, each capable of laying just one egg, which hatched on its own in a few
days. Then, over a two-year period, they changed. Female organs vanished, and
male organs grew in their place. They were then male for the rest of their
lives.
She asked Vistaru why
there were so many females if that was the case. The girl—even though mature,
it was impossible to think of the Lata as other than girls—had laughed.
"When you change, you get older," she'd replied.
Mavra ultimately found
out that females aged at a rate only a fraction that of males; it would
eventually catch up with you, of course, but most put it off as long as
possible. Spend forty to fifty years as a ten-year-old flying pixie girl, then
have your egg, then have another thirty years as a male, growing older
inside.
That's why the males
seemed to be the leaders here. They were older, and had more experience.
Mavra Chang felt more at
ease now than at any other period she could remember in her life except those
glorious years of marriage and partnership. There was no pressure here; the
people were wonderful and warm. There were no threats, no natural enemies, and,
as a high-tech hex, no want of material comfort, either, although they seemed
to have made less use of their technical capabilities than other places she was
told about. They didn't need it: they were happy.
The stingers, which could
kill—they described the venoming process as something like an orgasm—were
their extra edge against neighbors who might think the frail and tiny creatures
easy prey. It totally paralyzed for a long period, depending on the victim's
size and weight, and too much of it could kill. Less than a dozen races had
proven immune to it, and the Lata hadn't had to test their power much in a long
while.
As for Mavra herself,
they made new clothing for her to her design, of black stretch cloth, and a
heavy coat for cold weather wear. They also cleaned her belt, replaced the
strap, and marveled at the compartments and gadgets it contained. The same with
her boots; they were too worn to be useful, but the gadgets had survived, and a
new pair was brighter, shinier, more flexible and comfortable—and even added a
few more centimeters to her height.
They also untangled her
hair, cut, combed, and trimmed it in Lata fashion, long and sleek on the top
and sides, short in back. When they tested the venom in her nails, it
fascinated them. Obie had made a biological adaptation of mechanical injectors;
and the system was, said the medical people, amazing and complex. They got her
to try the hypno load on a Lata volunteer, and, much to her surprise, the stuff
that had failed on the cyclopses worked on the Lata.
She lived with them for
several weeks; it was a peaceful time. The medical people fitted her with a
translator, a tiny crystal from the North that was patched in at any one of
several points inside her body in a painless, minor operation. This would allow
her to understand, she was told, anyone on the Well World, and anyone on the
Well World could understand her. The devices were not common or cheap; the
operation had been mandated and paid for by Serge Ortega.
She was both delighted
and disappointed: delighted in that she could now speak to and understand these
wonderful people; disappointed in that their speech, when translated, lost its
wonderful musicality. It sounded like plain old Confederation plain talk with
bell-like undertones. Furthermore, the translator was in and of itself a
reminder to her that she was not really a free woman, but a captive. These nice
people were doing things in their own best political interest, not hers.
Vistaru explained the
problem to her, now easier since she could speak in her own language and be
understood. "You are a pilot," she pointed out. "The
Yaxa-Lamotien-Dasheen alliance is on the move. So is the Makiem-Cebu-Agitar
one. We don't want war. We want that ship destroyed. But we must have someone
around who understands it, just in case—as long as the threat remains."
As long as the threat
remains. Mavra wondered how long that would be.
The map told the story,
along with daily war reports. The great sphinxes of Boidol had traded their
module for peace, going as far as bringing it to the Agitar border. Gambling
that the war would end in no profit for all concerned, they had elected to
pass.
In the North, the great
angry butterflies of the Yaxa had poured boiling oil on Teliagin villages and
forests, and the Lamotien had spread panic as Teliagin cyclopses suddenly came
apart into fifty or more smaller creatures who disrupted everything from
behind. The Teliagin, primitive and fearful, surrendered quickly. They allowed the
Yaxa and Lamotien to drag the bridge module across the Lamotien border on great
carts, eventually helping in the process. The Yaxa were already heading across
the Sea of Storms on great wings, first to Nodi Island—a peaceful hex inhabited
by a race described as resembling giant walking mushrooms—to receive a
sea-landed module being brought to them by the dolphinlike Porigol next door.
There, on the Nodi beaches, Lamotien technicians carefully disassembled the
mod, and helpless Nodi allowed the parts to be shipped to Zone through their
Zone Gate, and thence on to Lamotien. Qasada would be next for the Yaxa
alliance.
In the South, Djukasis
was giving fierce resistance, but it was only a matter of days, the reports
said. The great bees' hives were being hit by the pterodactyllike Cebu, while
Agitar airmen on great Pegasi zapped the Djukasis from the air with their
tasts.
Upset, Mavra asked
repeatedly why the Lata would not go in to help the Djukasis, whom they liked
and had been friends with for centuries. They always shook their heads and gave
the same answer.
"If we hurt one
army without hurting the other, the other has that much more chance of
achieving its goals. We must remain neutral until there is some sort of action
we could take that would end not one war, but all war."
In the meantime, Mavra
Chang felt more and more a prisoner in a pixie paradise as events passed her
by.
There was a storm
coming. They could see it in the billowing black clouds, hear the distant
thunder, and almost feel the glow of approaching lightning.
The Agitar commander
looked at the scene and nodded approvingly. "A fine day to end this
mess," she said to the field officers, the men who would lead. "There
is much charging potential there."
"Enough to knock
the mounts out from under us," muttered one officer glumly, wondering why
commanders who never had to go into battle themselves were always so cheerfully
optimistic when explaining what other lives should buy.
She sniffed. "No
defeatism today, Captain! You know as well as I do that the tast and your own
bodies will absorb the force. The saddles are insulated. The beast is used to
mild shocks. No, conditions favor us. The siege of the Djukasis Zone Gate
complex is well along; knock out the rest of their aerial defenses today, and
the froggies will easily take it over in the rain."
They went back to tell
their men.
Renard, too, was
watching the storm approach, with far different thoughts in mind. Over the past
week he'd become a good fighter, but electrocuting those bees sickened him. He
did it only because, if he did not, they would kill him with their projectile
weapons and stingers, suicidally if need be. But, those bees were people defending
their homes.
He was also scared.
Those bees weren't fools; they had learned, too, that they could turn more
quickly than a pegasus; hit the mount in the rear, out of reach of the Agitar
rider, and the beast plunged to its own and its rider's death. That had almost
happened to him twice now; it had happened to most of his friends already.
Captain Bir was
sarcastic but professional. "The final assault this time, for sure,
boys," he told them without any conviction whatsoever. "Same deal.
We're supposed to go in just ahead of the storm. When it hits, you'll draw
additional charges. Try and get in to the hive itself, give them all the juice
you've got. Fry it. As soon as the storm hits, clear out when you've shot your
wad. The froggies will drive in with the rain."
"But that'll leave them
with no air support, sir," one of the men pointed out.
He shook his head.
"That's D-Company's job. No, we get the easy part. Just go in ahead and
kill everything we can, then get out of there." They chuckled mirthlessly,
knowing that their job was the deadly part. "No," he concluded,
"just remember that you'll have an easy retreat. They can't fly in the
rain as we can. If it's good and hard, just let your mount bring you
home."
Renard nodded with the
rest, a plan forming in his mind. He'd seen earlier in the day at the captain's
tent a map of the overall route of march. He'd remembered from the moment he'd
heard it the official's statement that Mavra Chang was in a place called Lata.
The captain had been arguing with another officer, and he'd pointed to the map
on his tent wall, saying, "We can't flank that far north, Suo!
That's Lata, neutral territory!"
And it had been
northeast of their present position, about a day's flight. The pegasus wouldn't
mind rain. It liked rain and storms, with the Agitar to draw the lightning from
it. Water rolled off the animal with ease, not weighing it down at all. If that
storm were fierce enough, and he had guts enough, he told himself, he was going
to desert.
"Okay, boys! Let's
mount up!" the captain called. One last battle, one more battle.
Here we go, all
right. Renard thought grimly.
* * *
To the Makiem on the
ground, and to the great, red-eyed flying triangles that were the Cebu, it was
an awesome sight, even taking into account their different concepts of what was
grand. The storm was close now; the sky was filled with great black-and-orange
billowing clouds that rumbled and flashed, like lights flashing briefly, across
the panorama.
Against that came the
Agitar, tiny specks at first, then growing until they could be individually
distinguished across the storm-tossed sky. Great horses of many colors, broad
swanlike wings flapping gently in the rough air, in V-shaped formations—dozens
of them in the leading wave, then dozens more behind, protecting the flanks.
They came in fairly low;
the maximum altitude of the pegasus was between fifteen hundred and eighteen
hundred meters, and they generally stayed lower than that as a safety margin—in
this case much lower, due to the upper-air turbulence, perhaps no more than
three hundred meters above the ground troops.
Pterodactyllike Cebu,
red eyes blazing, moved off behind the Makiem ground troops to provide
additional cover for the incoming Agitar. Each of the great giant reptiles wore
a harness with twin harpoon tubes that could be aimed and triggered by a flick
of the head, then dropped down to be reloaded from quivers strapped to their
undersides.
The Makiem could almost
feel the great beating of those wings as they passed just overhead, and some of
the giant frogs cheered both in optimism and to release the tension from their
own impending jump-off.
The enemy, its forces
depleted by near-continuous battle, its reserves pulled in from North and
South, waited until the last moment before challenging. Their only hope was to
get inside the Cebu defensive screen and strike the great pegasi down by bullet
or stinger, even though the latter method would mean their own deaths as well.
The Agitar were in sight
of the objective now; the monstrous hive half above ground rose over thirty
meters in the air. It had been badly damaged by cannon fire and past aerial
attacks, but it had stood, torn though it was by great gaping holes and scars.
From its thousands of
tiny black pockmarks there appeared to be some sort of reflection of the storm
flashes, and it was—from the great, huge, multifaceted eyes of the defenders,
who now rose in highly organized, tight-knit swarms to meet the coming foe. The
two sides were joined in less than a minute.
The bees were huge, over
a meter long, with menacing stingers to match. But the stingers were also an
integral part of their backbone; to use it was to break it off—thus breaking
its back and causing death. They depended first on their
weapons—projectile-types, since theirs was a semitech hex, contained in the
large boxes located under the thorax, operated by one of the eight flexible,
clawlike legs that the furred black-and-gold creatures possessed. Spring-wound,
they could fire ten rounds a second, with a two-hundred-shot cartridge.
Actually, the bees'
greatest problem in aerial combat was their semi-automatic weapons; they had to
be careful in the increasingly rough air to keep from shooting one another down
as well.
The tactics were simple.
The bees formed a solid wave; the front line waiting until it was in easy range
of the Cebu screen and the first line of Agitar, then opening fire. When they
were spent, they would drop down and slow, letting the oncoming swarm pass over
them, so the next row was clear for a shot. If the progression went well, they
could drop back to the hive for additional cartridges and rejoin the back row.
But their forces were badly depleted; once the line had fired, it then became a
series of free agent aerial soldiers, coming up from below.
The Cebu's harpoons were
not as efficient as the Djukasis' machine guns; but, facing a swarm, they could
hardly miss. Their objective was to knock holes in the formation, then get into
the midst of the swarm, where great, sharp, teeth-filled beaks could rend and
tear in quarters too close for the machine guns to do any good.
The rumble of the
quickly oncoming storm and the tremendous air turbulence it created started to
tell on both sides as they struggled for balance.
The bees' leading line
of machine guns started, and some of the attackers were hit, falling from the
sky, to be replaced by those from the second and third waves so the formations
were maintained. The Djukasis' aim was off; they were having real problems
remaining stable in the storm-tossed air, and some were partially spun around
still firing, knocking holes in some of their own numbers.
The Cebu took advantage
of this, rushing up into the holes, firing their harpoons into soft Djukasis
bodies, then spearing, ripping, and tearing through the ranks while trying to
avoid the lethal stingers. Of the eighty-four Agitar in the leading
combination, only seventeen still flew, yet the formations were tight and
steady as the places of the fallen were taken by those behind. Despite the
Cebu's effectiveness, some of the Djukasis were penetrating now.
Renard had just moved up
into second wave position behind the leaders, and he didn't have time to think.
A great black-and-gold body suddenly swept up into his view on his left, and he
swung his own harpoon projector over and fired without thinking. The missile
struck the giant bee, and it went down without a sound.
There were more of them
now; they were flying directly into the swarm, now too close for the Djukasis
to use their machine guns but close enough for close-quarter combat.
Suddenly the Agitar drew
their tasts and energized them. They did not have to spear the enemy, only
touch him; that seemed easy to do; everywhere you swung the rods there seemed
to be Djukasis.
But not enough Djukasis,
not any more.
In past attacks over the
previous three days, a new swarm had popped out of that hive at the last
minute, and they had been unable to get directly into or on it. Now the
situation had changed. On either side of the saddle sat canisters of a highly
flammable liquid; now, for the first time, they were able to dump it onto the
hive.
They made their passes
and dumps; going back up into the still fierce aerial combat, then looped
again. More horses, men, and pterodactyls fell from the sky, but ten suicidal
defenders fell for every one of the attackers, and, unlike the attackers, they
had no more reserves. The leading edge of the Agitar then moved in again, very
low this time, so close they could see the impassive faces of the flightless
workers peering out at the grim battle from the cells and doorways of the hive.
The Agitar tied thin
copper wire to the hilts of their tasts and prepared to throw, being careful
that they didn't get tangled as they moved away.
Firing was coming from
the hive, but it was intermittent after the fuel dump; the burning smell and
feel of the liquid had driven them back under where it had hit, and the stuff
now pretty well saturated the top of the hive.
The copper wire
unreeled, ten meters, twenty, as the leading second wave was covered by, but
not followed in by, its backups. The Agitar were nearing the limits of the wire
reel, and, when the mark was reached on the reel, they energized the wire with
their hands.
Energy flowed along the
wires; electricity followed its natural pathway in this semitech hex. Though
only the Agitar would hold a charge here, it was enough.
Where the tasts had
stuck in the hive in places that had been wetted down by the flammable liquids,
and despite Djukasis efforts to get the tasts out and throw them to the ground,
the energy charge struck.
It only took one.
The liquid burst into
flame with a roar; a chemical fire that even the oncoming storm would be
hard-pressed to slow.
The Makiem on the ground
cheered as the blue-white flame and billowing smoke showed success, and they
grasped their own weapons and prepared to charge, rain or no.
With sudden explosive
fury, the storm hit, turning the field in front of the hive to a low-visibility
quagmire in seconds. The Makiem, who liked rain and muddy weather, leaped for
all they were worth.
As Renard turned from
the hive, amazed at the fact that he and Doma were still untouched as it was,
he felt the storm hit. For the first time he started to think, instead of act
on instinct. If he just relaxed, he knew that Doma would fly back to the base
camp; the horse had an unerring instinct for getting back to where she had
started from. Looking around in the driving rain, he was just barely able to
make out the Djukasis trying to get back to the hive but being knocked out of
the air by the force of the rain. A Cebu almost panicked him, flying across
directly in front, but it was on a different errand. The great flying reptiles
weren't much better in the rain than the Djukasis, and were going to ground
fast.
The water beaded and
rolled off Doma's back. Yet there were severe updrafts and downdrafts that the
great horse could not avoid, so it was a rocky ride, smoothed only slightly by
the horse's apparent ability to see changes in air pressure. When Renard
saw the direction Doma was taking, a million doubts assailed him. If he
deserted, he would have to fly through the teeth of the storm, perhaps battle
isolated back-country Djukasis on his way. And, once in Lata, he'd be a
castout, a man who could never go home again.
But he felt little loyalty
for the Agitar, although he liked them as individuals. He could not get away
from the fact that, behind all of the terrible carnage he had witnessed and had
been a part of, there was the grinning, self-satisfied egomania of Antor
Trelig.
And Mavra Chang.
Somehow, he knew, she had saved him, somehow her unwillingness to be defeated
had kept him alive. For what? To be killed in the next battle, in the next
hex, in Antor Trelig's cause?
No! his mind shouted
to him. Never! He owed her, and, in a different way, he owed
Antor Trelig something, too.
So he gently pulled and
turned the great green pegasus to the right, far to the right, and headed into
the fury about him.
The Czillian, Vardia,
entered Ortega's increasingly cluttered offices, a mass of computer printouts
and diagrams clutched in its two tentacles. Ortega was just switching off from
an intercom communication and glanced up as the plant-creature entered.
"New data?" he
asked, sounding more resigned than happy at the prospect.
Vardia nodded. "We
have run the projections through the computers at the center. Things don't look
good."
Ortega wasn't surprised.
Nothing looked good any more. "What have you got?" he asked glumly.
The Czillian spread out
the charts as well as some diagrams. Ortega couldn't read the normal Czillian
originals, but the computers at the great university and research center in the
plant hex had provided translations in Ulik. He studied them, expression
becoming increasingly grim.
"Ship design
certainly has changed in the past three hundred years," he commented.
"What did you
expect?" the Czillian asked him curtly. "After all, there were
periods in the past histories of many races when they went from primitive barbarism
to space in less time than that."
Ortega nodded. "But
it would help if I could understand more of the design theory," he said
wistfully. It didn't really matter, though; the computers could follow it—and
if the computers could follow it in Czill, then the computers of, say, Agitar
or Lamotien or a half-dozen others could, too.
"They made the
sectional cuts in just the right places," Vardia noted. "The pieces
were barely large enough for the Zone Gates, but they all fit—and we could
hardly stop them by rights anyway."
"Or force,
either," he pointed out. "No wars in Zone, eh?" He looked again
at the printout collection. "So the power plant is the only thing we
couldn't manage here? They're sure now? Wonder why?"
"You know the
answer," Vardia responded. "The plant is sealed and works off
principles we don't know. We could create a power plant, of course, but almost
certainly not with sufficient thrust to clear the adjacent nontech hexes before
they caused shutdown. You know what a miserable failure even our little
attempts with cameras have been. Moving a mass this size is, I think, beyond
us. It's built into the Well to keep us here. But the size of those engines
must indicate power. They could do it, if trajectory at launch was
nearly straight up."
Ortega admitted the
possibility. He had to—it was sitting there in mathematically precise black and
white in front of him. "But to make it work they'll need the
programming," he objected. "That means the Yaxa or nothing."
"Bullshit, and you
know it!" the Czillian shot back, displaying uncharacteristic emotion.
"So maybe it takes the Agitar a couple of years to jury-rig a replacement.
More likely they'll either deal or steal what's needed. You of all people
should know what politics and espionage on the Well World is like. You have
Yaxa agents, Dasheen agents, Makiem agents, Agitar agents—probably agents of
half the races on the planet."
Ortega didn't reply.
Being true, it wasn't worthy of a retort. He just smiled, but it was not a
satisfied smile. All of his old friends, all of those who owed him or were in
his pay, had provided a great deal of information. But no results. More, he was
well aware that the Yaxa would cheerfully double-cross their own parents to get
in on the deal, and the Lamotien were as trustworthy as rats in a cheese
factory. Whoever got the power supply would, politically, be able to put all
the pieces together, he felt sure. He wasn't the only competent backstabbing
puppet-master politician on the Well World, only the oldest and most experienced.
But the Czillian
printouts indicated the worst from a technical standpoint: the sections had
separated intact. They had landed, for the most part, in reasonably good shape.
Disassembly where necessary had been professional, knowledgeable, and at the
right points.
"What's the war
news?" Vardia asked apprehensively.
He sighed. "The
Djukasis were tough, but they were whipped. Klusid doesn't have a module, but
it does have atmospheric problems for them. It's a fight going around, but
there's a very heavy ultraviolet radiation in the Klusidian atmosphere. It's
what makes things so pretty and yet so strange there. Their atmosphere has
protected them from the Zhonzorp. But, I think the Makiem have managed a deal
with the Klusidians through an alliance with the Zhonzorp. The need for passive
radiation shielding will slow them down, but the Klusidians aren't able to
withstand the alliance from the west and those two-legged crocodiles from the
east. They'll give in, since it's only free passage they're seeking. With
Zhonzorp having both a module and a key position, they'll be natural allies.
The Agitar don't like them, but the Makiem and Cebu are interested because the
crocs are another high-tech hex, and can help see that the goat-folk don't do
any double-crossing themselves. I'd say the whole force of them will be at the
borders of Olborn within ten days at the outside, with Zhonzorp handling most
of the resupply problems."
Vardia looked at the
map. "Only two hexes from Gedemondas. What about the Yaxa?"
Ortega sniffed in such a
manner that it was evident that there was more bad news.
"While the Yaxa got
the Porigol module back, the Lamotien infiltrated Qasada. It only takes six
Lamotien to create an exact duplicate of those little rodents. Sabotage, false
information—and really effective, since the Lamotien are high-tech themselves
and knew where to throw everything out of gear. The Dasheen cow army wasn't a
big help, but it caused additional confusion, and its Yaxa advisors had done
their jobs well. There's still hard fighting there, though; it may be a week or
even two before they get through. The Yaxa will deal with the Palim—they're
great at that. Another five, six days to move through Palim with their stuff,
maybe one more to get the Palim module out, and they're on the Gedemondas
border."
"So the Yaxa will
get there first," the Czillian concluded, staring again at the map.
"Maybe, maybe
not," Ortega said. "Depends for one thing on the strength of the
Qasada resistance, and on whether the others listen to the Zhonzorp. I'd fly
over Alestol ferrying everybody in a continuous airlift. The air is
uncomfortable, and it stinks, but the Alestoli are barrel-shaped moving plants
that emit a variety of nasty noxious gasses. You can't talk to them—but they
have no air capability whatsoever. If the Makiem-Agitar-whatever alliance can
push through Olborn, I'd say that it might be a dead heat."
Vardia looked at Olborn.
"What do you know about the place?" it asked curiously.
The big snake-man shook
his head. "Not much. No ambassador I ever knew about. Sealed itself off
from the outside world. Anybody who tries to go in never comes out. They're
mammals there, air's okay, and my stuff says that they're a semitech hex with
light magic capabilities, whatever that means. You gotta watch those magic
types. All sons of bitches or fanatics—if there's a difference. Even Zhonzorp
goes around them, but I can't imagine the most powerful hex on this planet
standing against the kind of combination roaring in there. A magic hex tends to
rely on its magic too much for its defense; a good bullet stops a good spell
every time when you're outnumbered four to one by now well-seasoned
troops."
"So either one has
a crack at being first to Gedemondas," the Czillian mused. "And what
about them? Anything?"
Ortega shook his head.
"Nothing. Very high mountains, cold, and snowy mostly. They live high up.
They're big—Dillians have seen them, but only briefly. Big suckers, three
meters, all covered in snow-white fur, almost invisible against a snow field. Big
four-toed clawed feet. They shun all contact, but if you go in too far, they'll
drop an avalanche on your head."
The relief map showed a
mild plain at the Alestol-Palim-Gedemondas border, then tremendously high,
faulted mountains, four to five thousand meters many of them. Rough, cold
country.
"Any idea where in
Gedemondas the engine module fell?" Vardia asked the snake-man.
Serge Ortega shook his
head. "No, not really, and neither do they. Not on the plains area,
though." He hesitated. "Wait a minute! Maybe I do!" He rummaged
through a bunch of papers, cursing and fussing. Papers went everywhere, until
he finally came across a tattered yellow sheet of lined notepad. "Here it
is. The Agitar plotted the mass and shape of the mod from the pieces they already
recovered, checked climatological data and such, and came up with the probable
location. About sixty to a hundred kilometers inside the northeast border, give
or take ten. In the mountains, but still a needle in a smaller haystack."
"How in the world
did you get hold of—" the Czillian started, then decided questioning
Ortega wasn't worth it. He'd only lie, anyway. "Then there's not only the
possibility of a search, but, if they find it, there's a fifty-fifty chance
that the Gedemondas will either let them take it out or try to destroy them.
That's not a body to be deterred that easily in the latter case."
Ortega nodded.
"They're funny people, but we just don't know. That's the problem. We need
to know. We need to send somebody in there to try and talk to the Gedemondas,
ahead of the armies, if possible. Maybe they'll run away, maybe they'll try to
kill them, but we have to try. Warn them ahead of time. Offer to—"
Vardia turned and faced
him. "To take the engines off their hands, perhaps?"
Ortega shrugged.
"Or, failing that, to try and destroy them."
Vardia would have sighed
if it could. Instead, the Czillian asked, "Who do you have in mind for
this suicide mission to the frozen wastes? Count me out. I go dormant under two
or three degrees centigrade."
He chuckled. "No,
you had your fun once. Or one of you did, anyway. No, I don't like what I'm
thinking, but it keeps coming up the same answer. There's only one person
qualified to inspect the engines, decide if they can be moved, or, failing
that, know how to destroy them beyond repairing."
Vardia nodded.
"Mavra Chang. But you said she was too valuable to risk!"
"And so she
is," Ortega admitted. "It's a calculated risk, I agree. But she's the
only one who can do the technical end of the job for us. We'll try and minimize
the risk, of course. Send some other people along with her for protection, not
expose her to any needless risks."
"From what you've
said of her, I doubt that sincerely," the Czillian replied skeptically.
"But, all right. It's come down to this. We have been passive observers,
and we'll continue to be passive observers watching the Trelig or Yulin bunch
blast off for the satellite unless we do something. I agree action is called
for. I only wish we'd done something sooner."
"Sooner, none of us
thought either side had a prayer of actually making it," Ortega reminded
the plant-creature. "Now we know it's possible. It's now or never."
The Czillian turned.
"I'll notify my population and our friends as discreetly as possible. You
will assemble the personnel, I assume?"
Ortega smiled. "Of
course—subject to Czillian Crisis Center's approval, of course."
"Of course,"
Vardia echoed, not at all certain it made any difference.
Ortega went back to his
maps and was soon talking to himself. Xoda was out; the Yaxa would be there.
That left Olborn. Damn! . . .
He'd taken two days to
get to the Lata border, although Doma could have gotten him there in one. The
great horse would never let on, but it was almost worn out, and Renard had set
down as soon as they'd cleared the storm and he felt far enough away from the
war to be safe.
He had no provisions,
nor did this land provide any. Doma could eat the leaves of trees and the tops
of tall grasses, though, and there was water, so he felt she could survive.
Lata was the only idea in his mind; he would wait to eat there. Agitar were
omnivores, too; if Mavra Chang could exist there, so could he.
He had a couple of close
shaves before he made the border. Some of the hives had left skeleton guard
forces, and he was occasionally called upon to fight, but such action was
scattered and usually broke off when he turned to avoid combat. There were too
few of them to get drawn far from the hives.
Still, he was feeling
mentally and physically exhausted, drained. His internal charge was down to a
mere pop, and he wondered if a certain amount of stored energy was necessary
for his body. Probably; it filled some need in his now alien biochemistry or it
wouldn't be there. He stopped several times to run and thereby get a little
back into him, and it did help, although he was otherwise so physically
washed out that the running, prancing, and turning soon had him winded.
But now here it was—the
goal in sight from five hundred meters. He had not yet gotten over the
incredible sight of a hex border. It shimmered a little from the effect of the
two different atmospheric compositions—not terribly different, but enough, like
some odd clear plastic curtain. At the border, the life and terrain, often
weather, stopped and was replaced by a dramatically different scene. Only the
landforms and water bodies were constant; rivers flowed through without notice,
seas of one washed on beaches of another, and foothills like those below
continued on unbroken.
Djukasis was a dry hex;
the thunderstorm was a rarity this time of year, and yet such sudden and
violent storms provided most of the hex's rainfall. The grass was yellowish,
the trees tough and spindly.
Now, at the Lata border,
there suddenly started a deep-green carpet of rich grass, and tall, thick trees
with great green leaf-covered branches reaching up for the sky, broken here and
there by pools, meadows, and rolling glens. There was no sign of roads and, in
the bright sunlight, no sign of people, either.
He wished he knew what
kind of people lived there.
About a thousand meters
into the hex, when he was still feeling the effects of a quadrupling of the
humidity and a ten-degree temperature rise at least, he found out.
Multicolored energy
bursts outlined Doma, who reacted nervously but had no place to go but back.
They're shooting
at me! he thought in panic, then realized that the bursts were intended to
discourage, not kill. Not yet, anyway.
He took the hint and
made a 180-degree turn, crossing back into Djukasis. The moisture-hungry air of
the bee's home started to dry his perspiration-soaked upper torso under his
combat jacket, which he hadn't yet shed.
He set Doma down as
close to the border as possible and jumped off, looking warily just across the
line, wondering who or what was looking back at him. He took off his uniform
jacket and tossed it away, leaving just the standard military blue briefs.
Taking Doma's reins, he cautiously proceeded back to the border, leading the
horse on the ground.
This time, only ten or
fifteen paces inside the border, he was challenged. The trouble was, it sounded
like a lot of angry bells; he couldn't understand a word of it.
He stopped, looking out
at the silent forest. The bells stopped, too, waiting. He pointed to himself.
"Renard!" he shouted. "Entry!" That second word was
different in most languages, though, he realized. It might not be understood
here. "Mavra Chang!" he called out. "Mavra Chang!"
That set off more discussion.
Finally, the universal rules set themselves in motion. When in doubt, pass the
buck.
He put up his hands in
what he hoped was a recognizable sign of surrender, hoping they, too, had hands
and could understand his meaning.
They did. Suddenly a whole
host of them erupted from the trees, armed with nasty-looking energy rifles. As
a Djukasis veteran, he also immediately noticed the pretty but obvious
stingers.
Pixies! he thought in
surprise. Little flying girls. A high-tech hex, though; those rifles looked
plenty effective, and whether that antiaircraft fire was automatic or them
shooting, they could hit anything they wanted, of that he had no doubt.
They surrounded him,
looked wonderingly at Doma, and made unmistakable gestures that he was to move
ahead. He saw that they all wore goggles and seemed very uncomfortable. He
suspected that they were nocturnal creatures. They led him to a clearing a few
thousand meters farther on; one of them made a lot of sign-language gestures
that gave no doubt as to their meaning. He was to stay there and make no move,
and he would be covered, so no funny business, or else.
That suited him. He was
used to waiting now. Doma grazed on the rich new grass, and he stretched out
and went to sleep.
* * *
Vistaru came into Mavra
Chang's ground-level quarters in a hurry.
"Mavra?"
She had been lying there
on a specially constructed bed, looking over Well World maps and geographies,
mostly children's picture books. You didn't learn a complex language in a few
weeks, particularly one established for a vocal system you couldn't imitate.
"Yes,
Vistaru?" she responded, weary and bored from doing nothing.
"Mavra, there is
one of the creatures involved in the war who came in from the Djukasis border a
few minutes ago. We just got a radio report."
The news was mildly
interesting, but didn't change her situation at all. "So?"
"He came in on a
huge flying horse! You won't believe it! Gigantic, pale green. And, Mavra—he
kept calling for you! Over and over! By name!"
She was on her feet in a
moment. "What did this creature look like?"
The Lata shrugged.
"An Agitar, they say. Bigger than Lata, smaller than you. All dark blue
and fuzzy at the bottom."
She shook her head.
"That's a new one on me. What do you think? A trick?"
"If it is, it's
misfired," the Lata responded firmly. "Anything funny and he'll never
leave Lata alive. They asked whether you'd talk to him."
"If I can,"
she replied, and walked out.
There was no problem
getting her there quickly. Although the Lata flew and hence had no need for
roads or aircraft, they did have to move freight and foodstuffs all over. They
just diverted a large, crate-laden truck on government authority and much to
the driver's disgust. Mavra Chang and three thousand crates of apples sped
south to the border in a flatbed dual-rotor helicopter, skimming the treetops.
The trip took about three hours, and the sun was into late afternoon when they
arrived. With a straight axial tilt, all hexes had equal amounts of daylight, a
little over fourteen standard hours each.
The pegasus was really
as grand and beautiful as had been described, and its rider was as short,
squat, and ugly.
"Cute little
devil," Mavra muttered mostly to herself—and that's what the face looked
like. An old Traditionist's view of the devil in dark-blue and black hair. The
creature had awakened when the helicopter approached, and stood and walked
around. The thick body and the terribly thin legs looked almost impossible; he
moved as if on tiptoe, and reminded Mavra of a costumed ballet dancer.
Guards armed with energy
pistols motioned him to a cleared area and flanked him on all sides. He
wondered idly what bigwig had come to see this new intrusion, but then he
looked again and there was no mistake.
"Mavra!" he
cried, and started to move toward her. The guards were quick, no doubt about
it. He stopped cold. He pointed to himself. "Renard, Mavra! Renard!"
She was more than
surprised. Although she knew the system of the Well—it had been explained at
length to her—this was the first time it really hit her in the face. She
chuckled, then turned to Vistaru. "This translator—can I talk to
him?"
She nodded. "You
have a translator," the Lata reminded her.
"Renard?" she
called out. "Is that really you?"
He beamed. "It's me,
all right! A little changed, but still me inside! I traded sponge for
goat!" he called back.
She laughed.
Communication worked fine. He understood her Confederation, the translator took
care of the Agitar.
"Are you sure it's
really Renard?" one of the border guards asked her. "Somebody you
know? A lot of folks have claimed to be a lot of other folks lately."
She nodded, thinking it
over. Then she yelled, "Renard! They need proof that you're you. And, to
tell the truth, so do I. And there's only one question I can think of that only
our side would know, so forgive me." He nodded, and she went on.
"Renard, who was the last old-type human being you made love to?"
He frowned, embarrassed
by the question even as he saw the logic of it. Only Mavra, he himself, and the
person involved would know the answer, and she would have no reason for
deception. "Nikki Zinder," he replied.
She nodded. "It's
Renard. Not only the answer but the way he made it sound so terrible convinces
me. Let him come to me or me to him."
The guards still weren't
all that certain. "But he's an Agitar!" one growled. "One of them."
"He's Renard, no
matter what," she responded, and walked briskly out to him. The guards
kept at the ready, but appeared resigned.
She was taller than he,
now—maybe ten centimeters with her boots on, three or four without. He was ugly
as sin and smelled like a goat, but she hugged him and kissed him lightly on
the forehead, laughing.
"Renard! Let me
look at you! They told me this would happen, but somehow I couldn't really
believe it!"
He was slightly
embarrassed again, from his strange new form and, oddly, because the Agitar
part of his brain didn't really react to her as a woman, but as another, alien
creature. He began to realize just how much he'd changed.
Mavra turned to Doma,
who looked up as she cautiously approached. "He's beautiful!" she
breathed. "Can I—touch him? Will he mind?"
"She," Renard
corrected. "Her name is Doma. Let her look you over for a moment and then
rub the spot between her ears when her head droops. She likes that."
Mavra did as instructed,
and found the great pegasus friendly, curious, and responsive.
She walked around,
looking at the saddle between the great, now-folded wings and the neck. It was
a sophisticated device—altimeter, air-speed and ground-speed indicator,
everything.
She turned to him.
"You'll have to take me up on her sometime," she said longingly.
"I'd love to see her fly. "But tell me everything that's happened,
first."
"If you'll get me
some food—any fruits or meats will do that you can eat," he replied
lightly. "I'm starving to death!!"
They sat there in the
glen until the sun was down and the pixie people were out in force. He told her
of waking up in Agitar, of Trelig, of being drafted, and of the war and his
experiences. She sympathized, while secretly wishing to be in the thick of what
he had escaped from, and told him a simplified version of how they'd been
hypnotized to minimize the sponge effects, of their capture by the Teliagin,
their Latan rescue, and how they'd gotten to Zone.
"What about
Nikki?" he asked. "Do you know where she got to? I haven't really
stopped thinking about her. She's so young and so naïve—tough to be out cold on
this world. I know.
Mavra looked at her
shadow, Vistaru, who'd joined them. Vistaru shook her head. "Nothing on
either Zinder. That's curious. It's not impossible to remain undetected here,
of course, but doing so is rare. The old politicians have somebody in
their pocket in half the South." She spoke in Lata, and Mavra translated.
"So we might lose track of one—but both? It's very strange. We would like
to know where they are.
"It's as if the
Well opened and swallowed them up."
* * *
Several days passed,
happy ones for Renard, diverting ones for Mavra, whose boredom was at least
slightly relieved by the man. He taught her to fly Doma; it was easy for her,
she found, although some of the maneuvers required more muscle power than she
could easily manage. She decided that she would never be mistress of that great
horse, but it was still a great feeling to fly.
And then the Southern
alliance reached Olborn. It was ahead of schedule by several days; Zhonzorp,
whose people the books said looked like crocodiles standing erect and who wore
turbans, cloaks, and all sorts of strangely exotic stuff, had been invaluable.
A high-tech hex, it gained them both time and a rest by moving them across the
terrain by rail.
That's when Vistaru came
to them, with a visitor, an older male-mode Lata.
"This is Ambassador
Siduthur," she introduced the newcomer. At Mavra's insistence they had
fitted Renard with a translator, which helped immensely, made him feel more in
command of himself again.
Mavra and Renard nodded
courteously.
"As you know, both
wars are going well," Siduthur began, "which means that they are
going badly for us. Our friends in other hexes tell me that one or the other of
the alliances will surely win, that it is in fact possible to reassemble the
ship, and that, if nothing is done, we will face a space-capable Well alliance
that could gain control of the satellite and its computer. We can no longer sit
idly by and let this happen."
At last! Mavra thought,
but she kept silent as the Latan ambassador continued.
"The only
possibility we have is the hope that Gedemondas can be talked into either
turning the engines over to us or destroying them." He told them about the
silence and reticence of the Gedemondas. "So, you see, we need to get
someone in there. Explain things to the Gedemondas if such is possible. Get
their cooperation if that first is achieved, and—whether we get cooperation or
not—if we can not get those engines, make certain that they are destroyed
beyond any means of reconstruction!"
Mavra leaped on it.
"I'm the only one who can make sure of that," she pointed out.
"None of the rest of you know the power plant from the cargo hold, and
none of you would be able to tell if the thing were damaged or destroyed."
"We're aware of
that," the ambassador replied. "We should have liked to have a few
more days to gather together some better people to go with you. The trouble is,
the best-qualified help is too distant, and the more local help is either
conquered, under siege, or unwilling to get involved, the fools. The best we
can do is have an expert Dillian get around and meet you near the Gedemondas
border. They are neighbors, good in cold weather, and know about as much of the
Gedemondans as anybody. At least, you're not as likely to be ambushed by the
Gedemondans with a nonthreatening life form they at least know accompanying
you."
"I'll go,
too," Renard volunteered. "Doma can carry Mavra as well as me, and
that should speed things up."
The ambassador nodded.
"We had planned on it. We're not a hundred percent trusting of you,
Agitar, but we believe sincerely in your attachment for Mavra Chang. That is
enough. Vistaru and Hosuru, another Entry and former pilot, will also go with
you."
"Another
Entry?" Mavra asked. "I thought they were scarce and that Vistaru,
here, was the only one of my kind—"
"That is
true," the ambassador cut in. "Hosuru was not one of your kind
before."
It may have been racial
pride, or ego, or just chauvinism, but it was the first time either Renard or
Mavra Chang had even considered a spacefaring race other than their own.
"What was this
Hosuru?" Mavra asked. "And how many other spacefaring races are there
that wound up here?"
"Sixty-one at last
count, in the South. Nobody knows about the North," the ambassador
replied. "Certainly as many. She was once one of what we call the
Ghlmones, which one of your people long ago described as little green
fire-breathing dinosaurs, whatever that means."
Hosuru wasn't a
fire-breathing dinosaur anymore. Still in the female mode, she looked
absolutely identical to Vistaru except for being a deep brown in contrast to
the other Lata's passionate pink.
The ambassador opened a
map. "We are here," he told them, pointing to a hex. "To our
east is the Sea of Storms. As you can see, the best route would be over Tuliga
and Galidon to Palim, which has to be crossed sooner or later anyway. However,
the Galidon are fierce carnivores and the atmosphere above the waters is not
conducive to flying, so that's out. That means crossing Tuliga to this point
here, landing in Olborn. The Tuliga are rather nasty giant sea slugs, but they
shouldn't bother you if you don't bother them."
"Doma's good for
about four hundred kilometers if pushed," Renard said, "but that's a
good deal farther."
"It is," the
ambassador agreed. "There are, however, a few small islands along the way,
so you can set down to rest. On no account must you go into the water! It is
also brackish, not good for drinking, but the islands are volcanic and should
have small crater lakes. Pick your camp spot well."
"Anything living on
the islands we should know about?" Mavra asked cautiously.
The ambassador shook his
head. "Nothing but birds, perhaps a few crustaceans of no importance. No,
the problem will be when you reach land again—with the Porigol supporting the
Yaxa, there is simply no way around Olborn."
"But this
Olborn—isn't it the next target of the Makiem, Cebu, and Agitar?" Renard
asked worriedly. "Won't they be likely to confuse us with their
enemy?"
"Truthfully, we
haven't the slightest idea," the ambassador admitted. "They are in
many ways as unknown as the Gedemondas. Catlike creatures, I understand, with
semitech capabilities and, it says in the references, limited magic, although I
don't quite know what that means. Even so, you need only cross it at the top.
The attack from Zhonzorp to the extreme south might actually help you by
drawing off whatever fighters and major power the Olbornians have."
"We hope,"
sighed the worried Renard. "Then what?"
"By air over Palim,
as close to the border as you can in order to avoid as much as possible meeting
the Yaxa alliance that might well be marching through at about the same time. Don't
cut south into Alestol, though, whatever you have to do! They are fast-moving
plants that can direct poisonous gases that have effects that are sometimes
fatal and always bad. They are carnivores who could digest any of you. Leave
them to the Makiem and their cohorts to deal with. You must get to
Gedemondas ahead of the others at all costs! Our only hopes rest with you.
Can you do it?"
Mavra Chang wanted
action so badly she could taste it. "With a little luck, and occasional
help, I've never failed a commission yet," she said confidently.
"This is the sort of mission I've been waiting for!"
The ambassador looked at
her warily. "This is not the Com," he reminded her. "The rules
change quickly here."
Their crossing, while
uneventful, took three precious days. They flew over choppy seas in Tuliga, and
the wind was against them most of the way. On the few daylight hours of
relative calm they were able to spot coral reefs teeming with great numbers of
multicolored fish, and, here and there, shadowy black bulks of great size.
They kept at a safe
altitude, not wanting to risk any chance that one of those dark shapes might
somehow rise out of the water and bring them down. It was more peaceful when
they reached the Galidon border, but the atmosphere looked a little strange
over there, and they headed in toward the point of land that marked one of
Olborn's six points on the Tuligan side.
Olborn itself seemed a
welcome relief—solid-looking, mostly coastal plain, a little chilly, but they
had brought protective clothing with them. Nothing in the place looked grim,
foreboding, or threatening.
They waited until
darkness fell before making a landfall on the beach. They had decided to camp
there, within easy reach of a quick getaway and with the great Doma as
concealed as she could be.
No roads had led down to
the coast, they'd been certain of that. With watery neighbors like the Galidon,
they didn't find this the least bit unusual.
It was a clear night;
above, the spectacular sky of the Well World was displayed in all its glory,
and, off to the north, a silvery disk covered part of the horizon.
It was the first time
they had been in the right position with the right weather at the right moment
to see New Pompeii. They stared at it in silence, thinking.
"So close, so
damned close," Mavra Chang whispered under her breath. It looked like you
could reach out and touch it. She thought of the poor people who had almost
certainly died there by now, and of the kindly, near-human computer, Obie, who
had helped her escape. She wanted to get back to that place, and she swore to
herself that she would, someday.
They turned in. Although
the Lata were nocturnal, the trip had been a long and tiring one, the daytime
travel taking more out of them, and they, too, slept. A watch was established,
of course.
Mavra had second watch;
the Lata would take the later ones, when they'd be at their peak. She sat
there, looking out at the slightly rough sea, hearing the roar of the surf, and
watching the skies.
They were glorious
skies, she thought. Her element, the place to which she'd been born, the place
for which she's done everything, even sold herself, to attain. She looked at
the others sleeping. The Lata were perfect here. Flying on those tiny wings
would be fun, and there were no political or sexual pressures in their land to
shape what happened. Even being short didn't matter; they all looked alike. But
their world was 355 kilometers on each of its six sides. Such a minute place, a
stiflingly small area when you looked at those skies.
Renard, too, was better
off here. The Well World was certainly bigger than New Pompeii, and more
stimulating than new Muscovy. He was a walking dead man in the old life; here
he had some power, a future, and, if things worked out, could possibly rise
high in Agitar if they lost the war. From what he'd said of the people's
sentiments, a defeat would bring down the government, and one who helped end
the war rather than press it would be more hero than, as he was now, traitor.
But not Mavra Chang. The
Well World was an adventure, a challenge, but it was not her element. To go
through the Well someday and come out something else—it wouldn't matter. The
Well didn't change you inside, only physiologically. She would still want the
stars.
Her reflections were
broken by subtle sounds not far off. She wasn't sure she heard anything for a
short time, and she listened intently as her ears strained for them. She had
just decided that she was imagining things, when she heard the noise again, off
to the northwest, there, not very far—and closer.
She considered waking
the others, but then thought better of it. The sounds had stopped. Still, she
decided, a little investigation might be in order. A yell from her would rouse
the others in a hurry anyway, and there was no use waking them for nothing.
Silently, softly, she crept
toward where she'd last heard the sounds. There was a thin clump of trees near
a marshland river mouth just up from the sounds; she decided that whatever made
them had to be there. Slowly, carefully, she moved into the thin line of trees.
She heard a sound again
to her right, and headed for it. Crouching behind a bush, she peered out.
There was a strange,
large bird there. Its body was something like a peacock's, its head a round
ball, out of which came a beak that looked almost like a tiny air horn. Its
eyes were round and yellow, reflecting the starlight. It was nocturnal, then.
She breathed a sigh of relief, and the bird must have heard her. It turned and
said, rather loudly and a little rudely, "Bwock wok!"
"Bwock wok,
yourself," Mavra whispered, and turned to go back to the nearby camp.
The trees exploded.
Large bodies dropped all around her, one on top of her. "Renard!" she
screamed. "Vistaru!" But that was all she had time for.
Something seemed to cover her head, blotting out all consciousness.
* * *
Doma started, and all
three of the others snapped awake at the two cut-short screams.
Renard saw them as the
Lata took off; large shapes rushing them from the nearby trees. He almost made
it to Doma, when one of them, much taller and furrier than he and with glowing
yellow-black eyes, got a hand on him.
That was a mistake.
There was a crackle, the
Olbornian screamed, and there was the odor of burning hair and flesh. Another
one was trying for Doma's reins, but the horse backed away as Renard leaped aboard.
The Olbornian snarled and turned to reach out for Renard.
The Agitar got the
vision of a great black cat's face, with terribly luminous slit cat's eyes, and
he touched a hairy, clawed hand with three fingers and a thumb.
Which sent the Olbornian
to cat heaven.
Doma didn't need any
cuing. Knowing its rider was aboard, the great winged horse thundered down the
beach, knocking over black shapes not lucky enough to get out of the way, and
it was airborne.
The Lata, whose stingers
had helped clear the way, flew to him.
"We have to find
Mavra!" Renard screamed. "They have her!"
"Stay in this
area!" Hosuru shouted. "We don't know what they have and we can't
afford to lose Doma! We'll go after her, and if we can't free her one of us
will stay with her while the other comes back for you!"
It wasn't what he wanted
to do, but he had no choice. Neither Doma nor he had exceptional night vision,
and if the Lata lit up they'd all make perfect targets.
* * *
The two Lata, however,
saw best in the dark. Just beyond the river there was a coach of some sort; a
finely wrought piece of woodwork moving on great wooden wagon wheels pulled by
a team of eight tiny burrolike animals. Four Olbornians, armed with projectile
pistols, stood on running boards around it; two more drove it, one controlling
the little mules and the other holding a sleek, effective-looking rifle. The
doors and windows to the coach were sealed with hinged wooden panels. From the
way the driver cracked the whip on the poor little animals, they knew what the coach's
cargo had to be.
"We can't do
anything but follow the damned thing," Vistaru swore. "Renard can
take care of himself."
That was more than
heartfelt sentiments. In all his time in Lata, he'd not discharged. They knew
he carried a lot of static electricity, but until the brief fight they'd not
realized how much or how lethal.
The coach beat down the
grass until it reached a smooth, tar-paved road, and sped along it to the east.
It was not terribly fast, and the Lata had no trouble keeping just behind and
above it, out of sight.
"We could sting
them to death," Vistaru said wistfully.
"How much you got
left?" Hosuru snapped. "I used mine three times. I'm nearly
dry."
The odds weren't that
good.
They studied the
Olbornians and their coach. The Creatures were about 180 centimeters high; they
were all completely covered in black fur, but they also wore some sort of
clothing, baggy dark trousers of some sort and sleeveless shifts with a light
border and woven insignia in the center. They had long, black, apparently
functionless tails, and sleek cat's bodies, but their arms and legs were
muscular, and they obviously walked upright on two legs naturally.
The little mules were
something else. They looked somehow sad, pathetic, and wrong. Their hind
legs were taller by perhaps twenty percent than their forelegs; they were a
little over a meter high, and they had long necks curving upward so they looked
ahead instead of down. Their long ears were large in proportion to their heads,
and they had no tails. They were covered in a soft, uniform gray fur.
They were being badly
pushed and mercilessly whipped; they were certainly too small and too few for
the weight they were being asked to pull, but they managed it, their short,
trotting-horse gait getting the wagon there, helped somewhat by the smoothness
of the road.
Finally, they turned in
at a magnificent estate—a truly grand-looking palace whose horseshoe-shaped
driveway was lit by torches; more torches flanked the doors, and there were
rifle-armed guards dressed in the same way as those on the coach. The coach
pulled to a halt and the Olbornians jumped off efficiently. A door facing the
estate was opened, and two more of the creatures emerged, then turned and
carefully removed a large black object from the coach.
It was Mavra Chang, and
she looked stiff as a board.
"Is she dead?"
Hosuru worried.
Vistaru shook her head.
"No, they're being too careful for that. Drugged, probably."
"Now what?"
the other Lata asked.
Vistaru thought a
moment. "First, go back, tell Renard what happened, where we are—describe
the place. Then help him find some place to sit down for a while. I'll keep
watch here, try to find where in this palace they've put her. Tomorrow, when
Renard's at his peak, we'll come get her no matter what."
* * *
Mavra Chang regained
consciousness slowly, and it took some time for her to get her bearings. She
looked around, finding she couldn't move her head, only her eyes. She couldn't
move anything.
She was standing up,
propped slightly against a wall. She thought that her hands and feet were
securely tied, but she couldn't be sure.
The place was a stable.
It stank of animal excrement and rotted straw, and on the walls were odd-shaped
harnesses.
She strained to look
around, but whatever they had drugged her with held her securely. She did see
one of the animals, though, briefly. A queer-looking thing. No, that wasn't
right, everything on this cockeyed world was queer-looking, she told herself.
But because the creature looked so much like draft animals that she'd known
back in the human worlds, "queer-looking" was the only way to
describe it.
They looked for all the
world like miniature mules. Black nose, big, squared-off snout, but with
jackass-type ears that seemed too large for that head. A very long neck, almost
too long, attached to a small body supported at an angle, the slender front
legs shorter than the rear ones, which had the characteristic large upper calf
and almost incredibly thin lower.
And sad, large brown
eyes.
They also bore scars;
some from whips, some from other unknown sources.
Three Olbornians entered
the room, two in the black-and-gold livery, the third wearing some sort of
crown and a long gold chain from which was suspended a hexagonal pendant. His
own livery was scarlet, with baggy golden trousers. Somebody important. He was
also old—he walked slowly, and there were tinges of gray in his black fur.
He walked into the
doorway, almost running into the little minimule. He snarled and swatted it cruelly,
claws extended. The thing gave no sound, but there was obvious pain and Mavra
could see a set of bleeding scratches. It jumped and moved away.
These were a cruel,
callous people.
The old one looked at
her. "So, spy! Awake, eh? Good!" He turned to the others. "See
to it. We'd best be off. Her companions may try some sort of rescue, so we have
to move fast."
Mavra felt relief at
these words; the other three had escaped! And, somehow, they would get her out
of there, she felt sure. She was necessary to them.
She felt like a puppet
with lead wires in it so it could be bent in any shape and would stay there.
They put her on top of one of the little mules, in a basic saddle. The big man
led it down a back path from the rear of the house, into a dark grove of trees.
The two guards held her firmly on, but she was powerless to do anything anyway.
Overhead, Vistaru almost
missed the departure. There was just a glimpse of the woman and her three
catlike captors going out the back and heading into the woods. She followed and
tried to guess ahead.
About two thousand
meters down, the woods parted for a clearing where there was a large stone
structure seemingly carved out of the small hillside. Two other guards were
there, having just lit torches on either side of a hexagonal entranceway. Not a
Zone Gate, she decided. That stuff had been built by somebody here.
She strained to think
what the place reminded her of, and, all at once, she had it. An ancient
temple. An altar. Sacrifice?
She sped directly back
to Renard and Hosuru. There was no time to lose.
* * *
They lifted her off when
they came to the hexagonal opening and carried her gently inside. There was a
chamber there, an enlargement of a natural cave of limestone or something
similar. Torches had been lit along the fairly broad passageway, which opened
quickly into the main chamber.
It was a temple, no
question about it. There was an area for supplicants to stand, a rail, and then
tables set on either side of a large yellow stone that seemed to be protruding
out of the natural rock in back. It was multifaceted; millions of them, from
all evidence, reflecting the torchlight as if it had a strange, eerie life of
its own. Mounted on the both walls, in solid gold, were outlines of the hexagon
symbol.
The high priest, for by
now it was evident what he was, preceded them, lighting small candles in
ceremonial holders, six per holder. Then he went behind the rail. Satisfied all
was in readiness, he nodded to the guards to bring her forward. They did,
placing her facing the strange yellow stone.
"Undress it,"
the priest snapped, and the guards removed her black cloth shirt, black pants,
and boots. It was suddenly chilly.
She was nude.
The guards tossed the
clothing in a heap outside the altar rail. She longed to be able to use some of
the things in those boots or the belt, or even to try the nail venom on them.
But she was held motionless by something she could not control.
The priest moved toward
her, motioning for them to turn her a little bit toward him. His yellow cat's
eyes glowed weirdly in the torchlight.
"Spy," he
said, his voice crisp, businesslike, and without a trace of mercy or compassion
in it, "you have been judged guilty by the High Priestly Council of the
Blessed Well," he intoned, bowing his head slightly when pronouncing the
last two words. He made a horizontal motion with his right hand, and she felt
control return to her head. She moistened her lips, but knew she could talk.
"I didn't even have
a trial and you know it!" she protested hoarsely. "I haven't had a
chance to say anything!"
"I did not say you
were tried," the priest pointed out, "only that you were judged.
There are no mitigating factors. Heathen knock on our door to the north,
worse heathen wantonly and horribly kill tens of thousands of the Chosen of the
Well to the south. Now, you come. You are not of the Olborn, certainly. Nor are
you here by invitation or permission of the High Priestly Council of the
Blessed Well." Again the slight nod. "A spy you are, and so I ask
you, is there any way for you to conclusively prove your innocence?"
What a loaded question!
she thought. Prove you didn't smile. Prove you didn't kill your mother whom the
court never knew or heard of. "You know no one can prove they aren't something,"
she retorted.
He nodded. "Of
course. But there is a final arbiter of justice."
"You're going to
kill me," she said more than asked.
The priest looked
genuinely shocked. Mavra wondered why she'd always liked cats in the past.
"Of course we do
not kill, except in self-defense. All life is from the Blessed Well, and cannot
be taken lightly. As you took no other life, unlike your companions, we could
not take yours."
Both parts of that observation
cheered her a little. Alive meant hope, and the news that the others had sent
some of these religious fanatics to an early grave was just as satisfying.
"The Well, in Its
infinite wisdom and mercy," the priest explained, as if in a liturgy,
"established among the Olbornians a more equitable means of final
judgment—final, absolute, and conclusive. The stone that is before you is one
of six, located near the six corners of Olborn. It is proof of the favored
status of the Olbornians with the Blessed Well. Its power comes from the Well
Itself. What it does has never been undone."
This tack started
unnerving her again. She thought of Renard, changed into a different creature.
What the hell did this thing do?
"The Well, in Its
infinite wisdom," continued the priest, "saw that Its Chosen People
were in a harsh land, rich but without beasts of burden to help Its Chosen
People till the good soil, pull its burdens, turn its water wheels. Thus we
have the Sacred Stones. When a transgressor, whether alien or Olbornian, is
accused, he is brought before one of the High Priests of the Blessed Well, and
thence in his company to the Sacred Stone. Should you be innocent, then nothing
will happen to you. You will be free to go on your way, unmolested, protected
by the Seal of the Blessed Well. But, should you be guilty, it will mete out
the most wonderful of justices." He paused. "You saw the detik upon
which you were carried here?"
She thought a moment.
The little mules with the big ears and sad eyes. "Yes," she replied,
curious and apprehensive. Where the hell were the Lata and Renard?
"They are sexless,
joyless. Totally placid, they are incapable of harming anything, and are forced
to obey our commands. Should you be guilty, you will turn to a detik, a beast
of the fields, condemned to serve the Olbornians in silent labor the rest of
your life."
She was appalled,
unbelieving. "You mean the mules—all of them—were once people?"
The priest nodded.
"It is so." He turned to the guards. "Hold her arms tight,"
he cautioned. Then he turned back to Mavra. She felt strong hands holding her
arms just behind the wrist. The priest waved his arms again, and she felt
movement return to her whole body.
"Touch her hands to
the Sacred Stone!" the priest commanded, his voice echoing through the
damp cavern. The two powerful arms ignored her twisting and pushed her
unwilling hands to the faceted yellow orb.
Something like a strong,
burning electric shock went through her arms to her shoulders. The effect was
so strong and so painful that she screamed and actually pulled away from the
wretched thing despite the strength of her two captors.
"That was
Mavra!" Vistaru yelled. "Come on! Hurry!" she called to Hosuru
and Renard, who rushed ahead. Neither cared any more if there was a whole army
ahead; they were going in now.
Inside the chamber, the
priest seemed to smile and intoned, "Again!" This time the terrible
shock and pain went from her hips to her toes, and, strangely, wound up in her
ears. Again she screamed and fought to pull away.
"Again!" the
priest commanded, but at that moment the onrushing Lata and Agitar charged,
Renard yelling bloodcurdling screams that echoed terrifyingly off the cavern
walls.
The priest turned,
looking stunned and surprised. Like most fanatics, the concept that anybody
would invade his holiest of places had simply never occurred to him, and he
couldn't handle it. He stood there petrified. Not the two guards. They dropped
Mavra and whirled. They had no pistols, which was fortunate, but they bore
ceremonial steel swords, which they drew.
Keeping all their
attention on the guards and priest, Renard and Vistaru both yelled, "Run,
Mavra! Get out of here! We'll handle this!"
The first guard took
advantage of this distraction to advance on Renard, sword poised, saberlike, in
front of him.
Renard smiled grimly,
and moved his tast out in a similar manner, as if preparing to duel. The guard
looked at the thin, snaky copper-clad whip and chuckled. He moved with his
sword, and Renard brought the tast up, touching the sword.
Sparks flew, and the
guard screamed and dropped to the floor of the cavern, the point where his hand
gripped the hilt actually smoking slightly.
Vistaru, who still had
some venom left, swooped at the other one, suddenly turning on her internal
light to catch the foe off-guard. He was too good for that, and he stabbed in
with his sword.
And missed.
She did an aerial
backflip and plunged her stinger into his stomach, then pushed off him. The
guard yowled, then seemed to stiffen, as he dropped to the floor, limp, lying
eyes wide-open and unseeing.
Mavra felt the guards
release their grip on her and felt the cold stone as they dropped her. Her
whole body was tingling and her mind wouldn't clear, but she had enough sense
to hear Renard's shout to run, and take that advice. A naked, stunned Mavra
Chang wasn't going to be much good in a fight.
She was dizzy, and
couldn't seem to get up, so she took off on all fours. Her head seemed heavy;
she couldn't lift it, but she could see enough to head for the exit and did so,
almost knocking over the guard just now meeting his end from Renard's tast. She
wanted to crawl fast, but she couldn't lift her head up far enough; a nerve in
the back of it was killing her, and her hair was hanging down in front, further
obscuring her vision. But she made the steps and scampered out, passing the
now-dead guards slumped under their still burning torches. Out ahead, she could
see, was blackness, and that was where she wanted to be.
She crawled into the
bushes before she stopped, chest heaving, and tried to clear her head. She
looked back at the entrance, but she couldn't get her head up quite far enough,
or hold it even far enough to see out of the tops of her eyes without that
nerve pinching and hurting.
With the return of her
wind came a clearer head. She was still on all fours. Why, she began to wonder.
It was dark, but Obie had given her night vision, and she put her head chin
against chest, essentially upside down, and looked back at herself. Her hair
fell straight down.
Her thin, lithe body was
unchanged, her two small breasts hanging down and tugging slightly as a result
of being dead weight.
My arms! she suddenly
thought in panic. What did they do?
She also felt two long
bending sensations with her head that way.
She no longer had arms.
She now had forelegs—thin and with a knee joint that bent only one way, locking
the other way. It led down to a perfectly formed, fairly thick hoof of some
whitish-gray substance like fingernails. There was no hair; the legs were still
the same flesh color as the rest of her, the skin still looked human. But they
were the legs of the little mule.
Looking farther back,
she saw what she expected to see, and sighed. Now she understood why she
couldn't get off all fours, and why she couldn't seem to get her head up
properly. The forelegs were a good twenty percent shorter than the hind legs.
In the mule, the long neck compensated; a human head and neck wasn't designed
to go that far.
Renard and the two Lata
came out of the cave. She heard them more than saw them, and, after a moment's
hesitation, called to them. They were there in a flash.
"Mavra, you ought
to have seen that old boy's face when—" Renard started cheerfully, when
she walked out of the brush into the torchlight. They all three gasped, mouths
agape. For the first time they could see and know what the Olbornians had done
to Mavra Chang.
First, take the arms and
legs off a woman's torso. Then turn it face down, the hips about a meter high,
the shoulders about eighty centimeters. Now put a perfectly proportioned pair
of mule's hind legs on the hips, so that the base of the body kind of melds into
it. Now put two mule's legs on the shoulders, long enough to reach the ground
but shorter because of the angle of the body. But don't add an animal's hair or
skin—keep it all human, perfectly matched to the torso, except for hard,
naillike hooves on all four feet, and, as a final touch, remove the human ears
from her head and replace them with large, almost meter-long jackass ears,
still out of the same human skin material. Then continue the woman's hair down
across the back a bit into a thicker mane of the same color hair, extending
along the spine to about where the breasts hung down on the underside. And,
since the torso hasn't been otherwise altered, remember to put Mavra's horse's
tail growing out of the waist at the base of the spinal column, above the hips,
actually starting slightly in front of the hind legs, and drape it crudely over
the rectum.
The others felt tears of
pity rise within them. "Oh, my god!" was all Renard could say, and he
felt bad about it as soon as it was out.
She shifted slightly,
then turned her head to one side, almost far enough to look directly at him.
Her hair hung down well below her face, crazily. Her voice was the same; even,
level, and rich, but her eyes, when she turned her head to one side to look at
them, said something else was inside her.
"I know," she
told them. "I figured it out. Those little mules they have—they make them
with that stone in there, from people. I touched it twice, then got away when
you arrived. Tell me—is anything else changed?"
Choking back tears,
Renard sat beside her and gently described her to herself, including the ears
and misplaced tail.
The odd thing was, they
all thought, she looked strange and exotic, to Renard almost erotic, a curious
and not unattractive little creature that engendered affection with the pity.
But it was still an impractical, misdesigned creature, a one-of-a-kind on a
world with 1560 races.
"Maybe I should go
back in and complete the process," she suggested, hoping the hoarseness
and thickness in her speech would not betray how she really felt.
"I wouldn't,"
Vistaru said softly, sympathetically. Mavra was already beginning to hate that
tone. "You saw how they treated those mules? The thing does something to
the mind, too. You'd be an animal, as good as dead."
Renard had a sudden
thought. "Look!" he said excitedly. "It isn't forever!"
"The priest said it
was irreversible," Mavra responded. "He said it so joyfully I
believed him."
"No! No!" the
Agitar protested. "You haven't been through the Well Gate yet!"
"The priest said
the stone's power was from the Well," she retorted.
"That's true,"
Vistaru put in, "but so is everything else on the Well World. Why that
stone is there and why it does what it does we'll probably never know—it's a
substitute for something they would have to handle on their own planet, that's
all. Like the magic hexes here, which really mean they can tap a limited part
of the Well to compensate for something in their designed homes. You still
haven't been classified and added to the Well's input, so whatever changes the
stone made won't affect that."
Mavra felt renewed hope.
"Not forever," she almost breathed, and seemed to relax. Suddenly she
was upset that she'd let something show through the armor, and she took a deep
breath.
"Not forever,"
Renard agreed. "Look, want to head for a Zone Gate now? Not Olborn's
certainly, but we can get in somewhere, I'm sure. We can run you through like
you ran me through."
Mavra shook her head
violently. "No, no, not yet. Later, yes. As soon as possible. But the
surrounding hexes are in the war. This hex is in the war. That's for
normal times. We have to get to Gedemondas."
"I can do
that!" Vistaru protested.
Mavra shook her head
again. "No, you can't. You won't know what the engine module looks like,
nor how it's destroyed. Besides, I have never ever backed out on a commission
yet once I've accepted it. They wanted me along and I said yes. After—a Zone
Gate—maybe in Gedemondas, if they'll talk to us at all, or in Dillia next
door."
"Be reasonable,
Mavra!" Renard protested. "Look at you! You can't see three meters
ahead of you. You can't feed yourself, you're stark naked with no protection
against the elements, in the middle of territory whose natives would take you
back to the stone and finish the job in an instant." He got up, looked
down on her, and gently moved the horse's tail aside. "You're even going
to have bathroom trouble. Your vagina's where your ass should be, and the ass
is farther up. The human anatomy is designed for sitting or squatting. Those
legs are not designed for your body. You can't go on!"
She tried to look at him
squarely, failed. It hurt too much. "I'm going," she maintained
stubbornly. "With you if you'll have me. Without you if not. If you want,
you can be my guide and aide when I have to see far or eat, and clean me off
when I shit. If not, I'll go anyway, and I'll make it. When you were sucking
your thumb on sponge, and I didn't know where I was, I didn't let you go, and I
didn't quit. This won't stop me, either."
"She's right, you
know," Hosuru said quietly. "At least, about completing the mission
first. The whole world is at stake in Gedemondas. She's needed there. If we can
get her there, it's our duty to try."
"Okay,"
Vistaru said dubiously, trying to see the flaw in the other Lata's logic.
"If you're going to be stubborn, we'll all go. But I think a day or two in
that new condition may cure you of this bravado. If it does, don't feel
ashamed, weak, or a failure to ask us to get you to a Zone Gate. I wouldn't."
Mavra chuckled
mirthlessly. "Shame and weakness don't scare me, but I die when I'm a
failure to myself." She shifted again. "Did anybody get my clothes? I
might still manage some of them, with Renard's soldier's kit. And we ought to
get out of here. Sooner or later somebody's going to notice the high priest
didn't come back and raise a hue and cry. We'd best be well away."
Renard threw up his
hands. "I have your clothes. We'll see, later. Now, let's move! This way!"
There was resignation and a total lack of understanding in his voice.
He wouldn't understand,
Mavra thought. None of them would.
* * *
Apparently the shock of
the slayings was too much for the Olbornians. There was no pursuit that they
ever knew about.
Mavra found that she
could trot, like the little mules. Left legs out, push, right legs out, push,
and again, faster and faster. She had no feeling at all in the hoofs, which
helped, but all of the exposed skin area was just like normal exposed skin
area. The Lata helped, flying alongside or just in front, telling her what was
ahead so she didn't run into trees or hurt her neck, and could make some speed.
Morning had them some
distance away. Renard mounted Doma, whom he'd been leading, and they scouted
the terrain. It was clear that things were not going to be as difficult as they
feared from the Olbornian score.
For the "Well's
Chosen Ones," they were quite obviously getting the hell beat out of them.
They had run afoul of a coast watch set around the Sacred Stones areas; it had
been sheer bad luck to pick that spot to camp. The rest of the country was wide
open, with the telltale signs of a war going badly all over: military carts
drawn by teams of mules hauling supplies and large cannon and mortars south; a
steady stream of aimless refugees north.
They stuck to open
country, which was mostly deserted now, everyone down south into the fight or
guarding the Sacred Stones and Zone Gate. They were able to relax and
straighten out their situation.
Because of the
precariousness of the camp, Doma's packs had never been unloaded, so they still
had their supplies. They ate first; to Mavra, it was a humiliating type of
experience she would have to get used to. They'd started to spoon-feed her, but
she'd resisted that. They opened a tin of meat which Renard warmed, then broke
up some small fruit, and put it in a wooden bowl. By standing on her hind legs
and kneeling on her forelegs, she could eat, like a dog or cat. It was hard;
the thin legs were even thinner at the ankles, and the legs moved forward, not
back, and the damned bowl kept moving, but she managed it and the food tasted
good. Water she drank by two methods: lapping, like an animal, and sticking her
face in the pan and drinking the top half down.
But it worked, and that
was enough for her.
Vistaru tied her hair up
between and in back of her enormous ears with an elastic band, which kept it
out of her face and food. She could even see level in front of her, by standing
on her forelegs while kneeling on the hind ones. That position, too, was
uncomfortable, but she didn't mind. It gave her neck some relief, and allowed
her to see.
The clothing was more of
a problem, though she'd need it. It was slightly chilly in Olborn, and it would
be frigid in the upper reaches of Gedemondas.
They cut the sleeves off
her shirt and managed to get it on. The pants were a bigger problem, and they
didn't quite reach all the way, but Vistaru buckled the wide belt around her
bare midsection and that helped. It looked wrong and stupid, and felt wrong,
too, and the pants kept slipping, but it was something and it felt better. The
long coat tailored for Gedemondas would possibly do what was needed, covering
that impossible tail, they hoped. Some cut-off gloves might help protect
the exposed skin in Gedemondas snow. Maybe.
Oddly, Mavra felt better
now. Obstacles were to be surmounted; that was part of the joy of it all. They
noticed a pickup in her spirits they couldn't comprehend.
Sleeping was the worst
compromise; the animal's legs were designed for sleeping standing up, but the
human torso was not, and sleeping on her stomach was no longer possible. She
managed lying on her side.
In the meantime, the war
was going from bad to worse for those of Olborn. Occasionally they'd meet some
frightened refugees, not looking as fierce or confident as those back in the
priest's lair. Their world was coming apart, and with it their world-view and
their notions of their place in it. No longer sure of anything, they were
somehow sad and pathetic. People they ran into kept trying to surrender to
them.
Roving military patrols
caused worse problems; most were composed of deserters with the social
restraint imposed on them by their life's conditioning and faith in their
favored status with the Well all gone; they brutalized the refugees, they tried
brutalizing the alien party, but renewed Lata venom and Renard's highly charged
personality soon dealt effectively with them.
Mavra also found it
interesting that no one gave her a second glance. To these insular people, she
was just one more weird alien creature.
But progress was slow,
and they turned their attention to trying to find some way to get Mavra and Renard
on Doma. The problem was the great wings, which needed to be unimpeded, and
which came down most of the length of the great animal's body.
Finally, experimentation
achieved a compromise that Doma and practicality could accept. Nonessential
supplies were jettisoned, and the Lata took as much as they could in their
pouches. The weight would slow them, but Doma would also be slowed and impeded.
With the instruments tossed out—Renard insisted he never used them anyway—she
could sit, legs astraddle, on the lower neck of the pegasus, while he sat just
behind, body pressed into hers. Straps from some of the excess saddlebags would
hold her, and Doma, while uncomfortable with the extra weight on her neck,
managed. The only problem was that it took all three of the others and some
cooperation and kneeling from Doma to get her up there in the first place.
Finally, though, they
could fly, and the distance sped by. They ducked south of the hex corner,
avoiding any more priestly fanatics, and crossed barely into Palim.
The inhabitants of the
hex eyed them nervously, but did not interfere or challenge them. The Palim
resembled nothing so much as giant long-haired elephants. Their form was
deceptive, though; they were a high-technology people, with carefully managed
groves of food trees and grain, and a criss-cross of a large electric rail
system and odd, gumdrop-shaped city buildings in clusters linked by ramps. They
stayed clear; the Palim seemed too unconcerned by the nearby violence. It
indicated that they had elected to sit out the war, and that meant the
Yaxa-Lamotien-Dasheen alliance was probably making good use of that rail system
in the east.
Even slowed, they made
the border of Gedemondas in under two days. There was no doubt where they were;
the great mountains of the frigid hex were visible from the flat plain, like
some intrusive wall, a great distance before they reached it. With a few hours
to scout around by air, they found the relatively small plains area that was in
Gedemondas itself. It was the logical point for the two advancing armies to
head for, and it was empty of all but some minor wildlife when they arrived.
They were first, but by
how much?
They studied the maps.
It was obvious that the Makiem would airlift over Alestol, probably to near the
point where they now were. The Yaxa would move from Palim at the rail terminus,
then about thirty kilometers overland to the northern edge of the plain. Renard
wondered idly if there would be room for both forces.
"There will be
quite a battle," Mavra predicted grimly. "If one gets here first the
other will have to dislodge them if it can. If they get here at the same time,
the clash will just be more immediate, with this a no man's land. Either way,
this nice little plain is going to be littered with the dead and dying before
long."
"According to the
hex map, here, there's a little shelter over near that cleft in the
rocks," Vistaru noted. "That's where we're supposed to meet our
guide, if anyone's still there."
Mavra tried to look to
where the Lata pointed, but her head wouldn't come up enough. Two or three
meters, that was the limit. She swore in frustration, but there was
determination on her face as well.
It was about fifteen
degrees centigrade on the plain, which was comfortable, but that wouldn't last
long, either. The air cooled almost two degrees for every three hundred meters
in altitude, and some of those passes were over three thousand meters high.
They walked leisurely to
the shelter, and almost missed it. It was a low cabin of old stone and wood set
back against the rocks, so old and weatherbeaten that it almost looked a part
of the natural formations. It looked deserted, and they approached cautiously,
uncertain of what surprises might be around for them.
Suddenly the big door,
almost as high as the shack itself, creaked open, and a creature came out.
It looked like a human
woman, almost. Long hair tied back in a sort of ponytail, an attractive, oval
face and long slender arms. But she had little pointed ears, and from the waist
down, below her light jacket, she had the body of a white-and-black spotted
horse.
A centaur, the classicist
Renard thought, no longer surprised. Meeting such a creature was no longer
strange; in fact, it was almost to be expected.
The woman smiled when
she saw them, and waved. "Hello!" she called, in a pleasant soprano.
"Come on up! I'd almost given you up!"
Vistaru approached.
"You are the Dillian guide?" she said, almost unbelievingly. The
Dillian was no more than a girl, perhaps in her mid-teens.
The centaur nodded.
"I'm Tael. Come on in and I'll start a small fire."
They entered; Tael gave
the strange-looking Mavra an odd look, but said nothing. Doma waited outside,
placidly munching grass.
The place was built for
Dillians, certainly—there were stall-like compartments for four of them, a lot
of straw on the floor, and, up on brick blocks a small wood-burning stove and
scuttle filled with chopped wood. Tael threw a couple of pieces in the stove
and lit a small piece of paper with a very long safety match, throwing it into
the cast-iron belly of the stove.
Dillians never sat;
their bodies couldn't stand the weight. So everybody else sat on the straw,
Mavra reclining on her side. There was plenty of room.
After some small talk,
Renard voiced what they all were thinking.
"Ah, excuse me,
Tael, but—aren't you a little young for all this?" he tried, as
diplomatically as possible.
The woman didn't take it
badly. "Well, I admit I'm only fifteen, but I was born in the uplake
mountain country of Dillia; my family has hunted and trapped on both sides of
the border for a long time. I know every trail and pathway between here and
Dillia, and that's a pretty good ways."
"And the Gedemondas?"
Mavra prompted.
The Dillian shrugged.
"They've never bothered me. You see them every once in a while—big white
shapes against the snow. Never close—they're always gone when you get there.
You hear them, too, sometimes, growling and roaring and making all sorts of
weird sounds that echo between the mountains."
"Is it their
speech?" Vistaru asked.
"I don't think
so," Tael replied. "I used to, but when they asked me to do this
guide job for you they fitted me with a translator, and I didn't hear any difference.
I've wondered sometimes whether they have any speech as we know it at
all."
"That could be
bad," Renard put in. "How can you talk to somebody who can't talk
back?"
She nodded. "I'm
still excited about all this. We've tried off and on to communicate with them
for the longest time; I'd like to be there when it's done."
"If it's done,"
Hosuru added pessimistically.
"I'm worried about
the smoke from that thing," Mavra said, cocking her head a little bit
toward the stove. "Not the Gedemondas. The war parties. They have to be
close by."
The girl looked
uncomfortable. "I've seen them already, but they just took a close look at
me and went on. A few flying horses like yours, and some really strange,
beautiful things that must have had orange and brown butterflylike wings three
or more meters across. None of them landed."
Vistaru looked
concerned. "Yaxa and Agitar both. Advance scouts. We can't stay here
long."
"We won't,"
Tael told them. "We'll leave at first light up the Intermountain Trail in
back of the base here. With any luck we'll make Camp 43 shortly after noon, and
from there we start getting into snow country—and the air thins."
"How high is this
camp?" Renard asked.
"Fifteen hundred
sixty-two meters," Tael responded. "But you're already almost four
hundred meters up. You wouldn't know it, but the plain's a slope."
"We could fly up
that far," Vistaru noted. "We're good to about eighteen hundred
meters, and I think you said, Renard, that Doma's good to about that."
He nodded. "But
that doesn't help our guide, here. No wings for her."
Tael laughed.
"That's all right. I told you I was mountain-born. Even better if we have
a head start, but beyond Camp 43, flying will be difficult. I can start up this
evening, and be there to meet you in the morning. That way we move even
faster." Her face darkened, and she looked at Mavra. "But you will
have to be dressed far better than that. All of you, in fact. Frostbite will be
a big problem."
"We have some
winter things," Hosuru told her. "And I understood you were supposed
to bring some stuff."
She nodded, went over to
a stall, and hauled out some tough fabric knapsacks. They were heavy, but she
managed them without strain. Maybe she couldn't fly, but she did add the muscle
power that was their most conspicuous lack.
She sorted things out.
Special form-fitting thermal wear to suit Latan contours, including transparent
but tough and rigid shielding for the wings, appeared, and a heavy coat and
gloves that sealed with an elastic of some kind fitted Renard. "You'll
also find these useful," she said, tossing him some small objects which
proved to be wrappings for his hooves, with a flat, spiked, disklike sole that
would give him not only protection but better footing. She brought out some
more clothes, also of the Latan model but larger and without the wing flaps.
She looked a little puzzled. They were obviously for a biped with hands and
feet.
Hastily, Mavra explained
what had happened. The girl nodded sympathetically, but was plainly concerned.
"I don't see how
these can be cut down," she said. "Your feet should do all right in
the snow, like mine, but you should have some kind of wrapping. You haven't got
my protective skin layers and hair," she pointed out.
"We'll do whatever
we can," Mavra responded. "Renard will have to lead Doma once we get
up there; I'll ride her as long as possible. That should help."
Tael was doubtful, but
she was the guide, not the mission leader.
Renard went over to the
door, peering out at the sky. No sign of strange or hostile creatures now; a
few lazy birds, no more. But soon—who knew?
He wondered just how far
off the driving forces were.
The Yaxa came in for a
landing with a great beating of its tremendous wings. Coming down, it saw the
large number of troops and matériel now massed at the border. It looked good.
Convincing.
It had been a long trip,
and almost a fatal one. The creature touched the ground gently and went down on
all eight tentacles toward the portable command center, a huge circuslike tent
established just inside Palim. The Yaxa were born to the air; on the ground
they looked awkward and lumbering, never quite properly balanced because of the
long folded wings along their backs. In the air, however, they were the
graceful masters.
The Yaxa entered the big
tent, its huge death's head, impassive as always, searching out someone of
rank, finally spotting someone who would do over by the big situation map.
Communication between
Yaxa was by a complex combination of noises from the thoracic regions and odd
sounds made by antennae and slight wing rustles. Their names were
untranslatable, so, when dealing with other races, they adopted nicknames that
often were nonsense, ironic, or just plain crazy, and stuck to them for
multiracial operations.
"Marker reporting
in, Section Leader," the newcomer said.
The section leader
nodded. "Glad to see you back, Marker. We had begun to think that the
enemy had gotten you."
"It was
close," the advance scout said. "Those damned little blue men with
their electricity and their flying horses. The Cebu are too clumsy to worry
about, but even though the horses are slow and awkward, it only needs a touch
to get you."
The section leader knew
this. She knew, in fact, as much about the physical, mental, and technological
characteristics of the Makiem alliance as anyone could. The other side had had
a much rougher trip than they; any force that could hammer its way through that
much resistance so quickly was a force to be reckoned with.
"How far off are
they?" the military commander inquired.
"Down the other
side," Marker responded. That meant at least three hundred kilometers, a
good distance, and the plain that was the logical camp for the final campaign
was only a hundred or so kilometers south of their present position. They would
be first. "They're a little slow with their airlift over Alestol, too.
After all, they have to move everything they need a fair distance nonstop—more
than either the flying horses or Cebu can normally fly. A lot of them are into
exhaustion now; the ones who land soon find themselves put to sleep by those
big, fat plants and then eaten. Don't sell those Alestolians short, either—some
of them have translators, would you believe, and they have a hypnotic
gas as well. If one of those ones with a translator gets an Agitar or a Cebu,
they're sent back against their own people!"
The section leader
chuckled dryly. "Oh, yes, I can believe that. A rather large amount was
transferred in Zone to get them those translators. I'm happy to see that the
expenditure is paying for itself." The tone changed, became more
businesslike. "So how soon before they have a sufficient force to start
the march?"
Marker was uncertain.
"Two, three days at least. And maybe two more to move up to the plain.
Call it five days."
The Yaxa leader
considered this. "You're sure? As you know, we will be moving this
afternoon; we should be in and mostly established on the plain by dark
tomorrow. The advance party leaves at dawn by air. With luck we can hold it
while our friends go after the engines."
"Who's going?"
Marker asked, genuinely curious. "Some of the Lamotien, of course. Who
else?" She knew that nobody would trust the Lamotien by themselves. They
didn't even trust them now.
"Only Yulin can
assess the engines once located," the section leader pointed out. "So
we'll send the Dasheen up. They're better equipped for a nontech hex and narrow
trails anyway, and they're almost as big as the Gedemondas."
"None of us?"
Marker responded, appalled. "But how will we—?"
"We removed the
guidance boxes from the bridge," the Yaxa reminded her counterpart.
"We'll control it from the other end. But, no, up there there is no
protection for the wings in the cold, and snow provides little traction. I
think the Dasheen and Lamotien will keep each other honest. We'll hold the
plain for them."
"But is it safe
risking Yulin like that?" Marker wondered. "I mean, he's the whole
game, isn't he?"
"No, the engines
are. The only part of the ship that can't be duplicated. If he gets us the
engines, fine. If he doesn't, what good is he to us anyway? To tell you the
truth, I wouldn't feel a bit sorry if some of those Dasheen bulls died."
Marker nodded
sympathetically. "Their system is not a logical one, and it grates to see
them treated like that."
"Unfortunately,"
the section leader sighed, "that place is really a male's paradise. You
know that scientific study they're always throwing up at everybody to prove
male superiority? Well, we made the study, and they're right.
Evolutionary-speaking, those cows are mentally and physically designed to be
dull-minded, willing slaves."
"Well, at least we
have better material to send into the cold mountains than the Makiem,"
Marker said, changing the subject to something more pleasant. "The Cebu
could walk up there, but never fly, and they're terrible on the ground. The
Makiem grow semidormant in extreme cold, and the Agitar's flying horses are
valueless at those altitudes."
"But those Agitar
can move well," the Yaxa commander pointed out. "And there are
protective coverings for Makiem. Don't sell them short. They've gotten far
already. It's going to be the roughest battle yet for both sides in a few
days."
Antor Trelig was both
confident and optimistic. The war had gone well; they were in Gedemondas, and
after all they'd been through, not a single one of the soldiers, commanders,
and politicians believed they could be stopped.
An Agitar general came
into the command tent and bowed slightly, handing him a report. He looked at it
with interest, and the Makiem equivalent of a grin spread on his face.
"Has anyone else
seen this?" he asked.
The Agitar shook her
goatlike head. "No, sir. From the recon man who took it to the General
Staff to you."
It was a photograph; a
big black-and-white glossy. It was fuzzy and grainy, taken through a very long
lens from far away, and it still wasn't quite close enough, but it
showed the most important thing.
Most of the picture was
white; more had been cropped in the blow-up. But there, on a rocky ledge, was a
sleek, U-shaped object reflecting the sunlight, and there were not quite
legible markings on the side.
He didn't need to read
them. He knew it had a symbol of a rising sun with a human face flanked by
fourteen stars, and the huge legend NH–CF–1000–1 on the side, and, in smaller
letters underneath, the words PEOPLE'S VICTORY.
It was the engine pod.
"How did you get
this?" he asked, amazed. "I thought nobody could fly that
high."
"One of the Cebu
scouts pushed himself to the limit," the general replied. "On his
third try he managed to get over the second string of mountains and found a
deep, U-shaped glacial valley there. His eyes are good; he saw the reflection,
above him, but knew that it was beyond his reach and range, so he fitted his
longest lens and snapped as many pictures as he could with the glare filter on.
This was the best."
He had a sudden thought.
"What about the Yaxa? Can't they or those little imitator bastards find this,
too?"
"Not a
chance," the general assured him. "The Yaxa can't possibly fly high
enough to clear that second range. I would have said no Cebu could, either, and
the scout is half-dead as it is. He'll be a hero if he survives. As for the
Lamotien, remember they can only simulate other forms, not become them.
They have a flying mode, yes, based on the Yaxa, but it's highly modified to
their form and requirements, and the wings are as thick as our own mounts', far
too heavy to clear that altitude. No, I think we have the advantage here."
Trelig nodded,
satisfied. "But they will get to the plain first," he noted.
"And our reports say that the Lamotien can neutralize an Agitar shock, and
the Yaxa can fly rings around any of us."
"It's about even,
all told," the general admitted. "They'll be dug in by the time we
get there, well fortified, and they have to play only for time, nothing more. I
suggest we do it a little differently."
Trelig's huge eyes
enlarged in surprise. "Something new?"
The general nodded, and
spread out a commercial-looking map on the table in front of them. It was a
relief map of both Gedemondas and Dillia next door to the east, and it showed
great relief and, more important, it had a lot of little dotted lines all over
it. Trelig couldn't read a word on it, though.
"It's a Dillian
guide and trail map," the Agitar explained. "They sell them to
interested people. There are rodents and other animals in that wilderness, and
they trap them. The Gedemondas don't seem to mind or bother them, although our
Dillian sources say they don't know much more about the creatures than we do.
They don't overdo the hunting, and that's been the balance."
Trelig nodded,
understanding. "So these little dotted lines are hunting trails?" he
guessed.
"Exactly,"
acknowledged the goat-woman. "And those little rectangles are Dillian
shelters set up along the trails. The trails are mostly Gedemondan, not
Dillian. I understand that too many Dillians get the locals upset, and they
push a ton or two of snow down on them."
That was an unpleasant
prospect. He let it pass.
"Now, we're
here," the Agitar continued, pointing to an area in the southwest corner.
"The Yaxa will be here," now pointing to the small plains area about
two hundred kilometers north and slightly east, "and, if you look closely
at the map, you'll see something interesting."
Trelig was ahead of her.
At least three trails came within two kilometers of where they now sat, east of
them a bit. One seemed fairly low.
"Twelve hundred
sixty-three meters," the Agitar told him. "Low enough for an
unobtrusive air drop."
"Then we might not
have to fight at all!" he exclaimed, excited. "We can beat them by
going in with a small force and heading straight for the engines, while they
have to poke and hunt!"
The Agitar shook her
head slowly in the negative. "No, there will have to be a battle, if only
to cover you. They are not dumb. If we didn't move as predicted they would
smell a rat and they would have you. No, the battle goes on, everything as
planned. The only difference will be that we will not have any rush to win it,
or take needless risks. When you secure the engines, others can be sent to try
and disassemble them, if that's possible, or figure out how to move them,
anyway. By the time whatever force the Yaxa sends gets there, we'll have
already won the objective, no matter how the battle goes."
Trelig liked the plan.
"Okay, so it's me and some Agitar males. But what protects me from the
cold? I shut down below freezing, you know. Can't help it."
The general got up and walked
out of the tent, then came back in with a large carton. She opened the carton
and pulled out a strange, silvery costume with a huge dark globe.
"You didn't know we
have had five Makiem Entries in the past century, then?" she said,
satisfied. "And we don't need the mechanical stuff, either. Air you've
got."
He grinned again. Things
were going his way now, as they had always done. The Obie computer, New
Pompeii, the Well World itself—all were within his grasp.
The general excused
herself, and he sat there a minute or two, alone, looking at the map. Then he
sighed, got up, and slow-hopped to a curtained-off passage between this tent
and his portable living quarters. He pulled it aside. There was a flash of
movement, and an object landed on the bed in the far corner.
She could hop quickly,
she could, he thought admiringly.
It had been a marriage
of convenience, of course. All Makiem marriages were marriages of
convenience in a race that had no sex except one week a year, underwater, when
they had nothing but. The convenience of the scoundrels that ran Makiem, the
inconvenience of himself, naturally. She was the good minister's daughter, and,
if anything, she was slicker and nastier than her father.
What a team we'd
make, he sighed once again, if only we could be on the same side!
"You needn't
pretend, my dear. You know everything and I know it, so what's the difference?
You can't go this time."
"I go where you
go," she responded. "It is law and custom. And you cannot stop
me!"
He chuckled. "But
it's cold up there, baby! What good would you be as a sleeping
beauty?"
She reached over, opened
a wicker basket, and removed something. It was a slightly different design, but
unmistakably a spacesuit.
He gaped. "How long
have you had that thing?" he asked.
"Since Makiem,"
she replied smugly.
The trails weren't bad.
Gedemondans, it was known, were large creatures, and limited but steady use by
the horselike Dillians had made them even more comfortable, on the whole around
two meters wide.
It was a strange party
that set off from the chilly shack into the snow cover: Tael, the Dillian
guide, was in the lead, then the two Lata, occasionally walking but more often
riding on Tael's back, then Renard leading the winged pegasus, Doma, with the
strange figure of Mavra Chang tied between wings and neck. The air was becoming
cold; there was little conversation between them, nor was much possible without
yelling, for blowing wind howled through the rocky clefts as if it, too, were a
strange and living creature of this strangest of worlds.
It was only on the
occasional breaks, done mostly for Renard's benefit, that they could say
anything. The plain was far behind; the twists and turns that the switchbacked
trail forced upon them had all but the confident Tael totally lost, and the
bright snow reflecting the glare of the sun, even when cut with sun goggles,
made distance impossible to judge. They were tiny figures moving in a sea of
white.
The trail itself seemed
often lost in the snow, yet Tael went on as if it were a paved and marked
highway, never hesitating in the slightest—and the footing was always there.
After they had been
climbing for what seemed like a full day, they rounded one more mountain curve
and, suddenly, the plain was spread out below them once more.
"Wait!" Mavra
called to them. "Look! They've arrived!"
They stopped, and saw
immediately what she meant. Tiny puffs of orange seemed everywhere in the air,
and large numbers of creatures could be seen erecting tents and digging into
the rock that was the start of the mountains. The cabin was invisible, but they
all knew that, if it was there at all, it was being converted into a fort.
"Look at
them!" Tael breathed. This was her first taste of armies and war.
"There must be thousands of them!"
"The Yaxa,"
Vistaru said flatly. "They will be coming up only a day or so behind us.
This is not good."
Tael laughed
confidently. "Let them try and find the trail!" she boasted.
"Without a guide they haven't a prayer!"
Mavra turned and looked
out at the sky. There were thin, wispy clouds and an occasional big, fat
cumulus puff, but it was basically crystal clear.
"They'll follow our
own tracks," she told them. "There's no snow, nothing to cover them.
They might mistake them for animal tracks, or Dillians alone, but where a
four-footed animal or Dillian can go, so can they."
The centaur frowned. A
good snow guide, Mavra thought, but naïve as hell. Dillia must be a very
peaceful place.
"We could lay a
false trail," Tael suggested. "Run tracks off a cliff. It's not that
hard. The powder here could be brushed for a few hundred meters."
Mavra considered it.
"All right, do it," she told them. "But it won't do much. Slow
them up, get a couple, that's all. Better than nothing, though."
They rigged the
deception fairly simply. The Dillian girl picked a point, walked out to where
there seemed to be continuous snow, then stopped. Renard removed his small
snowshoes and followed gingerly behind in her tracks, then guided her feet as
she backed up into her old tracks.
Mavra surveyed the
results. "A little too deep," she said critically. "An
experienced tracker would catch on, but I think it'll work. Does that snow fall
off there and I just can't see it, or what?"
Tael laughed. "This
is the edge of what we call Makorn Glacier. A river of slowly moving ice with a
snow-cover on top. There is a crevasse there at least three hundred meters down
and a good ten meters wide. I could almost feel the edge of it."
The small Lata then went
back after they went around another bend with Tael's fur hat and used it to
fill in the tracks. Not an expert job, but they weren't trying to fool experts.
They went on, into the
hex and up at the same time. More frequent rest periods were called for. The
air was becoming thin.
During one of these
stops, Mavra said, "Still no sign of the Gedemondans. Hell, if they're big
bastards there must be awfully few of them to be this invisible."
Tael shrugged. "Who
knows how many there are? Sometimes there seem to be a hundred sneaking around
the mountain tops; sometimes you will go completely through the hex without
seeing one. That is not the trouble here, though."
"Huh?" they
all said at once.
She nodded. "We're
being watched. I can feel it. I'm not sure where they are, but there is
certainly more than one. I could barely hear some intermittent deep
breathing."
They looked around,
suddenly nervous. No one could see anything.
"Where?"
Renard pressed.
Tael shook her head.
"I don't know. Mountain sounds are deceptive. Close, though. They have
networks of trails they, ah, discourage us from using."
"They'd have
to," Mavra said dryly. She strained but could hear nothing but the howling
wind.
She was freezing to
death, too, despite being covered by an amazingly resourceful patchwork set of
clothes. Her face and particularly her ears were killing her; still, it was no
worse on her than on the others, and they didn't complain.
"Let's keep
going," Hosuru said after a moment's listening. "If they're shadowing
us, they'll either make a move or they won't. Just keep listening and
looking."
"Don't strain too
hard," Tael warned. "If they don't want to be seen, they won't be.
All bright white like the snow, they could be ten meters away and out in the
open and you'd never know it."
They pressed on.
They reached Camp 43
before sundown, but Tael insisted that this would be their stop for the night.
"We couldn't possibly make the next camp before nightfall, and you don't
want to be out here after dark."
"I hope those Yaxa
or whatever feel the same way," Renard worried.
"I hope they
don't," Mavra responded. "That'll kill a lot more of them a lot
quicker. Vistaru? Hosuru? You're nocturnals. You want to try this trail in the
dark?"
Vistaru laughed.
"Not in the dark, not in the daylight, not anytime without a guide who
knows what she's doing!" she responded.
The crude shelter was
built for two Dillians; the stalls were fine for Tael and Doma, and the others
just sort of scrunched in as best they could. With the supplies, it was hard to
close the door, and the old iron fireplace was so close to them they had to
choose freezing or burning. But, it would do.
It had been a trying
day; they were all dead tired, half-snowblind, and ready for a rest. There
seemed little point in setting a guard; if the Gedemondans wanted to do them
in, they could do it any time. If they wanted contact, well and good. And if
the Yaxa coalition party somehow managed to close in on them, they had little
means to fight it anyway. As the fire burnt down, they slept.
* * *
There was a wrongness
somewhere. It disturbed her in her sleep, and her mind fought for it, tried to
seize on it, and it seemed somehow elusive yet present and growing more and
more ominous.
Mavra Chang awoke, lying
motionless. She looked quickly around. They were all there; not only Tael and
Renard, but even Doma snored.
She tried to figure out
why she was suddenly wide awake. There was some sense of alarm, something that
had her suddenly as clear-headed as ever when danger threatened. She reached
for the source with her mind and eyes. It was chilly now, yes; it must be well
into the night. But that wasn't it.
Doma suddenly awoke and
shook her great head. She snorted nervously. Mavra lifted her head a little,
sure now that she wasn't going crazy. The pegasus sensed it, too.
There it was. A noise. Scrunch-scrunch;
scrunch-scrunch, over and over, a little louder each time.
Someone—or something—was
walking rather calmly and steadily up the trail, something confident even in
the night and snow.
Scrunch-scrunch,
the snow was falling under its feet. It seemed to be big.
And now the noise
stopped. Whatever it was was right outside the door, she knew. She started to
call out, to warn the others, but somehow she couldn't seem to make a move,
only stare at that closed door. Even Doma seemed suddenly calm, but expectant.
She was reminded of the Olbornian priest's power over her, but this wasn't like
that. It was—something else. Something strange, completely new.
The door opened,
surprisingly silently considering its rusting hinges and bad fit. A blast of
chilly air hit her, and she felt the others stir uncomfortably.
A huge white furry shape
was there. It was tall—tall enough that it had to bend a little to stick its
head just inside the door. A face looked in at her, and smiled slightly. It
raised a huge hairy white paw and put a huge, clawed index finger to its mouth.
Antor Trelig cursed for
the thousandth time. One mishap after another on this damned journey, he
thought sourly. Avalanches in front of them, the trail undercut—almost as if
someone was trying to stop them or slow them down, although no one had been
sighted of any kind.
The trail was a lot more
obvious on the map than it was in reality; it wasn't well maintained, some of
the shelters were in disrepair and obviously had been so for years, and the
trail often vanished without visible landmarks, causing the Agitar to have to probe
gingerly ahead with their tasts. Their party of fourteen—twelve Agitar,
he, and his not-so-loyal wife, Burodir—was now nine, still including Burodir,
unfortunately.
But the landmarks were
reasonably clear; the terrain was not bad, most of the climbing having been at
the beginning, and as many times as the trail had vanished it had also been
crystal clear, as if tramped down by the soles of many feet.
This had worried him at
first, until he was reminded by the Agitar that this was, after all, somebody's
hex, and somebody had to live in it.
In a way, that thought
was the most disturbing. They had neither seen nor heard a native in all this
time, in all this way. It made no sense at all that there shouldn't be some creatures
somewhere along the way, except the occasional panic-inducing arctic hare, or
whatever it was, and a few small weasellike creatures.
And yet—somehow, they'd
made it. Somehow they'd kept to this trail. Somehow they were going all the
way. He was, anyway. What the others did was up to them.
He studied the maps and
aerial photos from the Cebu scouts. He knew pretty much where he was, although
without the prescouting he would have been lost and dead now, he had to admit.
The inner ring of mountains, slightly taller than the outer but hidden before
now, was clearly ahead. And, just on the other side of that big, glacier-carved
peak over there, and over a bit, was a U-shaped valley with a very important
large object lying askew on a ledge.
They would not make it
today, that was for sure. But sometime tomorrow afternoon, certainly, if
nothing else happened.
"Ifrit! My field
glasses!" Ben Yulin commanded. The cow reached into the pack of her cowife
and quickly extracted them.
"Here,
Master," she said eagerly, handing them to him. He took them without a
word and put them to his eyes.
They were not merely
binoculars; they had additional special lenses that helped his nearsightedness.
With the already ground prescription snow goggles, they brought anything within
their range into sharp, clear focus.
"Trouble?"
growled a low voice next to him.
He looked away and over
at the thing. It looked like a walking hairy bush, about as tall as he, with no
apparent eyes, ears, or other organs. In actuality, it was not a single creature,
but a colony of thirty-six Lamotien, adapted to the cold weather and the snow.
"That shack up
there," he pointed suspiciously ahead. "Doesn't look right, somehow.
I don't want any more tricks like that fake trail. We lost two good cows
there." Neither his, he failed to add.
"We lost thirty
brothers, don't forget!" snapped the Lamotien. "We agree it looks
strange. What should be done about it?"
Yulin thought a minute,
trying to find a good solution without risking his noble neck or his
possessions. "Why don't a couple of you go on up? Turn white or something
and take a look around."
The Lamotien considered
it. "Two each, we think. Arctic hares." The creature seemed to come
apart all of a sudden; breaking into small, equal-sized fuzzy masses. Two of
the things came off one side and jumped to the snow; two others from the left.
Yulin watched, fascinated as always, as the rest of the shaggy creature
reformed and readjusted. It looked slightly thinner, but otherwise the same.
Now the two Lamotien in
the snow ran together, seemed to blend into one big shaggy lump. The other pair
did the same. Slowly, as if there were unseen puppeteer's hands under the
shaggy mops, there was a poking here, a wrinkle there, a bend here, a growth
there.
Two arctic hares were
there in less than two minutes. They scampered off naturally in the direction
of the cabin. The rest waited; only the colony leader had a translator, so
they'd have to reform before he knew the story. They didn't have vocal
communication, that was for sure. He wondered if they talked when they melded,
became one being with common mind, or what. He'd asked, but the Lamotien told
him not to worry about it, the concept was beyond him anyway.
The hares returned in a
little more than ten minutes, disconnected, jumped back into the hairy lump,
and melded again. The shape was silent for a minute, talking to the scouts or
maybe absorbing the scouts' brief memories.
Finally, it said,
"The place is deserted. You're right about it being funny, though. Lots of
packs and supplies still there. Somebody was there not long ago, and left—not
of their own will, we'll wager. Too much stuff left."
That had him worried.
"Think they were the centaurs we've been following?"
"Probably,"
the Lamotien agreed. "But whoever they are, they're gone now."
"Tracks?"
The Lamotien paused.
"That's the funny part. There aren't any. We see their tracks, lots of
snow disturbances where they unpacked, and all that. But no other tracks for hundreds
of meters in any direction. None."
"Well, they didn't
come back this way," Yulin said, worried now. "So where did
they go?"
They all looked around
at the silent mountains.
"And with
whom?" responded the Lamotien.
It seemed that they had
walked forever; they had frequent rests—their captors seeming to appreciate
their need for more oxygen than the atmosphere now provided—but no
conversation. A few grunts and a lot of gestures, none of which the translators
would handle, but nothing else.
They were off any trails
the Dillians knew, though. Trails so invisible at times that the great
Gedemondans leading the way in sometimes crazy patterns seemed to be lost
themselves. They weren't, though; they simply knew, somehow, everything that
was under the snow.
Doma, carrying both
Mavra and Renard, was being led by Tael with the two Lata on her back. In front
were four of the giant snow creatures; behind, four more. Others were visible
now, here and there, sometimes a large number, sometimes one or two crossing
paths.
Mavra still wasn't sure
what they were. They didn't really remind her of anything, yet they somehow
reminded her of everything. All snow white, not even the dirtiness that such
thick hair usually displays so well. Tall—Tael was well over two meters, and
they were almost a head taller than she—and very slender. Humanoid, yet their
faces appeared doglike, snow white with long, very thin snouts and black button
noses, their eyes set back, large but very human-looking, and an intense pale
blue. Their hands and feet formed huge circular pads when closed, the palms and
soles of a tough, white, pawlike material. But when they spread their fingers,
their long, thin fingers, they had three and a thumb—although their hands
seemed to be almost without bones. They could bend them any which way and flex
them and the whole hand in any direction, as if they were made of some kind of
putty. Fingers and toes had long, pink claws, the only nonwhite part of them
other than the nose. Even the insides of their saucerlike ears were white.
They filled in the
tracks by the simplest method imaginable. They wore flowing white capes of some
animal fur, and it dragged behind them as they walked, the light top powder
filling in behind them. They didn't sink down into the snow nearly as heavily
as they should have; the padlike feet acted almost like snowshoes.
Tracks weren't a problem
here; they knew they were being taken into the mainstream of Gedemondan life,
whatever that was. This was the part hidden away from all comers, the part they
never let you see.
And that made them
wonder. Why them? Did the Gedemondans know they were coming? Were they being
helped? Or were they prisoners to be interrogated about all these invasions
before being tossed over a cliff? There were no answers, only more walking.
Occasionally the great
snow-beasts would pop right up out of the snow. It was unsettling at first,
until they realized that there must be trap doors of some kind—whether over ice
caves, natural or dug, or rock caves, or even artificial dwellings that were
covered with snow they didn't know. It was clear, though, that one of the big
reasons you never saw the population was that they were living and doing
whatever it is they did below the snow cover, the art of camouflage coming
naturally to them.
Night came, plunging
this wintry world into an eerie glowing darkness. The night sky of the Well
World reflected off the snowfields in distorted, twinkling wonder. New Pompeii
wasn't visible, but it might not yet have risen, or it might have set, or it
might be out of sight behind the distant mountains.
They hadn't had time to
take any supplies. The Gedemondans had been gentle but insistent; when they had
protested, they had been picked up as easily as Renard picked up a bag of
apples, and plopped down on top of the two best able to carry them, Tael and
Doma. Tael was too overawed and a little scared to protest much; Doma seemed
curiously at home and docile around the strange creatures, as if they had some
mysterious power over her.
Or, they hoped, because
she could perceive no threat.
Still they didn't go
hungry. Just after darkness fell they were led to a large cave they would have
never known was there, and other Gedemondans brought familiar fruits and
vegetables, from where they couldn't guess, served on broad wood plates, and a
fruit punch that tasted quite good.
They even seemed extra
concerned about Mavra's problems. Her dish was higher and thicker, the easier
to reach it, and the punch was in a deep bowl so she could drink as she wished.
Renard had not used his
electrical powers at Mavra's suggestion; they were, after all there to contact
the Gedemondans, and this was, if nothing else, contact. But he couldn't resist
it, finally, and reached over to a close relative of an apple and applied a
small charge that baked it.
The Gedemondans didn't
seem impressed. Finally one who was sitting against the cave wall got up and
walked over to him, then crouched down across from him, the plate in the
middle. A clawed hand reached out, touched the plate. There was a blinding
flash lasting only a fraction of a second, and the plate and fruit just weren't
there any more. Renard was dumbfounded; he reached over, felt the spot where it
had been. It wasn't even warm, yet there were no char marks, debris, or
anything but a tiny little odor of ozone or something. The snow-creature
snorted in satisfaction, patted him patronizingly on the head, and walked off.
That ended the
demonstrations of power.
They were bone-tired and
chilled, but they did not spend the night in the cave. Although they didn't
run, it was apparent that their captors were on some sort of schedule, and that
they had a particular place for their captives to be at a certain time.
It was several more
hours before they reached it, and by that point Tael was complaining to the
silent leaders loudly that she couldn't go a step farther.
It was a solid rock
wall, looming ominously ahead in the near-darkness. They started for it,
expecting to turn any minute, but it didn't happen. Instead the wall opened for
them.
To be precise, a huge
block of stone moved slowly back, obviously on a muscle-powered pulley, and
bright lights shone into the darkness. They went on, into the tunnel.
The light was from some
glowing mineral that picked up torchlight and magnified it a hundredfold. It
was bright as day inside.
The inside of the
mountain was a honeycomb; labyrinthine passages went off in all directions, and
they were quickly and completely lost. But it was warm—comfortable, in
fact—inside, the heat coming from a source they never did discover, and there
were strange noises of a lot of work being done—but what was going on it was
impossible to see.
Finally, they were at
their destination. It was a comfortable, large room. There were several big
beds there, filled with soft cushions of fabric, and a large fur rug that was
perfect for Mavra. There was only one entrance, and two Gedemondans stood
there, conspicuous yet as unobtrusive as possible. This was it, then.
They were too tired to
talk much, to even move, or worry about what was in store for them. They were
sound asleep in minutes.
* * *
The next day all awoke
feeling better, but with some aches and pains. Gedemondans brought more fruits,
a different punch, and even a bale of hay which could be used by both Tael and
Doma. Where that came from there was little mystery; it was a ration at
one of the trail cabins.
Mavra stretched all four
limbs and groaned. "Oh, wow!" she said. "I must have slept solid
and unmoving. I'm stiff as a board."
Renard sympathized.
"I'm not feeling too great myself. Overslept, I think. But we're the
better for it."
The two Lata, who always
slept motionless on their stomachs, still had their own complaints, and Tael said
she had a stiff neck. Even Doma snorted and flexed her wings, almost knocking
Tael in the face.
The Gedemondans had
cleared away the breakfast dishes; now only one was in the room, looking at
them with a detached expression.
Vistaru looked at him.
Her? No way to tell with them. "I wish they'd say something," she
muttered, as much to herself as to the others. "This strong, silent
treatment gives me the creeps."
"Most people talk
too much about too little now," said the Gedemondan, in a nice,
cultured voice full of warmth. "We prefer not to unless we really have
something to say."
They all almost jumped
out of their skins.
"You can talk!"
Hosuru blurted, then covered, "That is, we were wondering . . ."
The Gedemondan nodded,
then looked at Mavra, still on her side on the rug. "So you are Mavra
Chang. I've wondered what you would look like."
She was surprised.
"You know me? Well, I'm pleased to meet you, too. I'm sorry I can't give
you my hand."
He shrugged. "We
were aware of your problem. As to knowing you, no. We were aware of you.
That is different."
She accepted that. There
were lots of ways of getting information on the Well World.
Tael could not be
restrained now. "Why haven't you ever talked to us?" she asked.
"I mean, we had the idea that you were some kind of animals or
something."
Her lack of subtly did
not perturb the Gedemondan. "It's not hard to explain. We work hard at our
image. It is—necessary." He sat down on the floor, facing them.
"The best way to
explain it is to tell you a little of our own history. You know, all of you, of
the Markovians?" That was not the word he used, but he was using a
translator and that's the way it came out.
They nodded. Renard was
the most ignorant of them; even Tael had had some schooling. But Renard, at
least, knew from his own area of space of the dead ruins of that mysterious
civilization.
"The Markovians
evolved as all plants and animals evolve, from the primitive to the complex.
Most races reach a dead end somewhere along the line, but not them. They
reached the heights of material attainment. Anything they wished for was
theirs. Like the fabled gods, nothing was beyond them," the Gedemondan
told them. "But it wasn't enough. When they had it all, they realized that
the end of it was stagnancy, which common sense will tell you is the ultimate
result of any material utopia."
They nodded, following
him. Renard thought there was some argument against that, and that he'd like to
try Utopia first, but he let it pass.
"So they created
the Well World, and they transformed themselves into new races, and they placed
their children on new worlds of their design. The Well is more than the
maintenance computer for this world; it is the single stabilizing force for the
finite universe," the snow-creature continued. "And why did they
commit racial suicide to descend back to the primitive once more? Because they
felt cheated, somehow. They felt they had missed something, somewhere. And, the
tragedy was, they didn't know what it was. They hoped one of our races could
find out. That was the ultimate goal of the project, which still goes on."
"It seems to me
they made a sucker play," Mavra responded. "Suppose they weren't
missing anything? Suppose that was it?"
The Gedemondan shrugged.
"In that case, those warring powers below represent the height of
attainment, and when the strongest owns the universe—I'm speaking
metaphorically, of course, for they are mere reflections of the races of the
universe—we'll have the Markovians all over."
"But not
Gedemondans?" Vistaru prompted.
He shook his head.
"We took a different path. While the rest ran toward materialistic
attainment, we decided to accept the challenge of a nontechnological hex for
what it was—and not try by ingenuity to make it as technological as we could.
What nature provided, we accepted. Hot springs allowed some cultivation in
these uniquely lighted caverns, which run through the entire hex. We had food,
warmth, shelter and privacy. We turned ourselves not outward, but inward, to
the very core of our being, our souls, if you will, and explored what we found
there. There were things there no one had ever taken time to dream of. A few
Northern hexes are proceeding similarly, but most are not. We feel that this is
what the Markovians created us to do, and what so few are doing. We're looking
for what they missed."
"And have you found
it?" Mavra asked, somewhat cynically. Mystics weren't her style, either.
"After a million
years, we are at the point where we perceive that something was indeed
missing," the Gedemondan replied. "What it is will take further study
and refinement. Unlike those of your worlds, we are in no hurry."
"You've found
power," Renard pointed out. "That dish of food was just plain
disintegrated."
He chuckled, but there
was a certain sadness in it. "Power. Yes, I suppose so. But the true test
of awesome power is the ability not to use it," he said
cryptically. He looked over at Mavra Chang and pointed a clawed, furry finger
at her.
"No matter what,
Mavra Chang, you remember that!"
She looked puzzled.
"You think I'm to have great power?" she responded, skeptical and a
little derisively.
"First you must
descend into Hell," he warned. "Then, only when hope is gone, will
you be lifted up and placed at the pinnacle of attainable power, but whether or
not you will be wise enough to know what to do with it or what not to do with
it is closed to us."
"How do you know
all this?" Vistaru challenged. "Is this just some mystical mumbling
or do you really know the future?"
The Gedemondan chuckled
again. "No, we read probabilities. You see, we see—perceive is a
better word—the math of the Well of Souls. We feel the energy flow, the ties
and bands, in each and every particle of matter and energy. All reality is mathematics;
all existence, past, present, and future, is equations."
"Then you can foretell
what's to happen," Renard put in. "If you see the math, you can solve
the equations."
The Gedemondan sighed.
"What is the square root of minus two?" he asked. "That's
something you can see. Solve it."
The point was made in
the simplest terms.
"But this doesn't
explain why you pretend to be primitive snow apes," Tael persisted.
The Gedemondan looked at
her. "To entwine ourselves in the material equations is to lose that which
we believe is of greater value. It is really too late for any of your cultures
to comprehend this; you are too far along the Markovian path."
"But you broke your
act for us," Hosuru pointed out. "Why?"
"The war and the
engine mod, of course," Vistaru said flatly, in a tone that indicated she
thought her friend a total idiot.
But the Gedemondan shook
his head from side to side. "No. It was to meet and speak with one of you,
to try and understand the complexity of her equation and perceive its meaning
and possible solution."
Renard looked puzzled.
"Mavra?" he asked quizzically.
The Gedemondan nodded.
"And now that is done, although what can be added is beyond me right now.
As to your silly, stupid, petty war and your spaceship, well, if you're up to a
short journey I think we will settle that now." He got up, and they did
the same, following him out. Another Gedemondan followed with their clothing;
they wouldn't need it in the warm caves, but it was obvious that they would not
return to that room.
They were left in a
junction area for a while, and their talkative guide left them. Soon they were
joined by another Gedemondan—or was it the same one?—and they continued off. It
was silent-treatment time again, regardless.
Later, after what seemed
like several hours' walk, they stood again before a stone wall and were helped
getting their cold-weather gear on. Some kind Gedemondan had created a
form-fitting fur coat with leggings for Mavra. She was amazed, and wondered how
they could have done it in a night.
But it helped. The great
door opened with a rumble and revealed a strange scene.
It was a great bowl; a
U-shaped valley hung over it, and snow filled it deeply.
And, askew on a ledge,
unmistakable even at that distance, was the engine module.
And now the guide spoke.
It was a different voice, they thought, but with the same kindness and warmth.
"You spoke of
power. Over there, just next to that little promontory there, your Ben Yulin
and his associates now stand. We marked the trail as subtly as possible, and
they almost lost it several times, but they managed to blunder through."
They strained their
eyes, but it was too far away.
Now the Gedemondan
pointed to the opposite rim. "Up there," he said, "stand Antor
Trelig and his compatriots. Again, their journey was stage-managed so they
arrived at their point within minutes of the other. Of course, neither party
knows the other is there."
The snow-creature turned
back and stared at the engine module, marvelously intact and preserved, the
remains of the great braking chutes still entwined in it.
"This is power,"
said the Gedemondan, and pointed at the module.
There was a rumbling
sound that shook the entire valley. Snow started to fall all around, and the
engine module trembled, then started to move, slowly at first, then more
rapidly, off the edge of the hanging valley.
It poised for an instant
at the edge, then plunged over the side with a roar. But it didn't just fall—it
seemed to break apart, and there was a tremendous rumble and roar. Smoke and
flames and white-hot billowing clouds erupted. The thing blew itself up on the
way down, and, when it hit the snow below, the explosions continued, making the
valley look like a minor volcano for several minutes. When the smoke and roar
died away, the last of the echoes gone, there was only a melted, smouldering
ruin in the snow, bubbling and hissing.
The Gedemondan nodded in
satisfaction. "And so ends the war," he said with a finality that was
hard to deny.
"But if you could
do this—why did you wait?" Vistaru asked, awed and a little frightened.
"It was necessary
that all sides witness it," the creature explained. "Otherwise they
would never have accepted the truth."
"All those dead
people . . ." Renard murmured, thinking of his own experiences.
The Gedemondan nodded.
"And thousands more now littering the plains. Perhaps this experience will
save thousand more in times to come. War is the greatest of teachers, and not
all of its lessons are bad. Their cost is just so terribly high."
Mavra had a different
thought. "Suppose the engine module hadn't landed here," she asked
him. "What then?"
"You
misunderstand," replied the Gedemondan. "It landed here because it had
to land here. It could land nowhere else." He nodded, almost to
himself. "A very simple equation," he muttered.
* * *
They stood there a while
in silence, stunned. Finally, Mavra asked, "What happens now? To us? To
the warring powers?"
"The warring powers
will pack up and go home," the Gedemondan replied matter-of-factly.
"Trelig?
Yulin?" Renard pressed.
"Are too devious to
have been caught here," the creature replied. "They will do as they
always have done and act as they always have acted, until the time comes for
their equations to solve. They are much entwined, those two, and with you,
Renard, and you, Vistaru, and, most of all, with you, Mavra Chang."
She let it pass. All
this talk of her importance seemed ridiculous.
"And us?" she
prodded. "What happens to us now? I mean, you've pretty well blown your
cover, haven't you?"
"Power is best used
judiciously," the Gedemondan replied. "A simple adjustment, really.
You never were picked up by us. You followed an old trail that seemed recently
used, and discovered this valley. Then you watched as the engine module
destroyed itself, jarred perhaps by too many sounds echoing across the valley
and hitting just the wrong points as it fell. Then you made your way east, into
Dillia, to report. You never ever saw the mysterious Gedemondans."
"That's going to be
a hard story to keep to," she pointed out.
"But it is true,"
the snow-creature told her. "Or, as far as your companions are
concerned, it will be, the moment you cross into Dillia. We have picked up your
pack and supplies and will provide them before you cross the border."
"You mean,"
Vistaru said, a little upset, "you're going to make us forget all
this?"
"All but her,"
he replied, gesturing toward Mavra. "But she will get sick and tired of
trying to convince you of all this fairly quickly."
"Why me?"
Mavra responded, still puzzled.
"We want you
to remember," the Gedemondan said seriously. "You see, while we developed
here along these lines, our children out there in the stars did not. They are
all dead now. All gone. The Gedemondans here may yet solve the Markovian
problem, but they will never be in a position to implement that solution."
"And I will?"
she asked.
"The square root of
minus two," replied the Gedemondan.
"But it just isn't right,"
Vardia, the Czillian, objected: "I mean, after all she did and tried
to do." It pointed a tendril at a photograph. "Look at her. A freak.
A pretty human girl's body, always facing head downward, supported by four
mule's legs. Not even able to look straight ahead. No protective hair or body
fat. She's so vulnerable! Eating like an animal, face pushed into a
dish; eating food she can't even prepare herself. She must have normal sexual
urges, yet what will have her, from the ass-end at that? She almost has to
wallow in her own excrement just to relieve herself. It's awful! And so easy to
cure. Just bring her here and send her through the Well Gate."
Serge Ortega nodded,
agreeing with all the other ambassador said. "It is sad," he
admitted. "There is nothing I have done in my whole foul life that pains
me like this. And yet, you know why. The Crisis Center of your own hex came out
with the cold facts. Antor Trelig will never forget that there's another ship
down on the Well World; neither will Ben Yulin. Both can see New Pompeii on
clear nights. And if Yulin settles down, the Yaxa will push him into it. We
can't control them or the Makiem—and they can pass through Zone as safely as
we. We haven't the right to stop them. Nations that would not lift a finger in
the war would act against us if we militarized Zone. I still hold to the idea
that the Northern ship is beyond anybody's reach, and, Lord knows, both
the Czillian computers and I have tried every angle! Some of the Northern races
are interested, but the Uchjin are completely opposed, and there's no way to
get a pilot there physically, anyway."
He paused, then looked
at the plant-creature, eyes sad. "But can we take the chance that it is
impossible? Your computers say no, and so do my instincts. A Northerner
once got South, remember. If we can find how. . . . Trelig won't stop. Yulin
won't stop. The Yaxa won't stop. If a solution is possible, no matter how
complex and off the wall it may be, even shooting a pilot over the Equatorial
Barrier with giant sling shots, somebody will come up with the solution. My
channels are pretty good, but so are theirs. If anybody comes up with the
answer, we'll all have it, and it's a miniwar all over again. And if we aren't
to leave it to Yulin or Trelig, then we'll need somebody who knows how to tell
that computer to take off and land and such—and who can reprogram it for the
almost impossible launch situation and acceleration that would be required. The
Zinders can't—even if we knew where and what they were, and we most definitely
do not. Nor can a classical librarian like Renard. None of them ever flew a
ship. I can't, either. I'm too out of date. And that ship is still there, still
intact, and it'll stay that way because the Uchjin don't even understand what
it is but think it's pretty, and because that atmosphere they have is almost a
perfect preservative."
"If only we could
get somebody in the North to blow it up," Vardia said wistfully.
"I've already tried
that," Ortega replied swiftly. "Things are different up there, that's
all. So we've got a ship that's a ticking bomb, and maybe, hopefully, it'll
never go off—but it just might. And if we run her through the Well of Souls, we
might lose track or control of the only pilot we have!"
He shuffled through some
papers, coming up with a photograph of New Pompeii.
"Look at
that," he told her. "There's a computer there that knows the Well
codes and math. It's capacity-limited, but it's self-aware, and so it's another
player in the game. Against uncounted billions or trillions of lives in the
universe, can the fate of one individual be considered? You know the
answer." He slapped the computer printouts angrily, upset himself.
"There it is, damn it! Tell me some way around it!"
"Maybe she'll solve
her own problem," Vardia mused. "Get to a Zone Gate and get here.
Then the Well's the only way out."
He shook his head.
"That won't work, and I made sure she knows it. Whatever she is, Zone
gates will be guarded day and night. If she makes it here, she'll be locked up
in a nice, comfortable one-room office in this complex. No windows, no way out.
She'll be an animal in a zoo, unable to smell the flowers or see the stars.
That is more horrible to her than death, and she's just not the suicidal
type."
"How can you be so
damned sure of everything?" the Czillian asked him. "If I were
her, facing her kind of future, I'm sure I would kill myself."
Ortega reached into his
massive, U-shaped desk and pulled out a thick file. "The life history and
profile of Mavra Chang," he told the other. "Partly from Renard,
partly from some hypno interviews we did in Lata that she's not aware of, and
partly from, ah, other sources I'm not ready to reveal now. Her whole life has
been a succession of tragedies, but it's also the story of a dramatic,
continuing fight against hopeless odds. She is psychologically incapable of
giving up! Look at that Teliagin business. Even not knowing where she was
or what was what, she refused to abandon those people. Even as a freak she
still insisted on going to Gedemondas, and she did. No, somehow she'll cope.
We'll make it as easy as we can for her." That last was said softly, with
a gentleness Vardia would never have suspected of the Machiavellian snake-man
and former human pirate.
"Look," he
said, trying to soften it, "maybe another Type 41 Entry will come in. Then
we'll be able to do something. There's hope."
The Czillian kept
staring at the photograph. "You know the figures. One time there were lots
of human Entries; what have we had in the last century? Two? And we lost track
of both of those."
"One's dead, the
other's in a salt-water hex and is the wrong kind of pilot," Ortega
mumbled. The plant-creature hardly heard. Once it, too, had been a human
female. That was why it was picked as the liaison with Ortega.
"I'd still kill
myself," Vardia said softly.
They had taken her first
south from Dillia through Kuansa to Shamozan, the land of great spiders. She
had no fear of spiders, and found them charming and very human.
The ambassador was very
kind, but he explained the situation to her in graphic detail, concluding,
"The only thing we can do right now is make it as easy as possible.
Understand, we have no choice."
She started to say
something, but a needle from someone behind pierced her skin, and things had
blacked out.
They took her to a
medical section with a strange machine. The ambassador explained it to Renard
and Vistaru, who still accompanied her. Hosuru had gone to report and was home
already.
"Basically, it
reinforces the effect of a hypno," he explained. "It doesn't work on
many races, but she's still Type 41, although modified, and it'll work on them
and her. What it does is to do a more or less permanent burn-in of a basic
hypno treatment, so it doesn't wear off. We know it works, because we took data
on her in Lata using a similar device and then blocked all memory, and it
held."
"But what will you
tell her?" Vistaru worried. "You won't change her, will you?"
"Only a
little," the ambassador replied. "Just enough to make her
comfortable, adapt. We can't do anything serious; the whole reason for this is
that we must keep her on hand for the skills and qualities she possesses. I
think she understands that."
The process began.
"Mavra Chang,"
said the device, preprogrammed carefully. "When you awake, you will find
your memories and personality unchanged. However, while you will remember being
human, you will be unable to imagine yourself that way. The way you are now
will seem natural and normal to you. This form is how you are comfortable. You
cannot conceive of being any other way, even though you know you once were, and
you wouldn't want to be any different than you are."
The thing went on for a
bit, feeding her various bits of information, methods, skills she would need in
order to cope, and then it was over.
She had awakened a few
hours later, and felt strangely better, more at ease. She tried to remember why
she had felt different before, but it came hard. Something to do with being in
this form, she recalled.
She remembered being
human. Remembered it, but in a curious, lopsided kind of way. It seemed like
she'd always had four legs. She tried to imagine herself walking upright on two
legs, or picking up things with hands, and she just couldn't. It was just not right
somehow. This was right.
Vaguely, in the back of
her mind, she knew that they'd done something to her, something to create this
situation, but it didn't seem important, somehow, and she quickly forgot it.
But she remembered the
stars. She knew she belonged there, not here, not in any planetbound existence
anywhere. She would sit there, topside on the ship as it crossed the Gulf of
Turagin, sometimes by sail, sometimes by steam, depending on the hex, head and
forelegs propped up on some crates or a hatch cover, looking at the stars.
She chuckled to herself.
They thought she wanted to go through the Well. Or maybe they thought
she'd settle down and forget in this new existence. But the stars came out
every night, and those she would never forget. It went beyond reason and logic;
it was a love affair. A love affair now forcibly broken by circumstances, but
not beyond repair while both lovers lived.
And now, as the sun came
up, there was a shoreline out there. It looked green and pretty and warm; sea
birds circled offshore, diving occasionally for fish and clams, then took their
catch to rookeries in the hillsides overlooking the beach.
Renard came on deck,
stretched and yawned, then went over to her.
"Not an unpleasant-looking
place for an exile," she said calmly.
He stooped down so his
head was level with hers. "Very primitive. A tribal culture, not much
else. They're human—what we think of as human. But this wasn't our ancestral
home. They had a war with the Ambreza; the big beavers gassed them back into
the Stone Age and swapped hexes, so it's a nontech hex."
"Suits me
fine," she replied. "Primitive means small population." She
looked straight at him, head to one side. "And soon your job will be done,
and Vistaru's too. They've built a compound for me to my requirements, with a
fresh water spring and everything. Once a month a ship will drop off supplies
in little plastic pouches I can open with my teeth holding them between my
forelegs. There are hostiles and water all around except on the Ambreza side,
and they'll keep Zone Gates 136 and 41 secure. The primitives have been
effectively tabooed from the compound. No risk to me, and no chance I'll
escape. You and Vistaru can go back through the Zone Gate, tell them all is
well, and then try and find new lives or pick up old ones. I understand the
Agitar are so pissed off at the war fizzling out that you're some kind of
hero."
He was hurt.
"Mavra—I—"
She cut him off.
"Look, Renard!" she said sharply. "You don't owe me anything and
I don't owe you anything. We're even now! I don't need you any more, and it's
about time you learned you don't need me, either! Go home, Renard!" She
was almost screaming now, and the look she gave him said it even more
eloquently.
I'm Mavra Chang, it
said. I was orphaned at five and again at thirteen. I was a beggar who became
the queen of beggars, a whore when I had to be to buy the stars I craved, and I
got them! I was a thief they couldn't catch, the agent who snatched Nikki
Zinder off New Pompeii and kept her and you alive until help could come. And
against all odds, I reached Gedemondas and saw the destruction of the engines.
I'm Mavra Chang, and no
matter what comes along, I will cope.
I'm Mavra Chang, bride
only of the stars.
I'm Mavra Chang, and I
don't need anybody!
* * *
The Wars of the Well
will be concluded in
Quest for The Well of Souls.
N=Nontechnological hex. S=semitechnological hex. H=high-tech hex. A
parenthesis (for example, (N)) denotes a water hex. The addition of an M to the
hex designation (i.e. SM) means it has what would be regarded as magical
capabilities by those who don't have them. Uchjin, the only hex in the North,
has an atmosphere that's mostly helium and other useless stuff.
AGITAR H Diurnal Males satyrlike; females reverse animalism of males but
are smarter. Males can store and control electric charges.
ALESTOL N Diurnal Moving, barrel-shaped plants that are carnivores and
shoot a variety of noxious gasses.
AMBREZA H Diurnal Resemble giant beavers. Used to be N until they beat the
Glathriel in a war and swapped hexes with them.
BOIDOL NM Diurnal Giant sphinxlike creatures. Look fierce but are peaceful
herbivores.
CEBU S Diurnal Resemble pterodactyls with prehensile apelike feet.
CZILL H Diurnal Asexual plants who duplicate; mobile by day, root at night.
Pacifistic scholars with a huge computer center.
DASHEEN N Diurnal Basically minotaurs. Females are much larger and dumber
than the males, but males need their lactose/calcium to live.
DILLIA S Diurnal True classic centaurs. Peaceful folk who hunt, trap, farm.
Can eat anything organic but are basically vegetarian.
DJUKASIS S Diurnal Giant beelike colonies where citizens are bred
physically and mentally for their jobs.
GALIDON (N) Giant, tentacled manta rays who are bad-tempered carnivores.
GEDEMONDAS N Diurnal Large, thin, hairy Apelike creatures with round feet and
doglike snouts.
GLATHRIEL N Diurnal The ancestors of humanity; very primitive since the
Ambreza gassed them back into the Stone Age and swapped hexes.
JIIHU (H) Large clamlike creatures with lots of tentacles, but they rarely
move once full grown.
KLUSID N Diurnal Thin, delicate birdlike creatures in a land of great
beauty. Atmosphere is much too high on the ultraviolet for most others.
KROMM (S) Diurnal Huge flowers that spin across their shallow swamp.
LAMOTIEN H Diurnal Small lumpy creatures who can imitate anything, even by
combining to build bigger imitations, but can not change their mass.
LATA H Nocturnal Very small humanoid hermaphroditic pixies who can fly and
have nasty stingers. Can also glow by secreting chemicals in the skin.
MAKIEM N Diurnal Large reptiles resembling giant toads who need some water
daily though land-dwellers. Cold-blooded and have sex only ten days a year
during one period.
NODI N Nocturnal Resemble giant mushrooms; thousands of tendrils drop from
their "caps" when needed.
OLBORN SM Diurnal Resemble huge, bipedal pussycats with the ability to
create their own beasts of burden.
PALIM H Diurnal Resemble great hairy mammoths with remarkably prehensile
trunk with fingers all around.
PORIGOL (HM) Dolphinlike mammals who can stun or kill with sound.
QASADA H Diurnal Large ratlike creatures with long tails, whiskers, and
hivelike communities.
SHAMOZAN H Diurnal These huge, hairy tarantulas like alcohol, melodic
music, and games of skill.
TELIAGIN N Diurnal Great cyclopses; carnivores who raise their own sheep to
eat and are bull-headed but not dumb.
TULIGA (S) Giant, rather repulsive sea slugs, neither nice nor
communicative.
UCHJIN N Nocturnal Look like giant paint smears flowing down glass.
ULIK H Diurnal Great six-armed snake-men that live in a desert hex at the
Equatorial Barrier.
XODA NM Diurnal Resemble four meters of praying mantis, and have a hypnotic
way of inviting you to dinner.
YAXA S Diurnal Females who eat their husbands after sex. Look like giant
orange-and-brown butterflies with hard shiny black bodies, eight prehensile
tentacles, and a death's head for a face. Visual system is quite different from
Southern norm.
ZHONZORP H Diurnal Large, bipedal relatives of the crocodile given to
dressing up like grand opera, capes and all, but are solid technicians.